summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-02-05 20:57:06 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-02-05 20:57:06 -0800
commitacb60eb52dff2f4412a8ac361cceca672f5cfe15 (patch)
treec69cb1c83378c45ae7e2903a89b3676bee57ff40
parentb11387e37f73ebb1f2fddb88ac733de30def69a4 (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h.zipbin4633817 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/51990-h.htm8083
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/cover.jpgbin109652 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/cover_epub.jpgbin1218413 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_001.pngbin60959 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_009.pngbin85954 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_015.pngbin96228 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_021.pngbin69557 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_025.pngbin136595 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_031.pngbin65460 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_035.pngbin116917 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_039.pngbin124630 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_051.pngbin87607 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_057.pngbin43571 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_061.pngbin76003 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_067.pngbin40981 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_073.pngbin98768 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_078.pngbin45219 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_083.pngbin93486 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_087.pngbin32546 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_089.pngbin43887 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_091.pngbin42936 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_095.pngbin61507 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_102.pngbin8815 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_107.pngbin108255 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_110.pngbin23513 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_119.pngbin83461 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_129.pngbin88606 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_135.pngbin50937 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_138.pngbin36863 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_141.pngbin61647 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_147.pngbin91328 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_150.pngbin40977 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_152.pngbin52077 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_156.pngbin13280 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_159.pngbin137751 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_165.pngbin69374 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_186.pngbin59420 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_191.pngbin91043 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_195.pngbin17331 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_197.pngbin36238 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_207.pngbin96773 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_215.pngbin82433 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_225.pngbin100156 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_233.pngbin60063 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_237.pngbin13141 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_243.pngbin62956 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_249.pngbin120867 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_261.pngbin105609 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/page_270.pngbin22398 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990-h/images/signature.pngbin3890 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51990.txt6024
-rw-r--r--old/51990.zipbin126761 -> 0 bytes
56 files changed, 17 insertions, 14107 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..4cbe002
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #51990 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/51990)
diff --git a/old/51990-h.zip b/old/51990-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index fc9edce..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/51990-h.htm b/old/51990-h/51990-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index c1247a4..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/51990-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,8083 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=iso-8859-1" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- A Thrilling Narrative of the Minnesota Massacre and the Sioux War of 1862-63, by Alonzo Putnam Connolly, a Project Gutenberg eBook.
- </title>
- <link rel="cover" href="images/cover_epub.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css">
-
-body {margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%;}
-
-p {margin-top: .75em; text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .75em; text-indent: 1.5em;}
-
-hr {width: 33%; margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 1em;
- margin-left: auto; margin-right: auto; clear: both;}
-
-hr.chap {width: 65%; margin-top: 2em;}
-hr.full {width: 95%; margin-top: 2em;}
-hr.tb {width: 45%;}
-hr.r10 {width: 10%; margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 1em;}
-hr.r20 {width: 20%; margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 1em;}
-
-table {margin-left: auto; margin-right: auto; border-collapse: collapse;}
-
-.pagenum {position: absolute; right: 3.5%;
- font-size: small; text-align: right; color: #808080;} /* page numbers */
-.bbox {border: solid #000 1px; padding: 1em;}
-.row2 {background-color: #f6f6f6;}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-.center {text-align: center; margin:0; text-indent: 0;}
-.smaller {font-size: 0.8em;}
-.gesspert {letter-spacing: 0.125em;}
-.tdl {text-align: left; text-indent: 0;}
-.tdr {text-align: right;}
-.tdl2 {text-align: left; padding-left:2em;}
-.tdr2 {text-align: right; padding-right:2em;}
-.p0 {text-indent: 0;}
-.ind2em {padding-left: 2em; text-indent: 0;}
-.caption1, .caption2, .caption3, .caption4 {font-weight: bold; text-align: center; text-indent:0;}
-.caption1 {font-size:2.00em; margin-top: 1.5em;}
-.caption2 {font-size:1.50em; margin-top: 1.0em;}
-.caption3 {font-size:1.25em; margin-top: 0.5em;}
-.caption4 {font-size:1.15em; margin-top: 0.5em;}
-.pmt4 {margin-top: 4em;}
-.pmb2 {margin-bottom: 2em;}
-.pmb4 {margin-bottom: 4em;}
-
-/* Images */
-
-.fig_center {margin: auto; text-align: center;}
-
-.fig_caption {margin-bottom: 1em; margin-left: 2em;
- text-indent: -2em; text-align: center;}
-
-.blockquot {margin: 0 2em;}
-.vmid {vertical-align: middle;}
-
-/* Transcriber's notes */
-.trans_notes {background-color: #e6e6fa; color: black; padding:1.5em;
- margin-bottom:5em;}
-
-/* Footnotes */
-.footnote {margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; font-size: 0.9em;}
-.footnote .label {position: absolute; right: 84%; text-align: right;}
-.fnanchor {vertical-align: super; font-size: .8em; text-decoration: none;}
-
-/* Poetry */
-.poem {margin-left:10%; margin-right:10%; text-align: left;}
-.poem br {display: none;}
-.poem .stanza {margin: 1em 0em 1em 0em;}
-.poem span.i0 {display: block; margin-left: 0em; padding-left: 3em; text-indent: -3em;}
-.poem span.i2 {display: block; margin-left: 2em; padding-left: 3em; text-indent: -3em;}
-.poem span.i4 {display: block; margin-left: 4em; padding-left: 3em; text-indent: -3em;}
-
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of A Thrilling Narrative of the Minnesota
-Massacre and the Sioux War of 1862-63, by A. P. (Alonzo Putnam) Connolly
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-
-
-Title: A Thrilling Narrative of the Minnesota Massacre and the Sioux War of 1862-63
- Graphic Accounts of the Siege of Fort Ridgely, Battles of
- Birch Coolie, Wood Lake, Big Mound, Stony Lake, Dead Buffalo
- Lake and Missouri River
-
-Author: A. P. (Alonzo Putnam) Connolly
-
-Release Date: May 3, 2016 [EBook #51990]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THRILLING NARRATIVE ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by WebRover, Tom Cosmas, Chris Curnow and the
-Online Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
-(This file was produced from images generously made
-available by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 340px;">
-<img src="images/cover.jpg" width="340" height="522" alt="Sioux War and Massacre of 1862 and 1863" />
-</div>
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<div class="trans_notes pmb2">
-<p class="caption2">Transcriber Note</p>
-
-<p class="center">Table of Contents added.</p>
-</div>
-
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 345px; padding-bottom: 2em;">
-<img src="images/page_001.png" width="345" height="449" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption"><span class="smcap">Governor Alex Ramsey, of St. Paul</span>,<br />
-<span class="smaller">The Last of the War Governors.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_1" id="Page_1"></a></span></p>
-
-
-<p class="caption1">A THRILLING NARRATIVE</p>
-
-<p class="center">OF</p>
-
-<p class="caption1 gesspert">THE MINNESOTA MASSACRE</p>
-
-<p class="center">AND THE</p>
-
-<p class="caption2">SIOUX WAR OF 1862-63</p>
-
-<hr class="r20" />
-
-<p class="center">GRAPHIC ACCOUNTS OF THE</p>
-
-<p class="center"><i>SIEGE OF FORT RIDGELY, BATTLES OF BIRCH COOLIE, WOOD<br />
-LAKE, BIG MOUND, STONY LAKE, DEAD BUFFALO<br />
-LAKE AND MISSOURI RIVER</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="caption4">ILLUSTRATED.</p>
-
-<hr class="r20" />
-
-<p class="center pmb4">CHICAGO:<br />
-<br />
-A. P. CONNOLLY, Publisher,<br />
-PAST COMMANDER U. S. GRANT POST, NO. 28, G. A. R.<br />
-DEPARTMENT OF ILLINOIS.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_2" id="Page_2"></a></span></p>
-
-
-<p class="center pmt4 pmb4">
-Copyright 1896, by<br />
-A. P. CONNOLLY<br />
-CHICAGO.</p>
-
-<p class="center pmb4">DONOHUE &amp; HENNEBERRY, PRINTERS AND BINDERS, CHICAGO.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_3" id="Page_3">« 3 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="DEDICATION" id="DEDICATION">DEDICATION.</a></p>
-
-<hr class="r20" />
-
-
-<p>Thirty-four years ago and Minnesota was in an unusual
-state of excitement. The great War of the Rebellion was
-on and many of her sons were in the Union army &ldquo;at the
-front.&rdquo; In addition, the Sioux Indian outbreak occurred
-and troops were hurriedly sent to the frontier. Company
-A, Sixth Minnesota Infantry, and detachments from
-other companies were sent out to bury the victims of the
-Indians. This duty performed, they rested from their labors
-and in an unguarded hour, they, too, were surrounded
-by the victorious Indians and suffered greatly in killed
-and wounded at Birch Coolie, Minnesota, on September 2
-and 3, 1862. The men who gave up their lives at this historic
-place, have been remembered by the state in the erection
-of a beautiful monument to their memory and the
-names inscribed thereon are as follows:</p>
-
-<p class="ind2em">
-John College, sergeant, Company A, Sixth Minnesota.<br />
-Wm. Irvine, sergeant, Company A, Sixth Minnesota.<br />
-Wm. M. Cobb, corporal, Company A, Sixth Minnesota.<br />
-Cornelius Coyle, private, Company A, Sixth Minnesota.<br />
-George Coulter, private, Company A, Sixth Minnesota.<br />
-Chauncey L. King, private, Company A, Sixth Minnesota.<br />
-Henry Rolleau, private, Company A, Sixth Minnesota.<br />
-Wm. Russell, private, Company A, Sixth Minnesota.<br />
-Henry Whetsler, private, Company A, Sixth Minnesota.<br />
-Benj. S. Terry, sergeant, Company G, Sixth Minnesota.<br />
-F. C. W. Renneken, corporal, Company G, Sixth Minnesota.<br />
-Robert Baxter, sergeant, Mounted Rangers.<br />
-Richard Gibbons, corporal, Mounted Rangers.<br />
-</p>
-
-<p>To these, knowing them all personally and well, I fraternally
-and reverentially inscribe this book.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_4" id="Page_4">« 4 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_5" id="Page_5">« 5 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="INTRODUCTION" id="INTRODUCTION">INTRODUCTION.</a></p>
-
-
-<p>&ldquo;We are coming, Father Abraham, SIX HUNDRED
-THOUSAND MORE!&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>This was in response to the President&rsquo;s appeal for men
-to go to the front, and the vast levies this called for made
-men turn pale and maidens tremble.</p>
-
-<p>The Union army was being defeated, and its ranks depleted
-by disease and expiration of terms of service&mdash;the
-enemy was victorious and defiant, and foreign powers were
-wavering. In England aristocracy wanted a confederacy&mdash;the
-Commoners wanted an undivided Union. The North
-responded to the appeal, mothers gave up their sons, wives
-their husbands, maidens their lovers, and six hundred
-thousand &ldquo;boys in blue&rdquo; marched away.</p>
-
-<p>In August, 1862, I enlisted to serve Uncle Sam for
-&ldquo;three years or during the war.&rdquo; In January, 1865, I reenlisted
-to serve another term; but the happy termination
-of the conflict made it unnecessary. I do not write
-this boastingly, but proudly. There are periods in our
-lives we wish to emphasize and with me this is the period
-in my life.</p>
-
-<p>The years from 1861 to 1865&mdash;memorable for all time,
-I look back to now as a dream. The echo of the first
-gun on Sumter startled the world. Men stood aghast
-and buckling on the sword and shouldering the musket
-they marched away. Brave men from the North met brave
-men from the South, and, as the clash of arms resounded
-throughout our once happy land, the Nations of the World
-with bated breath watched the destinies of this Republic.</p>
-
-<p>After four years of arbitration on many sanguinary
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_6" id="Page_6">« 6 »</a></span>
-fields, we decided at Appomattox to live in harmony under
-one flag. The soldiers are satisfied&mdash;&ldquo;the Blue and
-the Gray&rdquo; have joined hands; but the politicians, or at
-least some of them, seem to be unaware that the war is
-over, and still drag us into the controversy.</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;The Boys in Blue?&rdquo; Why, that was in 1866, and this is
-1896&mdash;thirty years after we had fulfilled our contract and
-turned over the goods; and was ever work better done?</p>
-
-<p>Then we could have anything we wanted; now we are
-&ldquo;Old Soldiers&rdquo; and it is 16 to 1 against us when there is
-work to do. A new generation has arisen, and the men
-of 1861 to 1865 are out of &ldquo;the swim,&rdquo; unless their vote is
-wanted. We generally vote right. We were safe to trust
-in &ldquo;the dark days&rdquo; and we can be trusted now; but Young
-America is in the front rank and we must submit.</p>
-
-<p>The soldier was a queer &ldquo;critter&rdquo; and could adapt himself
-to any circumstance. He could cook, wash dishes,
-preach, pray, fight, build bridges, build railroads, scale
-mountains, dig wells, dig canals, edit papers, eat three
-square meals a day or go without and find fault; and so
-with this experience of years,&mdash;the eventful years of 1861
-and 1865 before me, when the door is shut and I am no
-longer effective and cannot very well retire&mdash;to the poor-house,
-have concluded to write a book. I am not so important
-a character as either Grant, Sherman, Sheridan
-or Logan; but I did my share toward making them great.
-I&rsquo;ll never have a monument erected to my memory unless
-I pay for it myself; but my conscience is clear, for I served
-more than three years in Uncle Sam&rsquo;s army and I have
-never regretted it and have no apologies to make. I did
-not go for pay, bounty or pension, although I got both
-the former when I did enlist and am living in the enjoyment
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_7" id="Page_7">« 7 »</a></span>
-of the latter now. I would not like to say how
-much my pension is, but it is not one hundred a month
-by &ldquo;a large majority&rdquo;&mdash;and so, I have concluded, upon
-the whole, to profit by a portion of my experience in the
-great &ldquo;Sioux War&rdquo; in Minnesota and Dakota in 1862 (for
-I campaigned both North and South) and write a book
-and thus &ldquo;stand off&rdquo; the wolf in my old age.</p>
-
-<p>When peace was declared, the great armies were ordered
-home and the &ldquo;Boys in Blue&rdquo; became citizens again. The
-majority of us have passed over the hill-top and are going
-down the western slope of life, leaving our comrades by
-the wayside. In a few years more there will be but a
-corporal&rsquo;s guard left and &ldquo;the place that knows us now
-will know us no more forever.&rdquo; The poor-house will
-catch some and the Soldiers&rsquo; Home others; but the bread
-of charity can never be so sweet and palatable as is that
-derived from one&rsquo;s own earnings,&mdash;hence this little book
-of personal experiences and exciting events of these exciting
-years&mdash;1862 and 1863. In it I deal in facts and personal
-experiences, and the experiences of others who passed
-through the trying ordeal, as narrated to me. As one
-grows old, memory in some sense is unreliable. It cannot
-hold on as it once did. The recollection of the
-incidents of youth remains, while the more recent occurrences
-have often but a slender hold on our memories;
-often creeps in touching dates, but the recollections
-of August, 1862, and the months that followed, are indeed
-vivid; the impress is so indelibly graven on our memories
-that time has not effaced them.</p>
-
-<p>The characters spoken of I knew personally, some for
-years; the locations were familiar to me, the buildings
-homely as they appear, are correct in size and in style
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_8" id="Page_8">« 8 »</a></span>
-of architecture and some of them I helped to build. The
-narrative is as I would relate to you, were we at one of
-our &ldquo;Camp Fires.&rdquo; It is turning back the pages of memory,
-but in the mental review it seems but yesterday that
-the sad events occurred.</p>
-
-<p class="tdr2 pmb4">A. P. CONNOLLY.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_9" id="Page_9">« 9 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 369px;">
-<img src="images/page_009.png" width="369" height="483" alt="" />
-<div class="tdl">Yours truly,</div>
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 330px;">
-<img src="images/signature.png" width="330" height="103" alt="" />
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_10" id="Page_10">« 10 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CONTENTS" id="CONTENTS">CONTENTS</a></p>
-
-
-<table summary="ToC">
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl2 smaller" colspan="2">Chapter</td>
- <td class="tdr smaller">Page</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_I">I.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">General Remarks&mdash;Death of Dr. Weiser.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_I">11</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_II">II.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">St. Paul and Minneapolis in 1836 and 1896&mdash;Father Hennepin.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_II">14</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_III">III.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">A Pathetic Chapter&mdash;Captain Chittenden&rsquo;s Minnehaha.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_III">20</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_IV">IV.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Origin of Indians&mdash;Captain Carver&mdash;Sitting Bull.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_IV">27</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_V">V.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Fort Snelling.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_V">33</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_VI">VI.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">The Alarm.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_VI">38</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_VII">VII.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Some of the Causes of the War.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_VII">43</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_VIII">VIII.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Little Crow at Devil&rsquo;s Lake.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_VIII">50</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_IX">IX.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Fort Ridgely Besieged.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_IX">63</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_X">X.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Siege of New Ulm.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_X">67</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XI">XI.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Col. Flandreau in Command.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XI">75</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XII">XII.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Mrs. Eastlick and Family.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XII">78</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIII">XIII.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">The Missionaries&mdash;Their Escape.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIII">85</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIV">XIV.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">The Indian Pow-wow.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIV">87</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XV">XV.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Gov. Sibley Appointed Commander.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XV">97</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVI">XVI.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">March to Fort Ridgely.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVI">103</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVII">XVII.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Burial of Capt. Marsh and Men.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVII">106</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVIII">XVIII.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Battle of Birch Coolie.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVIII">112</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIX">XIX.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Birch Coolie Continued.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIX">118</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XX">XX.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Battle of Wood Lake.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XX">128</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXI">XXI.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Camp Release.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXI">139</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXII">XXII.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">The Indian Prisoners&mdash;The Trial.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXII">146</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIII">XXIII.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Capture of Renegade Bands&mdash;Midnight March.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIII">153</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIV">XXIV.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Homeward Bound.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIV">156</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXV">XXV.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Protests&mdash;President Lincoln&rsquo;s Order For the Execution.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXV">163</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVI">XXVI.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">The Execution&mdash;The Night Before.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVI">169</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVII">XXVII.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Squaws Take Leave of Their Husbands.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVII">176</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVIII">XXVIII.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Capture and Release of Joe Brown&rsquo;s Indian Family.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVIII">178</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIX">XXIX.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Governor Ramsey and Hole-in-the-Day.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIX">185</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXX">XXX.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Chaska&mdash;George Spencer&mdash;Chaska&rsquo;s Death&mdash;The &ldquo;Moscow&rdquo;
- Expedition.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXX">190</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXI">XXXI.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">The &ldquo;Moscow&rdquo; Expedition.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXI">195</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXII">XXXII.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Campaign of 1863&mdash;Camp Pope.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXII">199</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXIII">XXXIII.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">&ldquo;Forward March.&rdquo;</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXIII">205</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXIV">XXXIV.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Burning Prairie&mdash;Fighting Fire.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXIV">209</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXV">XXXV.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Death of Little Crow.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXV">211</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXVI">XXXVI.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Little Crow, Jr.&mdash;His Capture.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXVI">218</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXVII">XXXVII.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Camp Atchison&mdash;George A. Brackett&rsquo;s Adventure&mdash;Lieutenant
- Freeman&rsquo;s Death.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXVII">221</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXVIII">XXXVIII.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Battle of Big Mound.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXVIII">232</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXIX">XXXIX.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Battle of Dead Buffalo Lake.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXIX">237</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XL">XL.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Battle of Stony Lake&mdash;Capture of a Teton&mdash;Death of
- Lieutenant Beaver.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XL">241</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLI">XLI.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Homeward Bound.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLI">252</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLII">XLII.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">The Campaign of 1864.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLII">257</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLIII">XLIII.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">The Battle of the Bad Lands.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLIII">261</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="row2">
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLIV">XLIV.</a></td>
- <td class="tdl">Conclusion.</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLIV">271</a></td>
-</tr>
-</table>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_11" id="Page_11">« 11 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_I" id="CHAPTER_I">CHAPTER I.</a></p>
-
-<hr class="r10" />
-
-<p class="caption3">GENERAL REMARKS&mdash;DEATH OF DR. WEISER.</p>
-
-<hr class="r10" />
-
-
-<p>Historians have written, orators have spoken and poets
-have sung of the heroism and bravery of the great Union
-army and navy that from 1861 to 1865 followed the
-leadership of Grant, Sherman, Sheridan, Logan, Thomas,
-McPherson, Farragut and Porter from Bull Run to Appomattox,
-and from Atlanta to the sea; and after their
-work was done and well done, returned to their homes to
-receive the plaudits of a grateful country.</p>
-
-<p>More than thirty years have elapsed since these trying,
-melancholy times. The question that then called the
-volunteer army into existence has been settled, and the
-great commanders have gone to their rewards. We bow
-our heads in submission to the mandate of the King of
-Kings, as with sorrow and pleasure we read the grateful
-tributes paid to the memories of the heroes on land and
-on sea,&mdash;the names made illustrious by valorous achievements,
-and that have become household words, engraven
-on our memories; and we think of them as comrades who
-await us &ldquo;on fame&rsquo;s eternal camping ground.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>Since the war, other questions have arisen to claim our
-attention, and this book treats of another momentous
-theme. The Indian question has often, indeed too often,
-been uppermost in the minds of the people. We have
-had the World&rsquo;s Fair, the Four Hundredth Anniversary
-of the discovery of America, the recollection of which is
-still fresh in our memories. Now we have politics and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_12" id="Page_12">« 12 »</a></span>
-doubtless have passed through one of the most exciting
-political campaigns of our day and generation; but, let us
-take a retrospective view, and go back thirty years; look
-at some of the causes leading up to the Indian war of
-1862; make a campaign with me as we march over twelve
-hundred miles into an almost unknown land and defeat
-the Indians in several sanguinary battles, liberate four
-hundred captive women and children, try, convict and
-hang thirty-nine Indians for participating in the murder
-of thousands of unsuspecting white settlers, and if, upon
-our return, you are not satisfied, I hope you will in the
-kindness of your heart forgive me for taking you on this
-(at the time) perilous journey.</p>
-
-<p>I will say to my comrades who campaigned solely in the
-South, that my experience, both North and South, leads
-me to believe there is no comparison. In the South we
-fought foemen worthy of our steel,&mdash;soldiers who were
-manly enough to acknowledge defeat, and magnanimous
-enough to respect the defeat of their opponents. Not so
-with the redskins. Their tactics were of the skulking kind;
-their object scalps, and not glory. They never acknowledged
-defeat, had no respect for a fallen foe, and gratified
-their natural propensity for blood. Meeting them in battle
-there was but one choice,&mdash;fight, and one result only,
-if unsuccessful,&mdash;certain death. They knew what the
-flag of truce meant (cessation of hostilities), but had not
-a proper respect for it. They felt safe in coming to us
-with this time-honored symbol of protection, because they
-knew we would respect it. We did not feel safe in going
-to them under like circumstances, because there were those
-among them who smothered every honorable impulse to
-gratify a spirit of revenge and hatred. As an illustration
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_13" id="Page_13">« 13 »</a></span>
-of this I will state, that just after the battle of the
-Big Mound in 1863, we met a delegation of Indians with a
-flag of truce, and while the interpreter was talking to them
-and telling them what the General desired, and some soldiers
-were giving them tobacco and crackers, Dr. Weiser,
-surgeon of the Second Minnesota Cavalry, having on his
-full uniform as major, tempted a villainous fellow, who
-thinking, from the uniform, that it was General Sibley,
-our commander, jumped up, and before his intention could
-be understood, shot him through the back, killing him instantly.
-Treachery of this stamp does not of course apply
-to all the members of all tribes and benighted people; for
-I suppose even in the jungles of Africa, where tribes of
-black men live who have never heard of a white man, we
-could find some endowed with human instincts, who would
-protect those whom the fortunes of war or exploration
-might cast among them. We found some Indians who
-were exceptions to the alleged general rule&mdash;cruel. The
-battles we fought were fierce, escapes miraculous, personal
-experiences wonderful and the liberation of the captives
-a bright chapter in the history of events in this exciting
-year.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_14" id="Page_14">« 14 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_II" id="CHAPTER_II">CHAPTER II.</a></p>
-
-<hr class="r10" />
-
-<p class="caption3">ST. PAUL AND MINNEAPOLIS IN 1836 AND 1896&mdash;FATHER
-HENNEPIN.</p>
-
-<hr class="r10" />
-
-
-<p>As St. Paul, Minnesota, is our starting point, we will
-pause for a little and cultivate the acquaintance of her
-people. The picture represents St. Paul and Minneapolis
-about as we suppose they were previous to 1838, and before
-a white man gazed upon the natural beauties of our great
-country. In the picture you see &ldquo;one of the first families,&rdquo;
-in fact it is the first family, and a healthy, dirty-looking
-lot they are. They had evidently heard that a stranger
-had &ldquo;come to town&rdquo; and the neighbors came in to lend a
-hand in &ldquo;receiving&rdquo; the distinguished guest. The Indian
-kid on the left hand, with his hair a la Paderewski,
-was probably playing marbles with young Dirty-Face-Afraid-of-Soap-and-Water
-in the back yard, when his
-mother whooped for him to come. He looks mad about
-it. They all have on their Sunday clothes and are speculating
-as to whether it is best to get acquainted with the
-forerunner of civilization or not. Their liberties had never
-been abridged. The Indians came and went at will,
-never dreaming that the day was approaching when civilization
-would force them to &ldquo;move on.&rdquo; As early as 1819
-white people were in Minnesota, &rsquo;tis true, but this was
-when Fort St. Anthony was first garrisoned.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_15" id="Page_15">« 15 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 497px;">
-<img src="images/page_015.png" width="497" height="367" alt="" />
-<span class="fig_caption"><span class="smcap">One of the &ldquo;First Families&rdquo; of St. Paul in 1835.</span></span>
-</div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_16" id="Page_16">« 16 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_17" id="Page_17">« 17 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Anterior to this, however, a zealous Franciscan priest,
-Father Hennepin, ascended the Mississippi, by oar, impelled
-on by its beautiful scenery, and in August, 1680,
-he stood upon the brink of the river near where Fort
-Snelling now is, and erected the cross of his church and
-probably was the first to proclaim to the red man the glad
-tidings of &ldquo;Peace on earth, good will to man.&rdquo; He pointed
-them to the cross as the emblem of liberty from superstition,
-but they in their ignorance did not heed his peaceful
-coming, but made him their captive, holding him thus
-for six months, during which time he so completely gained
-their confidence as to cause them to liberate him, and his
-name is still remembered reverentially by them.</p>
-
-<p>Father Hennepin named the Falls of St. Anthony after
-his patron saint, and was the first white man to look upon
-its beauties and listen to the music of Minnehaha, as her
-crystal water rolled over the cliffs and went rippling
-through the grasses and flowers on its merry way to the
-bosom of the &ldquo;Father of Waters.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>Minnehaha, beautiful in sunshine and in shadow; in
-rain-shower and in snow-storm&mdash;for ages has your laughter
-greeted the ear of the ardent Indian lover. Here Hiawatha,
-outstripping all competitors in his love-race, wooed his
-Minnehaha and in triumph carried her away to his far-off
-Ojibway home. The Indians loved this spot and as they
-camped upon its banks and smoked the peace pipe &ldquo;as a
-signal to the nations,&rdquo; dreamed only of peace and plenty.
-The Great Spirit was good to them; but the evil day was
-approaching, invisible yet, then a speck on the horizon,
-but the cloud grew and the &ldquo;pale face&rdquo; was among them.
-Sorrowfully they bid farewell forever to their beautiful
-&ldquo;Laughing Water.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_18" id="Page_18">« 18 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>In these early days it was almost beyond the comprehension
-of man that two populous cities should spring up
-as have St. Paul and Minneapolis, and Pierre Parrant, the
-first settler at St. Paul, little dreamed that the &ldquo;Twin
-Cities,&rdquo; with a population variously estimated at from
-200,000 to 225,000, would greet the eye of the astonished
-beholder in 1896. They sprang into existence and grew
-apace; they met with reverses, as all cities do, but the indomitable
-energy of the men who started out to carve for
-themselves a fortune, achieved their end, and their children
-are now enjoying the fruits of their labor.</p>
-
-<p>There is no city in America that can boast an avenue
-equal to Summit avenue in St. Paul, with its many beautiful
-residences ranging in cost from $25,000 to $350,000.
-Notably among these palatial homes is that of James J.
-Hill, the railroad king of the Northwest. His is a palace
-set on a hill, built in the old English style, situated on an
-eminence overlooking the river and the bluffs beyond.
-The grounds without and the art treasures within are
-equal to those of any home in our country, and such as are
-found only in homes of culture where money in plenty is
-always at hand to gratify every desire.</p>
-
-<p>The avenue winds along the bluff, and the outlook up
-and down the river calls forth exclamations of delight from
-those who can see beauty in our natural American scenery.
-In the springtime, when the trees are in their fresh green
-garb, and budding forth, and in the autumn when the days
-are hazy and short, when the sere of months has painted
-the foliage in variegated colors, and it begins to fall, the
-picture as unfolded to the beholder standing on the bluffs
-is delighting, enchanting.</p>
-
-<p>The urban and interurban facilities for transport from
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_19" id="Page_19">« 19 »</a></span>
-city to city are the best in the world, and is the successful
-result of years of observation and laborious effort on the
-part of the honorable Thomas Lowry, the street railway
-magnate; and the many bridges spanning the &ldquo;Father
-of Waters&rdquo; at either end of the line give evidence of the
-ability of the business men of the two cities to compass
-anything within reason.</p>
-
-<p>Minneapolis, the &ldquo;flour city,&rdquo; noted for its broad streets
-and palatial homes nestling among the trees; its magnificent
-public library building with its well-filled shelves of
-book treasures; its expensive and beautiful public buildings
-and business blocks; its far-famed exposition building,
-and its great cluster of mammoth flouring mills
-that astonish the world, are the pride of every Minnesotian.
-Even the &ldquo;Father of Waters&rdquo; laughs as he leaps over the
-rocks and, winding in and out, drives this world of machinery
-that grinds up wheat&mdash;not by the car-load, but by
-the train-load, and&mdash;&ldquo;Pillsbury&rsquo;s Best&rdquo;&mdash;long since a national
-pride, has become a familiar international brand because
-it can be found in all the great marts of the world.
-What a transformation since 1638! Father Hennepin, no
-doubt, looks down from the battlements of Heaven in
-amazement at the change; and the poor Indians, who had
-been wont to roam about here, unhindered, have long since,
-in sorrow, fled away nearer to the setting sun; but alas!
-he returned and left the imprint of his aroused savage
-nature.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_20" id="Page_20">« 20 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_III" id="CHAPTER_III">CHAPTER III.</a></p>
-
-<hr class="r10" />
-
-<p class="caption3">A PATHETIC CHAPTER&mdash;CAPTAIN CHITTENDEN&rsquo;S MINNEHAHA.</p>
-
-<hr class="r10" />
-
-
-<p>In August, 1862, what do we see? Homes, beautiful
-prairie homes of yesterday, to-day have sunken out of sight,
-buried in their own ashes; the wife of an early love has
-been overtaken and compelled to submit to the unholy
-passion of her cruel captor; the prattling tongues of the
-innocents have been silenced in sudden death, and reason
-dethroned. A most pathetic case was that of Charles Nelson,
-a Swede. The day previous, his dwelling had been
-burned to the ground, his daughter outraged, the head
-of his wife, Lela, cleft by the tomahawk, and while seeking
-to save himself, he saw, for a moment, his two sons, Hans
-and Otto, rushing through the corn-field with the Indians
-in swift pursuit. Returning with the troops under Colonel
-McPhail, and passing by the ruins of his home, he
-gazed about him wildly, and closing the gate of the garden,
-asked: &ldquo;When will it be safe to return?&rdquo; His reason
-was gone!</p>
-
-<p>This pathetic scene witnessed by so many who yet live
-to remember it, was made a chapter entitled, &ldquo;The Maniac,&rdquo;
-in a work from the pen of Mrs. Harriet E. McConkey,
-published soon after it occurred.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_21" id="Page_21">« 21 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 361px;">
-<img src="images/page_021.png" width="361" height="455" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">
-<div class="tdl smaller">Designed by <span class="smcap">A. P. Connolly.</span></div>
-<br />
-<span class="smcap">Minne-ha-ha Falls Before the White Man Ever Saw It.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_22" id="Page_22">« 22 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_23" id="Page_23">« 23 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Captain Chittenden, of Colonel McPhail&rsquo;s command,
-while sitting a few days after, under the Falls of Minnehaha,
-embodied in verse this wonderful tragedy, giving
-to the world the following lines:</p>
-
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">Minne-ha-ha, laughing water,<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">Cease thy laughing now for aye,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Savage hands are red with slaughter<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">Of the innocent to-day.<br /></span>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">Ill accords thy sportive humor<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">With their last despairing wail;<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">While thou&rsquo;rt dancing in the sunbeam,<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">Mangled corpses strew the vale.<br /></span>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">Change thy note, gay Minne-ha-ha;<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">Let some sadder strain prevail&mdash;<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Listen, while a maniac wanderer<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">Sighs to thee his woeful tale;<br /></span>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">&ldquo;Give me back my Lela&rsquo;s tresses,<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">Let me kiss them once again!<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">She, who blest me with caresses<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">Lies unburied on the plain!<br /></span>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">&ldquo;See yon smoke? there was my dwelling;<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">That is all I have of home!<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Hark! I hear their fiendish yelling,<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">As I, houseless, childless, roam!<br /></span>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">&ldquo;Have they killed my Hans and Otto?<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">Did they find them in the corn?<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Go and tell that savage monster<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">Not to slay my youngest born.<br /></span>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">&ldquo;Yonder is my new-bought reaper,<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">Standing mid the ripened grain;<br /></span>
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_24" id="Page_24">« 24 »</a></span>
-<span class="i0">E&rsquo;en my cow asks why I leave her<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">Wand&rsquo;ring, unmilked, o&rsquo;er the plain.<br /></span>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">&ldquo;Soldiers, bury here my Lela;<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">Place <i>me</i> also &rsquo;neath the sod;<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Long we lived and wrought together&mdash;<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">Let me die with her&mdash;O God!<br /></span>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">&ldquo;Faithful Fido, you they&rsquo;ve left me,<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">Can you tell me, Fido, why<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">God at once has thus bereft me?<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">All I ask is here to die.<br /></span>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">&ldquo;O, my daughter Jennie, darling!<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">Worse than death is Jennie&rsquo;s fate!"<br /></span>
-</div>
-<br />
-&nbsp; &nbsp; &nbsp; *&nbsp; &nbsp; &nbsp; *&nbsp; &nbsp; &nbsp; *&nbsp; &nbsp; &nbsp; *&nbsp; &nbsp; &nbsp; *<br />
-<br />
-<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">Nelson, as our troops were leaving<br /></span>
-<span class="i2">Turned and shut his garden gate.<br /></span>
-</div></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_25" id="Page_25">« 25 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 658px; padding-top: 4em;">
-<img src="images/page_025.png" width="658" height="372" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">
-<div class="tdl smaller">Designed by <span class="smcap">A. P. Connolly.</span></div>
-<br />
-<span class="smcap">Father Hennepin Raised the Cross of His Church on the Bank of the Mississippi River
-near where Fort Snelling now Stands in 1618.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_26" id="Page_26">« 26 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_27" id="Page_27">« 27 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_IV" id="CHAPTER_IV">CHAPTER IV.</a></p>
-
-<hr class="r10" />
-
-<p class="caption3">ORIGIN OF INDIANS&mdash;CAPTAIN CARVER&mdash;SITTING BULL.</p>
-
-<hr class="r10" />
-
-
-<p>There is something wonderfully interesting about the
-origin of the Indians. Different writers have different
-theories; John McIntosh, who is an interesting and very
-exhaustive writer on this subject, says they can date their
-origin back to the time of the flood, and that Magog, the
-second son of Japhet, is the real fountain head. Our
-North American Indians, however, were first heard of
-authentically from Father Hennepin, who so early came
-among them.</p>
-
-<p>At a later date, about 1766, Jonathan Carver, a British
-subject and a captain in the army, made a visit of adventure
-to this almost unknown and interesting country.
-The Sioux were then very powerful and occupied the country
-about St. Anthony Falls, and west of the Mississippi,
-and south, taking in a portion of what now is the State
-of Iowa.</p>
-
-<p>The country to the north and northeast was owned by
-the Chippewas. The Sioux then, as later, were a very war-like
-nation, and at the time of Captain Carver&rsquo;s advent
-among them were at war with the Chippewas, their hated
-foes. Captain Carver came among them as a peace-maker;
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_28" id="Page_28">« 28 »</a></span>
-his diplomacy and genial spirit prevailed, and the
-hatchet was buried. For these good offices, the Indians
-ceded to him a large tract of land, extending from the
-Falls of St. Anthony to the foot of Lake Pipin; thence
-east one hundred miles; thence north and west to the place
-of beginning&mdash;a most magnificent domain, truly, and
-which in Europe would call for nothing less than a king
-to supervise its destinies.</p>
-
-<p>A writer, Hon. W. S. Bryant, of St. Paul, Minnesota,
-on this subject, says: &ldquo;That at a later period, after Captain
-Carver&rsquo;s death, congress was petitioned by others than
-his heirs, to confirm the Indian deed, and among the papers
-produced in support of the claim, was a copy of an
-instrument purporting to have been executed at Lake
-Traverse, on the 17th day of February, 1821, by four
-Indians who called themselves chiefs and warriors of the
-Uandowessies&mdash;the Sioux. They declare that their fathers
-did grant to Captain Jonathan Carver this vast tract of
-land and that there is among their people a traditional
-record of the same. This writing is signed by Ouekien
-Tangah, Tashachpi Tainche, Kache Noberie and Petite
-Corbeau (Little Crow).&rdquo; This &ldquo;Petite&rdquo; is undoubtedly
-the father of Little Crow, who figures in this narrative as
-the leader in the massacre.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Carver&rsquo;s claim has never been recognized, although
-the instrument transferring this large tract of
-land to him by the Indians was in existence and in St.
-Paul less than twenty-five years ago. It has since been
-destroyed and the possessors of these valuable acres can
-rest themselves in peace.</p>
-
-<p>In 1862 the red man&rsquo;s ambition was inflamed, and in
-his desire to repossess himself of his lost patrimony, he
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_29" id="Page_29">« 29 »</a></span>
-seeks redress of his wrongs in bloody war. Fort Snelling
-at the junction of the Mississippi and Minnesota rivers
-was the rallying point for the soldiers and we produce a
-picture of it as it appeared then and give something of its
-history from its first establishment up to date.</p>
-
-<p>The great Sioux or Dakotah nation at one time embraced
-the Uncapapas, Assinaboines, Mandans, Crows,
-Winnebagoes, Osages, Kansas, Kappaws, Ottoes, Missourias,
-Iowas, Omahas, Poncas, Nez Perces, Arrickarees,
-Minnetarees, Arkansas, Tetons, Yanktons, Yanktonais,
-and the Pawnees. It was a most powerful nation and
-under favorable conditions could withstand the encroachments
-of our modern civilization. The Ahahaways and
-Unktokas are spoken of as two lost tribes. The Unktokas
-are said to have lived in &ldquo;Wiskonsan,&rdquo; south of the St.
-Croix and were supposed to have been destroyed by the
-Iowas about the commencement of the present century.
-The Ahahaways, a branch of the Crows, lived on the Upper
-Missouri, but were lost&mdash;annihilated by disease, natural
-causes and war. The Uncapapa tribe were from the Missouri,
-and Sitting Bull, whose picture appears, although
-not an hereditary chief, was a strong man among them.
-He was for a time their Medicine Man and counselor. He
-was shrewd and a forceful diplomat; he was a pronounced
-hater of the whites, and has earned notoriety throughout
-the country as the leader of five thousand warriors, who
-annihilated General Custer and his command at the Little
-Big Horn in 1876. After the massacre, this huge Indian
-camp was broken up, and Bull, with more than one thousand
-warriors retreated into the British possessions, from
-whence he made frequent raids upon American soil. His
-band constantly suffered depletion until, in the summer of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_30" id="Page_30">« 30 »</a></span>
-1881, he had but one hundred and sixty followers remaining.
-These he surrendered to Lieutenant-Colonel Brotherton,
-at Fort Buford, and with them was sent as a prisoner
-to Fort Randall, Dakota. He was married four times,
-and had a large family. He was not engaged in the Sioux
-war of 1862, but being a chief of that nation and an important
-Indian character, I introduce him. He has gone
-to the happy hunting ground, some years since, through
-the treachery of the Indian police, who were sent out to
-capture him.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_31" id="Page_31">« 31 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 315px;">
-<img src="images/page_031.png" width="315" height="440" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption"><span class="smcap">Sitting Bull</span>,<br />
-<span class="smaller">The Chief in Command at the Custer Battle of the
-Little Big Horn in 1876.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_32" id="Page_32">« 32 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_33" id="Page_33">« 33 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_V" id="CHAPTER_V">CHAPTER V.</a></p>
-
-<hr class="r10" />
-
-<p class="caption3">FORT SNELLING.<br />
-<br />
-FROM E. D. NEILL&rsquo;S RECOLLECTIONS.</p>
-
-<hr class="r10" />
-
-<p>On the 10th of February, 1819, John C. Calhoun, then
-secretary of war, issued an order for the Fifth regiment of
-infantry to rendezvous at Detroit, preparatory to proceeding
-to the Mississippi to garrison or establish military
-posts, and the headquarters of the regiment was directed
-to be at the fort to be located at the mouth of the Minnesota
-river.</p>
-
-<p>It was not until the 17th of September that Lieutenant-Colonel
-Leavenworth, with a detachment of troops, reached
-this point. A cantonment was first established at New
-Hope, near Mendota, and not far from the ferry. During
-the winter of 1819-20, forty soldiers died from scurvy.</p>
-
-<p>On the 5th of May, 1819, Colonel Leavenworth crossed
-the river and established a summer camp, but his relations
-with the Indian agent were not as harmonious as they
-might have been, and Colonel Josiah Snelling arrived and
-relieved him. On the 10th of September, the cornerstone
-of Fort St. Anthony was laid; the barracks at first
-were of logs.</p>
-
-<p>During the summer of 1820 a party of Sisseton Sioux
-killed on the Missouri Isadore Poupon, a half-breed, and
-Joseph Andrews, a Canadian, two men in the employ of
-the fur company. As soon as the information reached
-the agent, Major Taliaferro, trade with the Sioux was interdicted
-until the guilty were surrendered. Finding that
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_34" id="Page_34">« 34 »</a></span>
-they were deprived of blankets, powder and tobacco, a
-council was held at Big Stone Lake, and one of the murderers,
-and the aged father of another, agreed to go down
-and surrender themselves.</p>
-
-<p>On the 12th of November, escorted by friends and relatives,
-they approached the post. Halting for a brief
-period, they formed and marched in solemn procession to
-the center of the parade ground. In the advance was a
-Sisseton, bearing a British flag; next came the murderer,
-and the old man who had offered himself as an atonement
-for his son, their arms pinioned, and large wooden splinters
-thrust through the flesh above the elbow, indicating
-their contempt for pain; and in the rear followed friends
-chanting the death-song. After burning the British flag
-in front of the sentinels of the fort, they formally delivered
-the prisoners. The murderer was sent under guard to St.
-Louis, and the old man detained as a hostage.</p>
-
-<p>The first white women in Minnesota were the wives of
-the officers of Fort St. Anthony. The first steamer to arrive
-at the new fort was the Virginia, commanded by Captain
-Crawford. The event was so notable that she was
-greeted by a salute from the fort.</p>
-
-<p>In 1824, General Scott, on a tour of inspection, visited
-Fort St. Anthony, and suggested that the name be changed
-to Fort Snelling, in honor of Colonel Snelling, its first
-commander. Upon this suggestion of General Scott and
-for the reason assigned, the war department made the
-change and historic Fort Snelling took its place among
-the defenses of the nation; and from this date up to
-1861, was garrisoned by regulars, who were quartered here
-to keep in check the Indians who were ever on the alert
-for an excuse to avenge themselves on the white settlers.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_35" id="Page_35">« 35 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 652px;">
-<img src="images/page_035.png" width="652" height="368" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption"><span class="smcap">Fort Snelling in 1865.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_36" id="Page_36">« 36 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="caption4"><span class="smcap">Author&rsquo;s Note.</span></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot bbox">
-
-<p>When visiting Fort Snelling during the occasion of the
-holding of the National Encampment of the Grand Army of
-the Republic in St. Paul in September, 1896, I found such a
-change.</p>
-
-<p>The old stone quarters for the use of the rank and file during
-the war days were there, it is true, but are being used for
-purposes other than accommodating the soldiers. I found
-my old squad room, but the old associations were gone; the
-memories of the war days crowded upon me, and I thought
-of the boys whose names and faces I remembered well, but
-they are dead and scattered over the land. Some few were
-there, and we went over our war history, and in the recital,
-recalled the names of our comrades who have been finally
-&ldquo;mustered out&rdquo; and have gone beyond the river.</p>
-
-<p>The present commandant of the beautiful new fort is Colonel
-John H. Page of the Third United States Infantry.
-This officer has been continuously in the service since April,
-1861. He was a private in Company A, First Illinois Artillery,
-and went through all the campaigning of this command
-until the close of the war, when he received an appointment
-in the Regular Establishment, and as Captain was placed on
-recruiting service in Chicago.</p>
-
-<p>His advancement in his regiment has been phenomenal,
-and to be called to the command of a regiment of so renowned
-a record as has the Third Infantry, is an honor to any man,
-no matter where he won his spurs.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Page is a Comrade of U. S. Grant Post No. 28,
-Grand Army of the Republic, Department of Illinois, and is
-also a Companion of the Loyal Legion. He has an interesting
-family who live with him in the enjoyment of his well-earned
-laurels.</p></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_37" id="Page_37">« 37 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>In 1861, and from that to 1866, the scene underwent a
-wondrous change, and volunteers instead of regulars became
-its occupants. All the Minnesota volunteers rendezvoused
-here preparatory to taking the field. Some
-years after the war the department determined to
-make this historic place one of the permanent forts, and
-commenced a series of improvements. Now it is one of
-the finest within the boundary of our country, and we find
-the grounds, 1,500 acres in extent, beautifully laid out,
-and extensive buildings with all the modern improvements
-erected for the accommodation of Uncle Sam&rsquo;s soldiers.</p>
-
-<p>The present post structures consist of an executive building,
-93x64 feet, of Milwaukee brick, two stories and a
-basement, heated by furnaces and with good water supply.
-It contains offices for the commanding general and department
-staff. The officers&rsquo; quarters: a row of thirteen
-brick buildings with all the modern improvements, hot
-and cold water, and a frame stable for each building. Minnesota
-Row: Six double one-story frame buildings, affording
-twelve sets of quarters for clerks and employes. Brick
-Row: A two-story brick building, 123x31 feet, with cellars,
-having sixteen suites of two rooms each, for unmarried
-general service clerks and employes. Quartermaster&rsquo;s
-employes have a one-story brick building, 147x30 feet,
-containing eight sets of quarters of two rooms each, also a
-mess-house, one story brick, 58x25 feet, containing a kitchen
-and dining room, with cellar 30x12 feet. Engineer&rsquo;s
-quarters, school house, quartermaster&rsquo;s corrals, brick
-stables, blacksmith shops, frame carriage house, granary
-and hay-house, ice house, etc., good water works, sewer
-system, and electric lights.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_38" id="Page_38">« 38 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_VI" id="CHAPTER_VI">CHAPTER VI.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">THE ALARM.</p>
-
-
-<p>The Indians! The Indians are coming!</p>
-
-<p>How the cry rang out and struck terror to the hearts
-of the bravest. It brought to mind the stories of early
-days, of this great Republic, when the east was but sparsely
-settled, and the great west an unknown country, with
-the Indian monarch of all he surveyed. The vast prairies,
-with their great herds of buffalo were like the trackless
-seas; the waving forests, dark and limitless; mountain
-ranges&mdash;the Alleghanies, the Rockies and the Sierra Nevadas,
-towering above the clouds; the countless lakes&mdash;fresh
-and salt, hot and cold; the great inland seas; the
-gigantic water falls, and the laughing waters; the immense
-rivers, little rivulets at the mountain source, accumulating
-as they flowed on in their immensity, as silently and
-sullenly they wend their way to the sea; the rocky glens
-and great canyons, the wonder of all the world. It was
-in the early day of our Republic, when the hardy pioneer
-took his little family and out in the wilderness sought a
-new home; a time when the Indian, jealous of the white
-man&rsquo;s encroachment, and possessor by right of previous
-occupation, of this limitless, rich and wonderful empire,
-when great and powerful Indian nations&mdash;The Delawares,
-the Hurons, the Floridas, and other tribes in their native
-splendor and independence, said to the pale face, &ldquo;Thus
-far shalt thou go, and no farther.&rdquo; The terror-stricken
-people were obliged to flee to places of safety, or succumb
-to the tomahawk; and on throughout the Seminole, the
-Black Hawk and other wars, including the great Minnesota
-Massacre of 1862.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_39" id="Page_39">« 39 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 593px;">
-<img src="images/page_039.png" width="593" height="453" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption"><span class="smcap">Squad Room at Fort Snelling.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_40" id="Page_40">« 40 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_41" id="Page_41">« 41 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Reader accompany me. The atmosphere is surcharged
-with excitement, and the whole country is terror-stricken.
-The southland is drenched in blood, and the
-earth trembles under the tread of marching thousands.</p>
-
-<p>The eyes of the nation are turned in that direction, and
-the whole civilized world is interested in the greatest civil
-war of the world&rsquo;s history. The levies from the states are
-enormous, and the stalwarts, by regiments and brigades,
-respond to the call for &ldquo;Six Hundred Thousand more.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>The loyal people of the frontier have long since ceased
-to look upon the Indians as enemies, and tearfully urge
-their husbands and sons to rally to the colors in the South.
-What is taking place in the land of the Dakotahs?</p>
-
-<p>Their empire is fading away, their power is on the
-wane, their game is scarce, and they look with disgust
-and disfavor upon their unnatural environments. In
-poetry and in prose we have read of them in their natural
-way of living. They have been wronged; their vast empire
-has slipped away from them; they laugh, they scowl and
-run from tribe to tribe; they have put on the war-paint
-and broken the pipe of peace; with brandishing tomahawk
-and glistening scalping knife they are on the trail
-of the innocent.</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;Turn out, the regulars are coming!&rdquo; were the ringing
-words of Paul Revere, as he, in mad haste, on April 18,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_42" id="Page_42">« 42 »</a></span>
-1775, on foaming steed, rode through the lowlands of
-Middlesex; so, too, are the unsuspecting people in Minnesota
-aroused by the cry of a courier, who, riding along at
-a break-neck speed shouts: &ldquo;The Indians, the Indians
-are coming!&rdquo; All nature is aglow; the sun rises from his
-eastern bed and spreads his warm, benign rays over this
-prairie land, and its happy occupants, as this terrific
-sound rings out on the morning air, are aroused and the
-cry: &ldquo;Come over and help us&rdquo; from the affrighted families,
-as they forsake their homes and flee for their lives,
-speeds on its way to ears that listen and heed their earnest,
-heart-piercing not, of despair, for the &ldquo;Boys in Blue&rdquo;
-respond.</p>
-
-<p>The people had been warned by friendly Indians that
-the fire brands would soon be applied; and that once
-started, none could tell where it would end. They were
-implored to take heed and prepare for the worst; but unsuspecting,
-they had been so long among their Indian
-friends, they could not believe that treachery would bury
-all feelings of friendship; but alas! thousands were slain.</p>
-
-<p>Go with me into their country and witness the sad results
-of a misguided people, and note how there was a division
-in their camp. The hot young bloods, ever ready for adventure
-and bloody adventure at that, had dragged their
-nation into an unnecessary war and the older men and
-conservative men with sorrowful hearts counselled together
-how best to extricate themselves and protect the lives
-of those who were prisoners among them. The campaign
-of 1862 is on.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_43" id="Page_43">« 43 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_VII" id="CHAPTER_VII">CHAPTER VII.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">SOME OF THE CAUSES OF THE WAR.</p>
-
-
-<p>Lo! the poor Indian, has absorbed much of the people&rsquo;s
-attention and vast sums of Uncle Sam&rsquo;s money;
-and being a participant in the great Sioux war of
-1862, what I write deals with facts and not fiction, as we
-progress from Fort Snelling, Minnesota, to &ldquo;Camp Release,&rdquo;
-where we found and released over four hundred
-white captives. But I will digress for a time and look into
-the causes leading up to this cruel Sioux war that cost so
-many lives and so much treasure. There is a great diversity
-of opinion on this question, and while not particularly
-in love with the Indian, I have not the temerity to criticise
-the Almighty because he puts his impress white upon some,
-and red upon others; neither shall I sit in judgment and
-say there are no good Indians&mdash;except dead ones. The Indian
-question proper is of too great a magnitude to analyze
-and treat with intelligence in this little book; but in the
-abstract, and before we enter upon the active campaign
-against them, let us look at it and see if the blame does
-not to a great extent rest more with the government than
-it does with these people. The Indians came from we
-know not where&mdash;legends have been written and tradition
-mentions them as among the earliest known possessors
-of this great western world. The biologist speculates, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_44" id="Page_44">« 44 »</a></span>
-it is a matter of grave doubt as to their origin. Certain it is,
-that as far back as the time of Columbus they were found
-here, and we read nothing in the early history of the voyages
-of this wonderful navigator to convince us that the
-Indians were treacherous;&mdash;indeed we would rather incline
-to the opposite opinion. The racial war began with the
-conquest of the Spaniards. In their primitive condition,
-the Indians were possessed of a harmless superstition&mdash;they
-knew no one but of their kind; knew nothing of another
-world; knew nothing of any other continent in this world.
-When they discovered the white men and the ships with
-their sails spread, they looked upon the former as supernatural
-beings and the ships as great monsters with wings.
-Civilization and the Indian nature are incompatible and
-evidences of this were soon apparent. The ways of the
-Europeans were of course unknown to them. They were
-innocent of the white man&rsquo;s avaricious propensities and
-the practice of &ldquo;give and take&rdquo; (and generally more take
-than give) was early inaugurated by the sailors of Columbus
-and the nefarious practice has been played by a certain
-class of Americans ever since. Soon their suspicions
-were aroused and friendly intercourse gave place to wars of
-extermination. The Indian began to look upon the
-white man as his natural enemy; fighting ensued; tribes
-became extinct; territory was ceded, and abandoned.
-Soon after American Independence had been declared, the
-Indians became the wards of the nation. The government,
-instead of treating them as wards and children, has
-uniformly allowed them to settle their own disputes in
-their own peculiar and savage way, and has looked upon
-the bloody feuds among the different tribes much as Plug
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_45" id="Page_45">« 45 »</a></span>
-Uglies and Thugs do a disreputable slugging match or
-dog-fight. A writer says:</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;If they are wards of the nation, why not take them
-under the strong arm of the law and deal with them as
-with others who break the law? Make an effort to civilize,
-and if civilization exterminates them it will be an honorable
-death,&mdash;to the nation at least. Send missionaries
-among them instead of thieving traders; implements of
-peace, rather than weapons of war; Bibles instead of scalping
-knives; religious tracts instead of war paint; make an
-effort to Christianize instead of encouraging them in their
-savagery and laziness; such a course would receive the
-commendation and acquiescence of the Christian world.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>There is not a sensible, unprejudiced man in America
-to-day, who gives the matter thought, but knows that the
-broken treaties and dishonest dealing with the Indians
-are a disgrace to this nation; and the impress of injustice
-is deeply and justly engraven upon the savage mind. The
-lesson taught by observation was that lying was no disgrace,
-adultery no sin, and theft no crime. This they
-learned from educated white men who had been sent to
-them as the representatives of the government; and these
-educated gentlemen (?) looked upon the Indian as common
-property, and to filch him of his money by dishonest practices,
-a pleasant pastime. The Indian woman did not escape
-his lecherous eye and if his base proposals were rejected,
-he had other means to resort to to enable him to
-accomplish his base desire. These wards were only Indians
-and why respect their feelings? &ldquo;Sow the wind and reap
-the whirlwind.&rdquo; The whirlwind came and oh, the sad results!</p>
-
-<p>The Indians were circumscribed in their hunting
-grounds by the onward march of civilization which
-crowded them on every side and their only possible hope
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_46" id="Page_46">« 46 »</a></span>
-from starvation, was in the fidelity with which a great nation
-kept its pledges. &rsquo;Tis true, money was appropriated
-by the government for this purpose, but it is equally true
-that gamblers and thieving traders set up fictitious claims
-and the Indians came out in debt and their poor families
-were left to starve. Hungry, exasperated and utterly
-powerless to help themselves, they resolved on savage
-vengeance when the propitious time arrived.</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;The villainy you teach me I will execute,&rdquo; became a
-living, bloody issue. This did not apply alone to the
-Sioux nation, but to the Chippewas as well. These people
-have always been friends of the whites, and have uniformly
-counselled peace; but broken pledges and impositions
-filled the friendly ones with sorrow, and the others
-with anger. The commissioners, no doubt, rectified the
-wrong as soon as it was brought to their notice, but the
-Indians were plucked all the same and had sense enough
-to know it. Our country is cursed with politicians&mdash;the
-statesmen seem to have disappeared; but, the politician
-grows like rank weeds and the desire for &ldquo;boodle&rdquo;
-permeates our municipal, state and national affairs. Our
-Indian system has presented a fat field so long as these
-wards of the nation submitted to being fleeced by unprincipled
-agents and their gambling friends, but at last, the
-poor Indian is aroused to the enormity of the imposition
-and the innocent whites had to suffer. In some instances
-the vengeance of God followed the unscrupulous agent
-and the scalping knife in the hand of the injured Indian
-was made the instrument whereby this retribution came.</p>
-
-<p>There has been a great deal said of Indian warriors&mdash;we
-have read of them in poetry and in prose and of the
-beautiful Indian maiden as well. The Sioux warriors are
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_47" id="Page_47">« 47 »</a></span>
-tall, athletic, fine looking men, and those who have not
-been degraded by the earlier and rougher frontier white
-man, or had their intellects destroyed by the white man&rsquo;s
-fire-water, possess minds of a high order and can reason
-with a correctness that would astonish our best scholars
-and put to blush many of our so-called statesmen, and entirely
-put to rout a majority of the men who, by the grace
-of men&rsquo;s votes hold down Congressional chairs. Yet they
-are called savages and are associated in our minds with
-tomahawks and scalping knives. Few regard them as
-reasoning creatures and some even think they are not
-endowed by their Creator with souls. Good men are
-sending Bibles to all parts of the world, sermons are
-preached in behalf of our fellow-creatures who are perishing
-in regions known only to us by name; yet here within easy
-reach, but a few miles from civilization, surrounded by
-churches and schools and all the moral influences abounding
-in Christian society; here, in a country endowed with
-every advantage that God can bestow, are perishing, body
-and soul, our countrymen&mdash;perishing from disease, starvation
-and intemperance and all the evils incident to their
-unhappy condition. I have no apology to make for the
-savage atrocities of any people, be they heathen or Christian,
-or pretended Christian; and we can point to pages of
-history where the outrages perpetrated by the soldiers of
-so-called Christian nations, under the sanction of their
-governments, would cause the angels to weep. Look at
-bleeding Armenia, the victim of the lecherous Turk, who
-has satiated his brutal, bestial nature in the blood and innocency
-of tens of thousands of men, women and children;
-and yet, the Christian nations of the world look on
-with indifference at these atrocities and pray: "Oh, Lord,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_48" id="Page_48">« 48 »</a></span>
-pour out Thy blessings on us and protect us while we are
-unmindful of the appeals of mothers and daughters in
-poor Armenia!&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>This royal, lecherous, murderous Turk, instead of being
-dethroned and held to a strict accountability for the horrible
-butcheries, and worse than butcheries, going on
-within his kingdom and for which he, and he alone, is
-responsible, is held in place by Christian and civilized
-nations for fear that some one shall, in the partition of his
-unholy empire, get a bigger slice than is its equitable share.</p>
-
-<p>The &ldquo;sick man&rdquo; has been allowed for the last half century
-to commit the most outrageous crimes against an
-inoffensive, honest, progressive, and law-abiding people,
-and no vigorous protest has gone out against it. Shall
-we, then, mercilessly condemn the poor Indians because,
-driven from pillar to post, with the government pushing
-in front and hostile tribes and starvation in their rear,
-they have in vain striven for a bare existence? Whole
-families have starved while the fathers were away on their
-hunt for game. Through hunger and disease powerful
-tribes have become but a mere band of vagabonds.</p>
-
-<p>America, as she listens to the dying wail of the red man,
-driven from the forests of his childhood and the graves
-of his fathers, cannot afford to throw stones; but rather
-let her redeem her broken pledges to these helpless, benighted,
-savage children, and grant them the protection
-they have the right to expect, nay, demand.</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;I will wash my hands in innocency&rdquo; will not suffice.
-Let the government make amends, and in the future mete
-out to the dishonest agent such a measure of punishment
-as will strike terror to him and restore the confidence of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_49" id="Page_49">« 49 »</a></span>
-the Indians who think they have been unjustly dealt with.
-But to my theme.</p>
-
-<p>The year of which I write was a time in St. Paul
-when the Indian was almost one&rsquo;s next door neighbor,&mdash;a
-time when trading between St. Paul and Winnipeg
-was carried on principally by half-breeds, and
-the mode of transportation the crude Red river cart,
-which is made entirely of wood,&mdash;not a scrap of iron in its
-whole make-up. The team they used was one ox to a cart,
-and the creak of this long half-breed train, as it wended
-its way over the trackless country, could be heard twice
-a year as it came down to the settlements laden with furs
-to exchange for supplies for families, and hunting purposes.
-It was at a time when the hostile bands of Sioux
-met bands of Chippewas, and in the immediate vicinity
-engaged in deadly conflict, while little attention was paid
-to their feuds by the whites or the government at Washington.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_50" id="Page_50">« 50 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_VIII" id="CHAPTER_VIII">CHAPTER VIII.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">LITTLE CROW AT DEVIL&rsquo;S LAKE.</p>
-
-
-<p>It was in August, 1861, on the western border of
-Devil&rsquo;s Lake, Dakota, there sat an old Indian chief in the
-shade of his wigwam, preparing a fresh supply of kinnikinnick.</p>
-
-<p>The mantle of evening was veiling the sky as this old
-chief worked and the events of the past were crowding his
-memory. He muses alone at the close of the day, while
-the wild bird skims away on its homeward course and the
-gathering gloom of eventide causes a sigh to escape his
-breast, as many sweet pictures of past happy years &ldquo;come
-flitting again with their hopes and their fears.&rdquo; The
-embers of the fire have gone out and he and his dog alone
-are resting on the banks of the lake after the day&rsquo;s hunt;
-and, as he muses, he wanders back to the time when in
-legend lore the Indian owned the Western world; the hills
-and the valleys, the vast plains and their abundance, the
-rivers, the lakes and the mountains were his; great herds
-of buffalo wended their way undisturbed by the white
-hunter; on every hand abundance met his gaze, and the
-proud Red Man with untainted blood, and an eye filled
-with fire, looked out toward the four points of the compass,
-and, with beating heart, thanked the Great Spirit
-for this goodly heritage. To disturb his dream the white
-man came, and as the years rolled on, step by step,
-pressed him back;&mdash;civilization brought its cunning and
-greed for money-getting. A generous government, perhaps
-too confiding, allowed unprincipled men to rob and
-crowd, and crowd and rob, until the Mississippi is reached
-and the farther West is portioned out to him for his future
-residence. The influx of whites from Europe and the
-rapidly increasing population demand more room, and
-another move is planned by the government for the Indians,
-until they are crowding upon the borders of unfriendly
-tribes.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_51" id="Page_51">« 51 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 568px;">
-<img src="images/page_051.png" width="568" height="387" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption"><div class="tdl smaller">Designed by <span class="smcap">A. P. Connolly</span>.</div><br />
-<br />
-<span class="smcap">Little Crow Sitting Meditating on the Banks of Devil&rsquo;s
-Lake, Dakota, August, 1862.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_52" id="Page_52">« 52 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_53" id="Page_53">« 53 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>This old chief of whom we speak awoke from his meditative
-dream, and in imagination we see him with shaded
-eyes looking afar off toward the mountain. He beholds a
-cloud no bigger than a man&rsquo;s hand; he strains his eye,
-and eagerly looks, for he sees within the pent-up environments
-of this cloud all the hatred and revenge with which
-his savage race is endowed. The cloud that is gathering
-is not an imaginative one, but it will burst in time upon
-the heads of guilty and innocent alike; and the old chief
-chuckles as he thinks of the scalps he will take from the
-hated whites, and the great renown, and wonderful power
-yet in store for him. His runners go out visiting other
-bands and tell what the old chief expects. They give
-their assent to it, and as they talk and speculate, they too,
-become imbued with a spirit of revenge and a desire to
-gain back the rich heritage their fathers once held in possession
-for them, but which has passed from their control.
-They are not educated, it is true, but nature has endowed
-them with intelligence enough to understand that their
-fathers had bartered away an empire, and in exchange had
-taken a limited country, illy adapted to their wants and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_54" id="Page_54">« 54 »</a></span>
-crude, uncivilized habits. This old chief&rsquo;s mind is made
-up, and we will meet him again&mdash;aye! on fields of blood
-and carnage.</p>
-
-<p>The government had acted in good faith, and had supplied
-the Indians with material for building small brick
-houses, furnishing, in addition to money payments and
-clothing, farming implements and all things necessary to
-enable them to support themselves on their fertile farms;
-and missionaries, also, were among them, and competent
-teachers, ready to give the young people, as they grew up,
-an education, to enable them to better their condition and
-take on the habits and language of the white settlers.</p>
-
-<p>But the devil among the Indians, as among the whites,
-finds &ldquo;some mischief still for idle hands to do;&rdquo; gamblers
-and other unprincipled men followed the agents, hob-nobbed
-with them, and laid their plans to &ldquo;hold-up and
-bunko&rdquo; the Indians, who, filled with fire-water and a passion
-for gambling, soon found themselves stripped of
-money, ponies and blankets, with nothing in view but a
-long, cold, dreary winter and starvation. A gambler
-could kill an Indian and all he had to fear was an Indian&rsquo;s
-vengeance (for the civil law never took cognizance of
-the crime); but if an Indian, filled with rum, remorse and
-revenge, killed a gambler, he was punished to the full extent
-of the law. In this one thing the injustice was so
-apparent that even an Indian could see it; and he made
-up his mind that when the time came he would even up
-the account. The savage Indians were intelligent enough
-to know that in these transactions it was the old story of
-the handle on the jug&mdash;all on one side.</p>
-
-<p>Those of the &ldquo;friendlies&rdquo; who were Christianized and
-civilized were anxious to bury forever all remains of savagery
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_55" id="Page_55">« 55 »</a></span>
-and become citizens of the nation, and if the government
-had placed honorable men over them to administer
-the law, their influence would have been felt, and in
-time the leaven of law and order, would have leavened the
-whole Sioux nation. The various treaties that had been
-made with them by the government did not seem to
-satisfy the majority, and whether there was any just cause
-for this dissatisfaction I do not propose to discuss; but,
-that a hostile feeling did exist was apparent, as subsequent
-events proved.</p>
-
-<p>The provisions of the treaties for periodical money payments,
-although carried out with substantial honesty,
-failed to fulfill the exaggerated expectations of the Indians;
-and these matters of irritation added fuel to the fire of
-hostility, which always has, and always will exist between
-a civilized and a barbarous nation, when brought into immediate
-contact; and especially has this been the case
-where the savages were proud, brave and lordly warriors,
-who looked with supreme contempt upon all civilized
-methods of obtaining a living, and who felt amply able to
-defend themselves and avenge their wrongs. Nothing
-special has been discovered to have taken place other than
-the general dissatisfaction referred to, to which the outbreak
-of 1862 can be immediately attributed. This outbreak
-was charged to emissaries from the Confederates of
-the South, but there was no foundation for these allegations.
-The main reason was that the Indians were hungry
-and angry; they had become restless, and busy-bodies
-among them had instilled within them the idea that the
-great war in the South was drawing off able-bodied men
-and leaving the women and children at home helpless.
-Some of the ambitious chiefs thought it a good opportunity
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_56" id="Page_56">« 56 »</a></span>
-to regain their lost country and exalt themselves in
-the eyes of their people. The most ambitious of the lot
-was Little Crow, the old chief we saw sitting in the shade
-of his wigwam on Devil&rsquo;s Lake. He was a wily old fox
-and knew how to enlist the braves on his side. After the
-battles of Birch Coolie and Wood Lake, Minnesota, in
-September, 1862, he deserted his warriors, and was discovered
-one day down in the settlements picking berries
-upon which to subsist. Refusing to surrender, he was
-shot, and in his death the whites were relieved of an implacable
-foe, and the Indians deprived of an intrepid and
-daring leader.</p>
-
-<p>There was nothing about the agencies up to August 18,
-1862, to indicate that the Indians intended, or even
-thought, of an attack. Everything had an appearance of
-quiet and security. On the 17th of August, however, a
-small party of Indians appeared at Acton, Minnesota, and
-murdered several settlers, but it was not generally thought
-that they left the agency with this in mind; this killing
-was an afterthought, a diversion; but, on the news of
-these murders reaching the Indians at the Upper Agency
-on the 18th, open hostilities were at once commenced and
-the whites and traders indiscriminately murdered. George
-Spencer was the only white man in the stores who escaped
-with his life. He was twice wounded, however, and running
-upstairs in the loft hid himself away and remained
-concealed until the Indians, thinking no more white people
-remained, left the place, when an old squaw took
-Spencer to her home and kept him until his fast friend,
-Chaska, came and took him under his protection. The
-picture of Spencer is taken from an old-time photograph.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_57" id="Page_57">« 57 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 267px;">
-<img src="images/page_057.png" width="267" height="380" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption"><span class="smcap">George Spencer</span>,<br />
-<br />
-<span class="smaller">Who was Saved by Chaska, August, 1862.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The missionaries residing a short distance above the
-Yellow Medicine, and their people, with a few others, were
-notified by friendly disposed Indians, and to the number
-of about forty made their escape to Hutchinson, Minnesota.
-Similar events occurred at the Lower Agency on
-the same day, when nearly all the traders were butchered,
-and several who got away before the general massacre
-commenced were killed before reaching Fort Ridgely,
-thirteen miles below, or the other places of safety to which
-they were fleeing. All the buildings at both agencies
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_58" id="Page_58">« 58 »</a></span>
-were destroyed, but such property as was valuable to the
-Indians was carried off.</p>
-
-<p>The news of the outbreak reached Fort Ridgely about 8
-o&rsquo;clock a. m. on the 18th of August through the arrival of
-a team from the Lower Agency, which brought a citizen
-badly wounded, but no details. Captain John F. Marsh,
-of the Fifth Minnesota, with eighty-five men, was holding
-the fort, and upon the news reaching him he transferred
-his command of the fort to Lieutenant Gere and
-with forty-five men started for the scene of hostilities.
-He had a full supply of ammunition, and with a six-mule
-team left the fort at 9 a. m. on the 18th of August, full of
-courage and anxious to get to the relief of the panic-stricken
-people. On the march up, evidences of the Indians&rsquo;
-bloody work soon appeared, for bodies were found
-by the roadside of those who had recently been murdered,
-one of whom was Dr. Humphrey, surgeon at the agency.
-On reaching the vicinity of the ferry no Indians were in
-sight except one on the opposite side of the river, who endeavored
-to induce the soldiers to cross. A dense chaparral
-bordered the river on the agency side and tall grass
-covered the bottom land on the side where the troops were
-stationed. From various signs, suspicions were aroused of
-the presence of Indians, and the suspicions proved correct,
-for without a moment&rsquo;s notice, Indians in great numbers
-sprang up on all sides of the troops and opened a deadly
-fire. About half of the men were instantly killed. Finding
-themselves surrounded, desperate hand-to-hand encounters
-occurred, with varying results, and the remnant
-of the command made a point down the river about two
-miles from the ferry, Captain Marsh being among the
-number. They evidently attempted to cross, but Captain
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_59" id="Page_59">« 59 »</a></span>
-Marsh was drowned in the effort, and only thirteen of his
-command escaped and reached the fort alive. Captain
-Marsh, in his excitement, may have erred in judgment
-and deemed it more his duty to attack than retreat; but
-the great odds of five hundred Indians to forty-five soldiers
-was too great and the captain and his brave men paid the
-penalty. He was young, brave and ambitious and knew
-but little of the Indians&rsquo; tactics in war; but he no doubt
-believed he was doing his duty in advancing rather than
-retreating, and his countrymen will hold his memory and
-the memory of those who gave up their lives with him in
-warmer esteem than they would had he adopted the more
-prudent course of retracing his steps.</p>
-
-<p>At a later date, in 1876, it will be remembered, the brave
-Custer was led into a similar trap, and of the five companies
-of the Seventh United States cavalry and their intrepid
-commanders only one was left to tell the tale.</p>
-
-<p>After having massacred the people at the agencies, the
-Indians at once sent out marauding parties in all directions
-and covered the country from the northeast as far
-as Glencoe, Hutchinson and St. Peter, Minnesota, and as
-far south as Spirit Lake, Iowa. In their trail was to be
-found their deadly work of murder and devastation, for at
-least one thousand men, women and children were found
-brutally butchered, houses burned, and beautiful farms
-laid waste. The settlers, being accustomed to the friendly
-visits of these Indians, were taken completely unawares
-and were given no opportunity for defense.</p>
-
-<p>Major Thomas Galbraith, the Sioux agent, had raised a
-company known as the Renville Rangers, and was expecting
-to report at Fort Snelling for muster and orders to
-proceed south to join one of the Minnesota commands;
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_60" id="Page_60">« 60 »</a></span>
-but upon his arrival at St. Peter, on the evening of August
-18, he learned the news of the outbreak at the agencies,
-and immediately retraced his steps, returning to Fort
-Ridgely, where he arrived on the 19th. On the same day
-Lieutenant Sheehan, of the Fifth Minnesota Infantry,
-with fifty men, arrived also, in obedience to a dispatch received
-from Captain Marsh, who commanded the post at
-Fort Ridgely. Lieutenant Sheehan, in enthusiasm and
-appearance, resembled General Sheridan. He was young
-and ambitious, and entered into this important work with
-such vim as to inspire his men to deeds of heroic valor.
-Upon receipt of Captain Marsh&rsquo;s dispatch ordering him
-to return at once, as &ldquo;The Indians are raising hell at the
-Lower Agency!&rdquo; he so inspired his men so as to make the
-forced march of forty-two miles in nine hours and a half,
-and he did not arrive a minute too soon. After Captain
-Marsh&rsquo;s death he became the ranking officer at Fort Ridgely,
-and the mantle of authority could not fall on more
-deserving shoulders. His command consisted of Companies
-B and C of the Fifth Minnesota, 100 men; Renville
-Rangers, 50 men; with several men of other organizations,
-including Sergeant John Jones (afterwards captain
-of artillery), and quite a number of citizen refugees,
-and a party that had been sent up by the Indian agent
-with the money to pay the Indians at the agency.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_61" id="Page_61">« 61 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 638px;">
-<img src="images/page_061.png" width="638" height="376" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption"><div class="tdl smaller">Designed by <span class="smcap">A. P. Connolly</span>.</div><br />
-<br />
-<span class="smcap">Siege of Fort Ridgely, August 20, 21 and 22.</span><br />
-<br />
-<span class="smaller">Indians fired the Fort with burning arrows, but were finally defeated by General Sibley&rsquo;s Column.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_62" id="Page_62">« 62 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_63" id="Page_63">« 63 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_IX" id="CHAPTER_IX">CHAPTER IX.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">FORT RIDGELY BESIEGED.</p>
-
-
-<p>Fort Ridgely was a fort in name only. It was not built
-for defense, but was simply a collection of buildings built
-around a square facing inwards. The commandant&rsquo;s
-quarters, and those of the officers, also, were two-story
-structures of wood, while the men&rsquo;s barracks of two stories
-and the commissary storehouse were stone, and into these
-the families of the officers and soldiers and the refugee
-families were placed during the siege. On the 20th of
-August, 1862, about 3 p. m., an attack was made upon
-the fort by a large body of Indians, who stealthily came
-down the ravines and surrounded it. The first intimation
-the people and the garrison had of their proximity
-was a volley from the hostile muskets pouring between the
-openings of the buildings. The sudden onslaught caused
-great consternation, but order was soon restored.</p>
-
-<p>Sergeant Jones, of the battery, who had seen service in
-the British army, as well as in our own regular army, in
-attempting to turn his guns on the Indians found to his
-utter astonishment that the pieces had been tampered
-with by some of the half-breeds belonging to the Renville
-Rangers who had deserted to the enemy. They had spiked
-the guns by ramming old rags into them. The sergeant
-soon made them serviceable, however, and brought his
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_64" id="Page_64">« 64 »</a></span>
-pieces to bear upon the Indians in such an effective way
-as to teach them a lesson in artillery practice they did not
-forget. The &ldquo;rotten balls,&rdquo; as they termed the shells, fell
-thick and fast among them, and the havoc was so great
-that they withdrew out of range to hold a council of war
-and recover from their surprise. The fight lasted, however,
-for three hours, with a loss to the garrison of three
-killed and eighteen wounded. On the morning of Thursday,
-the 21st of August, the attack was renewed by the
-Indians, and they made a second attack in the afternoon,
-but with less force and earnestness and but little damage
-to the garrison. The soldiers were on the alert and the
-night was an anxious one, for the signs from the hostiles
-indicated that they were making preparations for a further
-attempt to capture the fort. During the night barricades
-were placed at all open spaces between the buildings, and
-the little garrison band instructed, each man&rsquo;s duty specified,
-and directions given to the women and children, who
-were placed in the stone barracks, to lie low so as not to be
-harmed by bullets coming in at the windows. On Friday,
-the 22d, Little Crow, the then Sioux commander in chief,
-had the fort surrounded by 650 warriors whom he had
-brought down from the agency. He had them concealed
-in the ravines which surrounded the fort, and endeavored
-by sending a few of the warriors out on the open prairie
-to draw the garrison out from the fort, but fortunately
-there were men there who had previously had experience
-in Indian warfare, and the scheme of this wily old Indian
-fox did not work. Little Crow, finding it useless to further
-maneuver in this way, ordered an attack. The showers
-of bullets continued for seven long hours, or until
-about 7 p. m., but the attack was courageously and bitterly
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_65" id="Page_65">« 65 »</a></span>
-opposed by the infantry, and this, together with the
-skillfully handled artillery by Sergeant Jones, saved the
-garrison for another day. The Indians sought shelter behind
-and in the outlying wooden buildings, but well directed
-shells from the battery fired these buildings and
-routed the Indians, who in turn made various attempts by
-means of fire arrows to ignite the wooden buildings of the
-fort proper. But for the daring and vigilance of the
-troops the enemy would have succeeded in their purpose.
-The Indians lost heavily in this engagement, while the
-loss to the troops was one killed and seven wounded. Lieutenant
-Sheehan, the commander of the post, was a man of
-true grit, and he was ably assisted by Lieutenant Gorman
-of the Renville Rangers, and Sergeants Jones and McGrau
-of the battery. Every man was a hero and did his
-whole duty. Surrounded as they were by hundreds of
-bloodthirsty savages, this little band was all that stood
-between the hundreds of women and children refugees
-and certain death, or worse than death! Besides, the government
-storehouses were filled with army supplies, and
-about $75,000 in gold, with which they intended making
-an annuity payment to these same Indians.</p>
-
-<p>The water supply being cut off, the soldiers and all the
-people, especially the wounded, suffered severely, but Post
-Surgeon Mueller and his noble wife heroically responded
-to the urgent calls of the wounded sufferers irrespective of
-danger. Mrs. Mueller was a lovely woman of the heroic
-type. During the siege, in addition to caring for the
-wounded, she made coffee, and in the night frequently
-visited all the men who were on guard and plentifully supplied
-them with this exhilarating beverage. An incident
-in relation to her also is, that during the siege the Indians
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_66" id="Page_66">« 66 »</a></span>
-had sheltered themselves behind a haystack and from it
-were doing deadly work. Sergeant Jones could not bring
-his twenty-four pounder to bear on them without exposing
-his men too much, unless he fired directly through a
-building that stood in the way. This house was built as
-they are on the plantations in the South, with a broad hall
-running from the front porch clear through to the rear. In
-the rear of this hall were rough double doors, closed principally
-in winter time to keep the snow from driving through.
-The sergeant had them closed and then brought his piece
-around in front, and the Indians away back of the house
-could not see what the maneuvering was. He crept up
-and attached a rope to the handle of the door, and looking
-through the cracks got the range and then sighted his
-gun. Mrs. Mueller, sheltered and out of harm&rsquo;s way, held
-the end of the attached rope. The signal for her to pull
-open the doors was given by Sergeant Jones, and this
-signal was the dropping of a handkerchief. When the
-signal came, with good nerve, she pulled the rope and
-open flew the doors. Immediately the gunner pulled the
-lanyard and the shell with lighted fuse landed in the haystacks,
-which were at once set fire to and the Indians dislodged.
-This lady died at her post, beloved by all who
-knew her, and a grateful government has erected an expensive
-monument over her remains, which lie buried in
-the soldiers&rsquo; cemetery at Fort Ridgely, where, with hundreds
-of others whose pathway to the grave was smoothed
-by her motherly hands, they will remain until the great
-reveille on the resurrection dawn.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_67" id="Page_67">« 67 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 265px;">
-<a id="CHAPTER_X"></a>
-<img src="images/page_067.png" width="265" height="354" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">LITTLE CROW.</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="caption2">CHAPTER X.</p>
-
-<p class="caption3">SIEGE OF NEW ULM.</p>
-
-
-<p>Little Crow, finding himself baffled in his attempt to
-capture the fort, and learning from his scouts that Colonel
-Sibley was on his way with two regiments to relieve the
-garrison, concentrated all his forces and proceeded to New
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_68" id="Page_68">« 68 »</a></span>
-Ulm, about thirteen miles distant, which he intended to
-wipe out the next morning. Here, again, he was disappointed.
-The hero of New Ulm was Hon. Charles E.
-Flandreau, who deserves more than a passing notice. By
-profession he is a lawyer, and at this time was a judge on
-the bench, and is now enjoying a lucrative practice in St.
-Paul. By nature he is an organizer and a leader, and to
-his intrepid bravery and wise judgment New Ulm and her
-inhabitants owe their salvation from the savagery of Little
-Crow and his bloodthirsty followers. He had received
-the news of the outbreak at his home near St. Peter in the
-early morning of August 19, and at once decided what
-should be done to save the people.</p>
-
-<p>His duty to wife and children was apparent, and to
-place them in safety was his first thought, which he did
-by taking them to St. Peter. He then issued a call for
-volunteers, and in response to this soon found himself
-surrounded by men who needed no second bidding, for
-the very air was freighted with the terror of the situation.
-Armed with guns of any and all descriptions, with bottles
-of powder, boxes of caps and pockets filled with bullets,
-one hundred and twenty men, determined on revenge,
-pressed forward to meet this terrible foe.</p>
-
-<p>Where should they go? Rumors came from all directions,
-and one was that Fort Ridgely was being besieged
-and had probably already fallen. Their eyes also turned
-toward New Ulm, which was but thirteen miles distant
-and in an absolutely unprotected condition. Its affrighted
-people were at the mercy of this relentless enemy. The
-work Judge Flandreau performed in perfecting an organization
-was masterful, for the men who flocked in and
-offered their services he could not control in a military
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_69" id="Page_69">« 69 »</a></span>
-sense, because they were not enlisted. The emergency
-was very great and it was necessary to do the right thing
-and at the right time and to strike hard and deadly blows,
-and trusted men were sent forward to scout and report.
-Hon. Henry A. Swift, afterwards governor of Minnesota,
-rendered good service in company with William G. Hayden
-as they scouted the country in a buggy. It was a
-novel way to scout, but horses were too scarce to allow a
-horse to each. An advance guard was sent forward about
-noon, and an hour later the balance of the command was
-in motion, eagerly pushing forward and anxious to meet
-the enemy wherever he might be found. The advance
-guard which Flandreau sent out to determine whether
-Fort Ridgely or New Ulm should be the objective point
-had not yet been heard from, and, that no time might be
-lost, he determined that he would push forward to New
-Ulm, and if that village was safe he would turn his attention
-to Ridgely. He found his guard at New Ulm, and
-they had been largely reinforced by other men who came
-in to help protect the place. They arrived just in time
-to assist in repelling an attack of about two hundred Indians,
-who had suddenly surrounded the little village.
-Before the arrival of Flandreau and his command they
-could see the burning houses in the distance, and by this
-they knew that the work of devastation had commenced,
-and the forced march was kept up. The rain was pouring
-in torrents, and yet they had made thirty-two miles in
-seven hours and reached the place about 8 o&rsquo;clock in the
-evening.</p>
-
-<p>The next day reinforcements continued to come in from
-various points until the little army of occupation numbered
-three hundred effective and determined men. A
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_70" id="Page_70">« 70 »</a></span>
-council of war was called and a line of defense determined
-upon by throwing up barricades in nearly all the streets.</p>
-
-<p>The situation was a very grave one and it was soon apparent
-that a one-man power was necessary&mdash;that a guiding
-mind must control the actions of this hastily gathered
-army of raw material; and to this end, Judge Flandreau
-was declared generalissimo, and subsequent events proved
-that the selection was a most judicious one. In a few
-days subsequent to this he received a commission as colonel
-from Governor Ramsey and was placed in command of all
-irregular troops. There were fifty companies reported to
-him all told; some were mounted and others were not. His
-district extended from New Ulm, Minnesota, to Sioux City,
-Iowa. It was a most important command, and Colonel
-Flandreau proved himself a hero as well as a competent
-organizer. He is so modest about it even to-day that he
-rarely refers to it.</p>
-
-<p>A provost guard was at once established, order inaugurated,
-defenses strengthened and confidence partially restored.
-Nothing serious transpired until Saturday morning
-at about 9 o&rsquo;clock, when 650 Indians, who had been
-so handsomely repulsed at Fort Ridgely, thirteen miles
-above, made a determined assault upon the town, driving
-in the pickets. The lines faltered for a time, but soon
-rallied and steadily held the enemy at bay. The Indians
-had surrounded the town and commenced firing the buildings,
-and the conflagration was soon raging on both sides
-of the main street in the lower part of the town, and the
-total destruction of the place seemed inevitable. It was
-necessary to dislodge the enemy in some way, so a squad of
-fifty men was ordered out to charge down the burning
-street, and the Indians were driven out. The soldiers then
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_71" id="Page_71">« 71 »</a></span>
-burned everything and the battle was won. The desperate
-character of the fighting may be judged when we find the
-casualties to be ten men killed and fifty wounded in about
-an hour and a half, and this out of a much depleted force,
-for out of the little army of three hundred men, seventy-five
-who had been sent under Lieutenant Huey to guard
-the ferry were cut off and forced to retreat towards St.
-Peter. Before reaching this place, however, they met reinforcements
-and returned to the attack. The Indians
-now, in turn, seeing quite a reinforcement coming, thought
-it wise to retreat, and drew off to the northward, in the
-direction of the fort, and disappeared.</p>
-
-<p>The little town of New Ulm at this time contained
-from 1,200 to 1,500 non-combatants, consisting of
-women and children, refugees and unarmed citizens,
-every individual of whom would have been massacred
-if it had not been for this brave band of men
-under the command of Colonel Flandreau. Not knowing
-what the retreat of the Indians indicated, the uncertainty
-and scarcity of provisions, the pestilence to be
-feared from stench and exposure, all combined to bring
-about the decision to evacuate the town and try to reach
-Mankato. In order to do this a train was made up, into
-which were loaded the women and children and about
-eighty wounded men. It was a sad sight to witness this
-enforced breaking up of home ties, homes burned and
-farms and gardens laid waste, loved ones dead and wounded,
-and this one of the inevitable results of an unnecessary
-and unprovoked war. The march to Mankato was without
-special incident. Especially fortunate was this little
-train of escaping people in not meeting any wandering
-party of hostile Indians.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_72" id="Page_72">« 72 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The first day about half the distance from Mankato to
-St. Peter was covered; the main column was pushed on to
-its final destination, it being the intention of Colonel
-Flandreau to return with a portion of his command to
-New Ulm, or remain where they were, so as to keep a force
-between the Indians and the settlements. But the men
-of his command, not having heard a word from their families
-for over a week, felt apprehensive and refused to return
-or remain, holding that the protection of their families
-was paramount to all other considerations. It must
-be remembered that these men were not soldiers, but had
-demonstrated their willingness to fight when necessary,
-and they did fight, and left many of their comrades dead
-and wounded on the battlefield. The train that had been
-sent forward arrived in Mankato on the 25th of August,
-and the balance of the command reached the town on the
-day following, when the men sought their homes.</p>
-
-<p>The stubborn resistance the Indians met with at Fort
-Ridgely and New Ulm caused them to withdraw to their
-own country, and this temporary lull in hostilities enabled
-the whites to more thoroughly organize, and the troops to
-prepare for a campaign up into the Yellow Medicine country,
-where it was known a large number of captives were
-held.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_73" id="Page_73">« 73 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 402px;">
-<img src="images/page_073.png" width="402" height="519" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption"><span class="smcap">Colonel Charles E. Flandreau</span>,<br />
-<br />
-<span class="smaller">Who was in command at New Ulm, Minn., during the Siege from
-August 20th to 25th, 1862.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_74" id="Page_74">« 74 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_75" id="Page_75">« 75 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XI" id="CHAPTER_XI">CHAPTER XI.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">COL. FLANDREAU IN COMMAND.</p>
-
-
-<p>While the exciting events narrated in the previous chapters
-were taking place other portions of the state were preparing
-for defense. At Forest City, Hutchinson, Glencoe,
-and even as far south as St. Paul and Minneapolis, men
-were rapidly organizing for home protection. In addition
-to the Sioux, the Chippewas and Winnebagoes were becoming
-affected and seemed anxious for a pretext to don
-the paint and take the warpath. Colonel Flandreau having
-received his commission as colonel from Governor
-Ramsey, with authority to take command of the Blue Earth
-country extending from New Ulm to the Iowa line, embracing
-the western and southwestern frontier of the state,
-proceeded at once to properly organize troops, commission
-officers, and do everything in his power as a military officer
-to give protection to the citizens. The Colonel established
-his headquarters at South Bend and the home guards
-came pouring in, reporting for duty, and squads that had
-been raised and mustered into the volunteer service, but
-had not yet joined their commands, were organized into
-companies, and the Colonel soon found himself surrounded
-by quite an army of good men, well officered, and with a
-determination to do their whole duty. This was done by
-establishing a cordon of military posts so as to inspire confidence
-and prevent an exodus of the people. Any one
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_76" id="Page_76">« 76 »</a></span>
-who has not been through the ordeal of an Indian insurrection
-can form no idea of the terrible apprehension that
-takes possession of a defenseless and non-combatant people
-under such circumstances.</p>
-
-<p>The mystery and suspense attending an Indian&rsquo;s movements,
-and the certainty of the cruelty to his captives,
-strikes terror to the heart, and upon the first crack of his
-rifle a thousand are put to flight. While cruelty is one of
-the natural characteristics of the Indians, yet there are
-many among them who have humane feelings and are susceptible
-of Christian influences. As friends, they are of
-the truest; but the thoughtless cry out as did the enemies
-of our Savior: &ldquo;Crucify him! Crucify him!&rdquo; Other Day,
-Standing Buffalo, Chaska and Old Betz were as true and
-as good people as ever lived, and yet they are held responsible
-for the atrocities of their savage brethren. At the
-risk of their own lives they warned hundreds of people
-and guided them by night, and hid them by day, until
-finally they reached a place of safety. At the hostile
-camp, where they had over four hundred women and children,
-it was only through the influence of these and
-other sturdy friendly chiefs that any lives were saved.
-They had to even throw barricades around their tepees
-and watch day and night until the soldiers came, giving
-notice that whoever raised hand to harm these defenseless
-people would do it at their peril. When we know of these
-kind acts, let us pause a moment before we say there are
-no good Indians.</p>
-
-<p>It was a study to look at some of these old dusky heroes,
-who said nothing but thought much, and who had determined
-that, come what would, harm should not come to
-the captives. There were statesmen, too, among them;
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_77" id="Page_77">« 77 »</a></span>
-men wise in council, who had respect for their Great Father
-at Washington, who were cognizant of the fact that
-much dissatisfaction was engendered among their people
-by occurrences taking place at the time of the negotiation
-for the treaties. They counselled their people, and no
-doubt tried hard to induce them to forsake their desire for
-vengeance on the whites, and thus retard the progress they
-were making for their offspring toward civilization and a
-better manner of living.</p>
-
-<p>You might properly ask here: &ldquo;What became of the
-friendly Indians while the hostiles were on the warpath?&rdquo;
-Some of them forgot their friendly feelings and, like the
-whisky victim, when they got a taste of blood, they wanted
-more! They were all forced by the hostiles to don their
-war paint and breech-cloth, and go with them against the
-whites, and they were wise enough to know that it was
-folly to resist. Their main object was to prevent the
-wholesale murder of the captives, for when hostilities
-opened, they knew if they did not go, every woman and
-child in the captive camp would be murdered; and the
-friendlies would be blamed as much as the hostiles themselves.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_78" id="Page_78">« 78 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 264px;">
-<a id="CHAPTER_XII"></a>
-<img src="images/page_078.png" width="264" height="401" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">MRS. EASTLICK AND CHILDREN.</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="caption2">CHAPTER XII.</p>
-
-<p class="caption3">MRS. EASTLICK AND FAMILY.</p>
-
-
-<p>The note of alarm sounded throughout the neighborhood
-and without a moment&rsquo;s warning hurried preparations
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_79" id="Page_79">« 79 »</a></span>
-were made for the exodus. Women and children
-and a few household goods were loaded into wagons and a
-start made for a place of safety. Indians suddenly appeared
-and commenced an indiscriminate fire upon the terror-stricken
-refugees.</p>
-
-<p>The individual cases of woman&rsquo;s heroism, daring, bravery,
-cunning and strong-willed self-sacrifice, could be recounted
-by the score, and in some instances are past belief.
-Their achievements would be considered as pure fiction
-but for our own personal knowledge. Many of the real
-occurrences would seem like legends, when the father had
-been murdered and the mother left with two, three and
-even five and six children to care for, and if possible save
-them from the ferocity of the painted red devils, whose
-thirst for blood could seemingly not be satiated. One
-noted case was the Eastlick family, and this was only one
-of a hundred. Eleven men of the party had already been
-killed, and Mr. Eastlick among the number. The women
-with their children were scattered in all directions in the
-brush, to escape if possible the inevitable fate in store for
-them if caught. The Indians shouted to them to come out
-from their hiding places and surrender and they should be
-spared. The remaining men, thinking perhaps their lives
-might be saved if they surrendered, urged their wives to
-do so, and the men would, if possible, escape and give the
-alarm. Thus, without a word or a look lest they should
-betray the remaining husbands, were these women driven
-from their natural protectors and obliged to submit to the
-tender mercies of their hated red captors. The supposed
-dead husbands watched the receding forms of their devoted
-wives, whom in all likelihood they never would see again.
-Burton Eastlick, the fifteen-year-old boy, could not endure
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_80" id="Page_80">« 80 »</a></span>
-the thought of leaving his mother to this uncertain fate,
-and he followed her, but she persuaded him, for the sake
-of his fifteen-months-old baby brother, to leave her and
-try and make his escape, carrying the little one with him.
-And how well did he execute his mission.</p>
-
-<p>The Indians fired upon the little group and Mrs. Eastlick
-fell, wounded in three places, and the boy ran away,
-supposing his mother dead; but she revived, and crawled
-to where her wounded husband and six-year-old boy were,
-to find both dead. Can you picture such a scene or imagine
-what the feelings of this poor mother must be under
-these awful circumstances? Sublime silence reigning over
-earth and sky, and she alone with her dead!</p>
-
-<p>What a parting must that have been from husband and
-child&mdash;death and desolation complete. Could she look to
-her God? A heart of faith so sorely tried, and yet she
-said: &ldquo;I am in His hands; surely I must trust Him, for I
-am yet alive, and two precious children, Burton and little
-baby, are fleeing to a place of safety.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>This heroic boy, Burton, seeing his mother shot, and
-supposed to be dead, and watching the life flicker and the
-spirit of his six-year-old brother pass away, placed the
-dear little body beside that of his father, and with a bravery
-born of an heroic nature he accepted his charge, and
-with the injunction of his precious, dying mother still
-ringing in his ears, made preparations to start. It seemed
-an herculean effort, but the brave boy said: &ldquo;We may yet
-be saved!&rdquo; So, pressing his baby brother close to his
-heart, he took a last look upon the faces of his dear father,
-mother and six-year-old brother and started.</p>
-
-<p>Ninety miles, thick with dangers, lay before our young
-hero; but he faltered not. When tired carrying his little
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_81" id="Page_81">« 81 »</a></span>
-brother in his arms he took him on his back. The first
-day he made sixteen miles, and in ten consecutive days
-covered sixty miles. He lived on corn and such food as
-he could find in deserted houses. At night his bed was
-the earth, his pillow a stone, and the sky his only covering,
-the bright stars acting as nightly sentinels over him, as
-weary, he and his little baby charge slept. If angels have
-a duty to perform, surely troops of them must have hovered
-around. He fed the little brother as best he could to appease
-his hunger and covered him as with angel wings to
-protect the little trembling body from the chilly night air.
-Brave boy! The pages of history furnish nothing more
-noble than this deed, and if you yet live, what a consolation,
-what a proud reflection, to know that there never
-before was witnessed a deed more deserving of immortal
-fame.</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;Thou shalt not be afraid for the terror by night, nor
-for the arrow that flyeth by day.&rdquo; The resolute mother,
-badly wounded and left for dead, revived. She looked
-upon the face of her dead husband and little boy, and
-with sublime courage started for a place of safety. At the
-risk of being discovered and murdered&mdash;hungry, tired, with
-wounds undressed and a heavy, aching heart and deathly
-sick, she was obliged to lie by for some time, after which
-she again started, and for ten days and nights this poor
-sorrow-stricken woman traveled on her weary way.</p>
-
-<p>Providence led her in the path of a mail carrier on a
-route from Sioux Falls City, in Dakota, to New Ulm,
-Minnesota. He had formerly known her, but in her
-emaciated, jaded, pitiful condition the change was so great
-he did not recognize her.</p>
-
-<p>At New Ulm she found her children, where they were
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_82" id="Page_82">« 82 »</a></span>
-being kindly cared for, having been found in the tall grass
-nearly dead from exposure and starvation. Thus the remaining
-portion of the family were reunited on earth, and
-it is proper to here draw the curtain and allow them a few
-moments for communion, that the fountain of the heart
-which had been dried up by the awful occurrences of the
-previous few days might unbidden flow. The mother&rsquo;s
-heart was nearly crushed with the thought of husband and
-child&mdash;victims of the ferocious Indians, killed and yet unburied
-on the prairie nearly one hundred miles away; but,
-mother-like, she rejoiced in finding the two children who
-had wandered so far and through a kind Providence escaped
-so many dangers.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_83" id="Page_83">« 83 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 530px;">
-<img src="images/page_083.png" width="530" height="383" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">ESCAPE OF THE MISSIONARIES.</div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_84" id="Page_84">« 84 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_85" id="Page_85">« 85 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XIII" id="CHAPTER_XIII">CHAPTER XIII.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">THE MISSIONARIES&mdash;THEIR ESCAPE.</p>
-
-
-<p>A few miles above the Yellow Medicine were the
-churches and schools of the Rev. S. R. Riggs and Dr.
-Williamson. Both of these gentlemen had long been missionaries
-among the Indians and had gained their confidence;
-and in return had placed the most implicit confidence
-in them. But these good men had been warned to
-flee for their lives, and they reluctantly gathered together
-a few household treasures, and placing themselves and
-families under the guidance of Providence, started for a
-place of safety. Fort Ridgely was their objective point,
-but they learned that the place was being besieged and that
-it would be unsafe to proceed further in this direction, so
-turned their weary steps toward Henderson, Minnesota.</p>
-
-<p>With courage braced up, weary in body and anxious in
-mind, they went into camp until the morning. &ldquo;The pillar
-of cloud by day, and the pillar of fire by night,&rdquo; guided
-this anxious band through a most trying and perilous journey,
-but they gained the settlement at last and were among
-friends. In leaving their little homes, where they had
-found so much pleasure in the work of the Master, in
-pointing the Indians to a better way of living, they were
-sorrowful; but, like Abraham of old, faithful in their allegiance
-to God, not daring to question His ways in compelling
-them to turn their backs upon their chosen work&mdash;His
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_86" id="Page_86">« 86 »</a></span>
-work. The missionaries and teachers formed strong
-attachments among this dusky race. In their communion
-with them they found them ready and eager to converse
-about the Great Spirit and to learn of the wonderful things
-taught in the Bible. They loved to sing, and the melody
-of sacred song found a responsive chord in their souls as
-they were gradually emerging from their barbarous condition,
-and coming into the full light of a Christian salvation.
-In conversation with the writer, Mr. Riggs once
-said that as he was passing one of their happy little homes
-he could hear the squaw mother, in her peculiar plaintive
-tones, singing to her little children:</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Jesus Christ, nitowashte kin<br />
-Woptecashni mayaqu&rdquo;&mdash;<br />
-Jesus Christ, Thy Loving Kindness,<br />
-Boundlessly, Thou Givest Me.<br />
-</p>
-
-<p>She had become a Christian mother through the teachings
-of the missionaries. Her maternal affection was as
-deep and abiding as in the breast of her more favored
-white sister, and her eye of faith looked beyond the stars
-to the happy hunting ground, where the Greater Spirit
-abides, and with the assurance that some day she and all
-her race would stand with the redeemed in the presence
-of the Judge of all the worlds. The Christian missionary
-felt for these people as no one else could; and, while not
-trying nor desiring to excuse them for their unholy war
-against the whites, yet they could not persuade themselves
-to believe that they had been justly dealt with by civilized
-America.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_87" id="Page_87">« 87 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 255px;">
-<a id="CHAPTER_XIV"></a>
-<img src="images/page_087.png" width="255" height="295" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">LITTLE PAUL.</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="caption2">CHAPTER XIV.</p>
-
-<p class="caption3">THE INDIAN POW-WOW.</p>
-
-
-<p>The Indians of the various tribes of the Upper and
-Lower Sioux&mdash;the Sissitons, the Tetons, the Yanktons
-and the Yanktonnais and other tribes held a pow-wow to
-try and force a conclusion of the war, and some of their
-ablest men, their statesmen, were present, and their views
-you have here verbatim. More decorum prevailed among
-them, and they were more deliberate than is observed in the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_88" id="Page_88">« 88 »</a></span>
-average white man&rsquo;s convention. Little Crow had his supporters
-present, and a very fluent Yanktonnais Sioux traced
-on the ground a map of the country, showing the course
-of the Missouri River and the locality of the different
-forts. He marked out the mountains, seas and oceans, and
-stated that an army, great in numbers, was coming from
-across the country to assist them. This gave rise to the
-unfounded rumor referred to in another chapter, that emissaries
-from the South were among them to incite them
-to war.</p>
-
-<p>John Paul, or Little Paul, was friendly to the whites,
-and in a speech to the Indians at this pow-wow said:</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;I am friendly to the whites, and will deliver these
-women and children at Fort Ridgely. I am opposed to the
-war on the whites. You say you are brave men, and can
-whip the whites. That is a lie&mdash;persons who cut women
-and children&rsquo;s throats are not brave. You are squaws and
-cowards. Fight the whites if you want to, but do it like
-brave men. I am ashamed of the way you have acted
-towards the captives; and, if any of you have the feelings
-of men, you will give them up. You may look fierce at
-me, but I am not afraid of you.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>Red Iron, one of the chiefs of the Upper Indians, was
-not friendly. He was one of the principal chiefs of the
-Sissitons, and at one time was so outspoken against the
-whites that Governor Ramsey, who was then Superintendent
-of Indian Affairs, and was at the agency, had
-occasion to rebuke him in a substantial way&mdash;he reduced
-him to the ranks. In other words, he broke him of his
-chieftianship. This was in December, 1852.</p>
-
-<p>Red Iron was a handsome Indian, an athlete, six feet
-in his moccasins, with a large, well-developed head, aquiline
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_89" id="Page_89">« 89 »</a></span>
-nose, thin lips, but with intelligence and resolution beaming
-all over his countenance.</p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 256px;">
-<img src="images/page_089.png" width="256" height="395" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">RED IRON.</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>When brought into the presence of Governor Ramsey he
-walked with a firm, lordly tread, and was clad in half military
-and half Indian costume. When he came in he seated
-himself in silence, which was not broken until through an
-interpreter the Governor asked him what excuse he had
-to offer for not coming to the council when sent for.</p>
-
-<p>Red Iron, when he arose to his feet to reply, did so with
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_90" id="Page_90">« 90 »</a></span>
-a Chesterfieldian grace, allowing his blanket to fall from
-his shoulders, and, intentionally dropping his pipe of peace.
-He stood before the Governor for a moment in silence,
-with his arms folded, his bearing betraying perfect self-composure,
-a defiant smile playing upon his lips. In a
-firm voice he said:</p>
-
-<p>Red Iron&mdash;&ldquo;I started to come, but your braves drove me
-back.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>Governor&mdash;&ldquo;What excuse have you for not coming the
-second time I sent for you?&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>Red Iron&mdash;&ldquo;No other excuse than I have already given
-you.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>When the Governor, as Commissioner of Indian Affairs,
-informed this proud chief that, by virtue of his office, he
-would break him of his chieftianship it appealed to his
-pride, and he said:</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;You break me? I was elected chief by my tribe. You
-can&rsquo;t break me.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>The chief, while surrendering to the powers that be,
-never felt friendly to the whites, and during this war of
-which we write he continued stubborn and sullen to the
-end.</p>
-
-<p>Standing Buffalo, hereditary chief of the Sissitons, was
-a different type, and counselled living in peace, but desired
-fair treatment and honest dealings with his people. He
-was a handsome Indian, and a man of rare ability. General
-Sibley was anxious to know how he felt on the important
-question agitating the Sioux Nation, and desired his co-operation
-in liberating the captives and compassing the
-capture of Little Crow and his followers. At this Indian
-convention this noted chief said:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_91" id="Page_91">« 91 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 260px;">
-<img src="images/page_091.png" width="260" height="390" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">STANDING BUFFALO.</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>&ldquo;I am a young man, but I have always felt friendly
-toward the whites, because they were kind to my father.
-You have brought me into great danger without my knowledge
-of it beforehand. By killing the whites, it is just as
-if you had waited for me in ambush and shot me down.
-You Lower Indians feel bad because we have all got into
-this trouble; but I feel worse, because I know that neither
-I nor my people have killed any of the whites, and that yet
-we have to suffer with the guilty. I was out buffalo hunting
-when I heard of the outbreak, and I felt as if I was
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_92" id="Page_92">« 92 »</a></span>
-dead, and I feel so now. You all know that the Indians
-cannot live without the aid of the white man, and, therefore,
-I have made up my mind that Paul is right, and my
-Indians will stand by him. We claim this reservation.
-What are you doing here? If you want to fight the whites,
-go back and fight them. Leave my village at Big Stone
-Lake. You sent word to my young men to come down,
-and that you had plenty of oxen, horses, goods, powder
-and lead, and now we see nothing. We are going back to
-Big Stone Lake and leave you to fight the whites. Those
-who make peace can say that Standing Buffalo and his
-people will give themselves up in the spring.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>They kept their word, and would have nothing to do
-with Little Crow.</p>
-
-<p>Standing Buffalo was killed in 1863 by an accident.</p>
-
-<p>Other Day, a civilized Indian, in addressing the council
-at this time, said:</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;You can, of course, easily kill a few unarmed whites,
-but it would be a cowardly thing to do, because we have
-gained their confidence, and the innocent will suffer with
-the guilty, and the great Father at Washington will send
-his soldiers to punish you, and we will all suffer. I will
-not join you in this, but will help defend these white people
-who have always been our friends.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>Other Day was a true friend of the whites; he looked
-it. He was a full-blood Indian, it is true, and the Indians
-respected and feared him, but his desire to forsake the
-barbarous teachings of his father inclined him towards
-the unsuspecting settlers.</p>
-
-<p>In 1863 he was General Sibley&rsquo;s most trusted and confidential
-scout. In the early outbreak Other Day manifested
-his loyalty to his white friends by risking his life
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_93" id="Page_93">« 93 »</a></span>
-in their defense, piloting sixty people through the river
-bottoms during the nights to a place of safety. He traveled
-with his charge in the night, and hid them in underbrush
-during the daytime. He was a true-hearted, kind
-man, with a red skin, who has gone to his reward in a land
-where there are no reds, no blacks, but where all are white.</p>
-
-<p>Little Crow, who is one of the principal characters in
-this narrative, was an Indian of no mean ability. He was
-the commander-in-chief of the hostile tribes, and wielded
-a powerful influence among all the tribes of this great
-Sioux Nation. He was a powerful man, and felt his lordly
-position; was confident of final success, and very defiant
-at the outset. He had a penchant for notoriety in more
-ways than one. In dress he was peculiar, and could nearly
-always be found with some parts of a white man&rsquo;s clothing.
-He was particularly conspicuous in the style of collar he
-wore; happy in the possession of one of the old-style standing
-collars, such as Daniel Webster and other old-time
-gentlemen bedecked themselves with. He also possessed
-a black silk neckerchief and a black frock coat, and on
-grand occasions wore both.</p>
-
-<p>He had strongly marked features, and in studying the
-lineaments of his face one would not adjudge him a particularly
-bad Indian. As we had hundreds of these men
-in our custody, a good opportunity was offered while guarding
-them to try one&rsquo;s gift as a reader of character as
-stamped in the face, but Little Crow proved an enigma.
-It was like a novice trying to separate good money from
-bad, an unprofitable and unsuccessful task. Little Crow
-said:</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;It is impossible to make peace if we so desired. Did we
-ever do the most trifling thing, the whites would hang us.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_94" id="Page_94">« 94 »</a></span>
-Now, we have been killing them by the hundreds in Dakota,
-Minnesota and Iowa, and I know if they get us into their
-hands they will hang every one of us. As for me, I will
-kill as many of them as I can, and fight them till I die.
-Do not think you will escape. There is not a band of Indians
-from the Redwood Agency to Big Stone Lake that
-has not had some of its members embroiled in this war.
-I tell you we must fight and perish together. A man is a
-fool and coward who thinks otherwise, and who will desert
-his nation at such a time. Disgrace not yourselves by a
-surrender to those who will hang you up like dogs; but
-die, if die you must, with arms in your hands, like warriors
-and braves of the Dakotas.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>In one of our battles we took some fine-looking bucks
-prisoners, and the soldiers were for scalping them at once,
-but we had a little &ldquo;pow-wow&rdquo; with them, and found them
-intelligent and well educated; they were students home
-on a vacation from Bishop Whipple&rsquo;s school at Faribault,
-Minnesota, and said they were forced, much against their
-will, to go on the warpath; that they had not fired a bullet
-at the whites; that they fired blank cartridges because they
-felt friendly to the whites, and had no desire to kill them.
-There were three of them; we told them they could take
-their choice&mdash;be shot or enlist; they chose the latter, and
-went South with us, staying until the close of the Rebellion,
-and they displayed the courage of the born soldier.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_95" id="Page_95">« 95 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 345px;">
-<img src="images/page_095.png" width="345" height="386" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption"><span class="smcap">Brevet Major General H. H. Sibley</span>,<br />
-<br />
-<span class="smaller">Commander in the field in 1862 and 1863 against the Sioux Indians.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_96" id="Page_96">« 96 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_97" id="Page_97">« 97 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XV" id="CHAPTER_XV">CHAPTER XV.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">GOV. SIBLEY APPOINTED COMMANDER.</p>
-
-
-<p>While these scenes which I have related were being
-enacted in the upper country excitement ran high at St.
-Paul, and for a time the great struggle then going on in the
-South was forgotten. The news of the outbreak soon
-reached St. Paul, and couriers, with horses covered with
-foam, kept coming in one after another, until the officers
-at Fort Snelling were ordered by Governor Ramsey to be
-in readiness with their men to move at a moment&rsquo;s notice,
-and we did not have long to wait.</p>
-
-<p>The Sixth Minnesota, of which I was a member, had just
-organized, and was assigned to Hancock corps, Army of
-the Potomac, but the events transpiring in the Indian
-country made it necessary for all available troops to go
-there. When I say that the whole country was seething
-with excitement it is no exaggeration. The towns, big and
-little, were filled with frightened refugees; the rumors that
-came in were of the most frightful nature, and the whole
-state was clamorous for protection.</p>
-
-<p>Governor Ramsey, in his desire to protect the panic-stricken
-people and liberate the captives, cast about for a
-suitable commander for this important work. Of all the
-men in and about St. Paul who seemed eminently qualified
-for this position, Governor Henry H. Sibley, who at that
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_98" id="Page_98">« 98 »</a></span>
-time was living in quietude in his home in Mendota, just
-across the river from the fort, was his choice.</p>
-
-<p>Governor Henry Hastings Sibley, the hero of these
-Indian campaigns, was born in the city of Detroit February
-20, 1811. His sire was Chief Justice Solomon Sibley,
-of Detroit, and his mother was Sarah Whipple Sproat,
-whose father, Colonel Ebenezer Sproat, was an accomplished
-officer of the Continental army, and the granddaughter
-of Commodore Abraham Whipple, an illustrious
-commander in the Continental navy. He came from a
-long line of illustrious ancestry on both sides, of good
-Puritan stock, and dating his lineage back to the Sibleys of
-William the Conqueror of England in the fifteenth century.</p>
-
-<p>He was not a fighter; his heart was too tender for that,
-but he felt the weighty responsibility he had assumed when
-he consented to lead the soldiers and save the lives of the
-captives. For delaying he was denounced on all hands.
-The press denounced him for not falling immediately upon
-the Indians; but he knew the enemy better than his censors.
-If he had heeded the behests of the clamorous people
-not a captive would have been spared; but to-day hundreds
-live to bless him for his cautious, conservative movements.
-Until his death, which occurred but a few months since,
-he lived in his beautiful home in St. Paul; and, although
-a half century of winters in the far Northwest had whitened
-his head, and a great deal more than a half century of time
-had made his limbs tremble, neither time nor frost had
-sapped the citadel of his mind. He was a member of
-Aker Post, No. 21, Department of Minnesota, and the
-comrades, in deference to his declining years, went in a
-body to his beautiful home where he was mustered in. He
-lived in peace and plenty, surrounded by his family and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_99" id="Page_99">« 99 »</a></span>
-friends, who esteemed him for his worth. He passed away
-respected and regretted by a host of friends throughout the
-land, who knew him as a citizen and a soldier. I knew him
-personally and intimately since 1857; and in his death,
-with others great in our nation&rsquo;s history, we are reminded
-that in war the bullet is no respecter of rank; the commander
-and the soldier fall together.</p>
-
-<p>Governor Sibley was commissioned by Governor Ramsey
-as Colonel of Volunteers, and assigned to the command of
-the expedition. He was selected because he had spent
-many years of his life among the Indians as a trader, he
-spoke their language, he knew them personally, and knew
-their characteristics. He was a man of large experience,
-education and ability, and possessed, withal, a cool head.
-He knew the Indians, and they knew him and respected
-him. He consented to lead the forces against the Indians
-when appealed to by Governor Ramsey, upon conditions
-that he should not be interfered with by His Excellency,
-or any one else, and that he should have adequate supplies
-of men, stores and transportation. Colonel Sibley, afterwards
-Brigadier and Brevet Major-General of Volunteers,
-with his staff and Companies A, B, and E, of the Sixth
-Minnesota Infantry, embarked on a small steamer then at
-anchor near the fort, and steamed up the Minnesota river
-to Shakopee, distant about forty miles by water. We
-started in a furious rain, and after a slow trip up the narrow
-and winding Minnesota, arrived at Shakopee, where
-we found the frightened citizens ready to receive us with
-open arms, although all the firearms we had were worthless
-and condemned Austrian rifles, without ammunition to fit
-them. All serviceable material of war had been shipped
-to the South. Our first guard duty was on picket in the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_100" id="Page_100">« 100 »</a></span>
-suburbs of Shakopee, and our instructions were to press
-all teams into the service. We felt the gravity of the situation,
-and obeyed orders to the letter as nearly as we, raw
-recruits, could. While here the news was spread that Indians
-were in the vicinity, and the women and children
-began to flock to the vicinity of the soldiers; the alarm was
-without foundation. As we were stationed on the various
-roads leading to and from the town, the citizens who had
-been so badly scared seemed to feel comparatively safe.
-The news from the upper country, however, was discouraging,
-and appeals for protection very urgent. We could
-not move at once from lack of transportation, and had no
-adequate supplies, either of food, arms or ammunition, for
-we had been so hurriedly dispatched from Fort Snelling
-that only about half of one company had been supplied
-with even the worthless muskets spoken of, and the whole
-command with but two days&rsquo; rations. It was necessary,
-however, to make some quick demonstration to appease
-the panic-stricken people. After a delay of one day, by
-various routes by land and water, the regiment concentrated
-at St. Peter, under command of Colonel William
-Crooks, where it was inspected and remained four or five
-days, awaiting the receipt of suitable arms and ammunition
-and also reinforcements.</p>
-
-<p>Our guns were so absolutely worthless that it was necessary
-to delay a little, as the Indians, in large numbers, were
-then besieging Fort Ridgely, and were well armed with
-Springfield rifles, while our own arms were condemned
-Austrian muskets.</p>
-
-<p>We embarked on a boat at Shakopee and sailed up to
-Carver, forty miles above, and there pressed in teams to
-carry us through what was known as the &ldquo;Big Woods.&rdquo;
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_101" id="Page_101">« 101 »</a></span>
-It had been raining for days, and the town of Carver was
-literally packed with refugees. There was not an empty
-building in it, even the warehouses were filled, and the
-muddy streets were a sight to behold. The mud was ankle
-deep, and you may imagine in what condition everything
-was. I cannot describe it.</p>
-
-<p>The frightened people, who had flocked in from all the
-country round, told most woeful tales of Indian atrocities.
-In some cases they were overdrawn, but later on we saw
-evidences enough to warrant them fleeing to a place of
-safety. There was no safety, however, in coming to these
-small towns, for they were without protection.</p>
-
-<p>After loading up the teams, we started through the &ldquo;Big
-Woods,&rdquo; and the roads were in such a horrible condition
-that we made but slow progress. However, we had to make
-Glencoe, twenty-five miles distant, before night or camp
-down in the woods in the mud. It became pitchy dark, but
-we kept on the move, and in time got through the woods
-and could see the lights of Glencoe afar off. This was only
-a small place, but the twinkling lights from the houses
-were a pleasant sight, and when we arrived there the people
-were glad to see us. We remained over night, and the next
-day started for St. Peter. We could see evidences of Indian
-devastation in every direction, among which were the burning
-buildings and grain stacks on the beautiful neighboring
-farms.</p>
-
-<p>On the route to St. Peter, which we reached early in the
-evening, we discovered a few dead settlers, and took some
-families along with us. Upon our arrival we went into
-camp with the rest of the command, and were soon placed
-under strict military discipline, and in a brief time our
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_102" id="Page_102">« 102 »</a></span>
-commander, Colonel William Crooks, a West Pointer,
-brought order out of chaos.</p>
-
-<p>Of the preparation and forward march to relieve Fort
-Ridgely I will reserve for another chapter.</p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 137px;">
-<img src="images/page_102.png" width="137" height="286" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_103" id="Page_103">« 103 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XVI" id="CHAPTER_XVI">CHAPTER XVI.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">MARCH TO FORT RIDGELY.</p>
-
-
-<p>In the interval the companies were drilled and the command
-otherwise prepared to act effectively against the
-formidable body of hostile warriors, who were well armed
-and plentifully supplied with powder and ball. Colonel
-Sibley, having looked the ground over with a critical eye,
-uninfluenced by the public clamor and fault-finding of
-the press, remained firm in the determination not to take
-the field until assured of success in his operations. He
-knew the Indians well, and knew it was necessary to fight
-or failure, there would be no adequate barrier to the descent
-of the savages upon St. Paul and Minneapolis, and
-the desolation of the state generally. The Chippewas on
-the north were known to be in secret communication with
-Little Crow, the head of the Sioux hordes, and ready to
-them cautiously if he would succeed, for, in case of defeat
-co-operate with him if victorious, while the Winnebagoes
-were also in active sympathy with him, for two or three of
-their warriors were found among the dead after the battle
-of Wood Lake, which occurred later on. Arms, ammunition
-and supplies arriving, we took up the line of march
-for Fort Ridgely, which was then in a state of siege. Our
-advent at the Fort was hailed with delight, for the little
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_104" id="Page_104">« 104 »</a></span>
-garrison was pretty well tired out with the fighting and
-watching that they had had on their hands for the eight
-days previous. Barricades had been erected at all weak
-points, but the Indians so far outnumbered the soldiers
-that they approached near enough to fire the wooden buildings
-of the fort proper in many places.</p>
-
-<p>Our march to Fort Ridgely was the first we had made
-as an entire organization, and under an able commanding
-officer we profited by it. On the way we found the dead
-body of a colored man from St. Paul by the name of Taylor.
-He was a barber by trade, but also quite a noted
-gambler, and had been up to the agency to get his share
-of the money when the Indians got their pay.</p>
-
-<p>He played one game too many, and lost&mdash;his life.</p>
-
-<p>Before we reached the Fort the Indians took alarm and
-sullenly retreated upon our approach, after having done all
-possible damage to men and property. As we entered, the
-brave little garrison accompanied by the women and children
-turned out to greet us, and a right joyous time we
-had. A detachment of thirty men of the Fifth Minnesota,
-under Captain Marsh, the commander of the fort, upon
-receipt of news of the outbreak, had marched in the direction
-of the Lower Sioux Agency, distant a few miles. The
-Indians, perceiving the advance of this small detachment,
-placed themselves in ambush in the long grass at the crossing
-of the Minnesota River and awaited the oncoming of
-their unsuspecting victims, and, when in the toils, they
-opened a terrific fire upon them, which destroyed almost
-the entire party.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Sibley hurried forward supplies and ammunition
-for an extensive campaign, for, from his knowledge of the
-Indians, he knew it was no boy&rsquo;s play. The moving spirit
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_105" id="Page_105">« 105 »</a></span>
-among the hostiles was Little Crow, a wily old chief, without
-principle, but active and influential. He had harangued
-his people into the belief that the fight going on among the
-whites in the South had drawn off all the able-bodied men,
-leaving none but old men, women and children. &ldquo;Now,&rdquo;
-he said, &ldquo;is the time to strike for Minnesota. These fertile
-fields, stolen from us, are ours; the buffalo are gone; we
-have no food, and our women and children are starving.
-Let the warriors assemble in war paint and drive the pale-faces
-from the face of the earth!&rdquo; He told his people they
-could pitch their wigwams the coming winter in St. Paul
-and hold high carnival in the legislative halls. So widespread
-had the alarm became that it reached St. Paul and
-Minneapolis, and &ldquo;minute men&rdquo; were on duty on the bluffs
-adjacent for several days. In addition to the Sioux, the
-Chippewas and Winnebagoes were becoming very restless,
-and this caused additional uneasiness in the two cities.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Sibley, upon his arrival of the fort, sent out
-scouts to ascertain the whereabouts of the Indians. The
-news they brought was that a large camp of hostiles was
-located above the Yellow Medicine, where they held as
-captives about four hundred white women and children,
-and one white man. They also reported that the Indians
-were preparing to make a raid on the small towns below
-the fort.</p>
-
-<p>It was also known that a large number of citizens who
-had been killed near the agency were yet unburied, and
-the fate of Captain Marsh and his men was in doubt.
-To this end a small command was organized, as narrated in
-another chapter, to go out to bury the dead and relieve
-Captain Marsh and his men if they were found alive.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_106" id="Page_106">« 106 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XVII" id="CHAPTER_XVII">CHAPTER XVII.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">BURIAL OF CAPT. MARSH AND MEN.</p>
-
-
-<p>Company &ldquo;A,&rdquo; of the Sixth Minnesota, together with
-two men each from the other companies, were detailed to
-accompany a burial party, with instructions to properly
-bury all bodies found, and, if possible, ascertain the fate of
-Captain Marsh and his thirty men, who had gone out to
-intercept the Indians at the Redwood Crossing. In addition
-to this detail we had a small detachment of citizen
-cavalry, under Captain Joe Anderson, to act as scouts.</p>
-
-<p>Our little command numbered, all told, 153&mdash;infantry,
-cavalry and teamsters&mdash;and ninety-six horses, including
-twenty teams taken along to carry camp and garrison equipage,
-rations and ammunition, and to transport our
-wounded, either soldiers or citizens. The expedition was
-under the immediate command of Captain H. P. Grant, of
-Company A. Major Joseph R. Brown, better known as
-&ldquo;Old Joe Brown,&rdquo; was in charge of the scouts. He had a
-cool head, but no fighting qualities; had been an Indian
-trader for many years, raised an Indian family, and knew
-a great deal about Indian signs and customs. In this particular
-case, however, the Indians fooled Joe. The first day
-out we found and buried about fifty citizens, and at night
-went into camp in the river bottom near Redwood Crossing.
-The night was dark and dismal, and particularly sad to us
-who had been gathering up the dead all day long. The
-instructions to the guard by Captain Anderson were of a
-very solemn nature, in view of the surroundings and the
-probable fighting ahead. This, together with the stillness
-of the night and the impression that a lurking foe was
-near, made the boys feel rather uncomfortable.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_107" id="Page_107">« 107 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 531px;">
-<img src="images/page_107.png" width="531" height="385" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">DR. WILLIAMSON&rsquo;S HOUSE.</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_108" id="Page_108">« 108 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_109" id="Page_109">« 109 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Deep sleep settled upon the camp, but the sentinels
-maintained a vigilant watch, however, and the night slowly
-passed without incident. After reveille the next morning
-we found Captain Marsh and his comrades, but not one of
-them answered to &ldquo;roll-call.&rdquo; We found the captain&rsquo;s body
-and those of a few of his men in the river, and the rest of
-the bodies in the thicket on the river bank, where they had
-evidently been hemmed in and fired upon from all sides.
-Nearly all had been scalped, and were minus guns and ammunition,
-for these had been confiscated by the redskins.
-We buried the soldiers side by side, with their captain at
-their head, and marked the place by a huge cross, so that
-the bodies might be easily found and removed, which was
-subsequently done, when they were finally buried in the
-Soldiers&rsquo; cemetery at Fort Ridgely. After this last service
-to our dead comrades, we took up the line of march, leaving
-the bottom lands for the prairie above, and it was when
-passing over the bluff that a large body of Indians, who
-were on their way to capture Saint Peter and Mankato,
-espied us. What was our subsequent loss was the gain of
-the two towns mentioned. Our scouts had crossed the
-river, making a detour to the south, and thus missed making
-the acquaintance of our enemies, who had their eyes
-on us.</p>
-
-<p>We went into camp the second night near Birch Coolie,
-and sixteen miles distant from Fort Ridgely, about 5 p. m.,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_110" id="Page_110">« 110 »</a></span>
-well tired out with our day&rsquo;s march. Birch Coolie is a deep
-gorge running north and south in Redwood county, Minnesota.
-What was then a bleak prairie is now a beautiful
-farming community, and Birch Coolie a thriving village.</p>
-
-<p>From information gathered by the scouts we felt comparatively
-safe.</p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 303px;">
-<img src="images/page_110.png" width="303" height="234" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">&ldquo;<span class="smcap">Chickens for Supper.</span>&rdquo;</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Old Joe said: &ldquo;Boys, go to sleep now and rest; you are
-as safe as you would be in your mother&rsquo;s house; there is
-not an Indian within fifty miles of you.&rdquo; At that very
-moment five hundred Indians were in the immediate vicinity
-watching us and impatient for the ball to open, as they
-intended it should at the proper time, which, with the Indian,
-is about four o&rsquo;clock in the morning.</p>
-
-<p>After our supper on chicken stew, song-singing and
-story-telling, we turned in, well tired out and in a condition
-to enjoy a good night&rsquo;s sleep and dreams of home.</p>
-
-<p>The night was warm, the sky clear, with the stars shining
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_111" id="Page_111">« 111 »</a></span>
-brightly, and a full moon in all her glory. It was a beautiful
-night&mdash;too beautiful to witness the scene that was so
-soon to follow. The guard had been stationed and cautioned
-to be on the alert for strange sounds; &ldquo;tattoo,&rdquo;
-&ldquo;roll-call,&rdquo; &ldquo;taps,&rdquo; sounded, and the little camp was silent.
-The low hum of voices became less and less as slumber
-came to the weary soldiers, and all that could be heard was
-the occasional challenge of the guard: &ldquo;Halt! who comes
-there!&rdquo; as he was being approached by the officer of the
-guard.</p>
-
-<p>Soon the soldiers slept, little dreaming that the lurking
-enemy and death were so near. The awakening to some
-was in eternity.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_112" id="Page_112">« 112 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XVIII" id="CHAPTER_XVIII">CHAPTER XVIII.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">BATTLE OF BIRCH COOLIE.</p>
-
-
-<p>The battle of Birch Coolie was fought September 2 and
-3, 1862. It has never taken its proper place in history, but
-with the exception of the massacre at the Little Big Horn,
-in 1876, it was the hottest and the most desperate battle
-fought during the war of the Rebellion or any of our Indian
-wars. In comparison to the number of men and
-horses engaged, I know of no conflict, the one above referred
-to excepted, where the casualties were as great as
-they were here.</p>
-
-<p>The Indian custom is to make an attack about four
-o&rsquo;clock in the morning, so this relief had been especially
-cautioned, and soon after the guard was placed one of them
-thought he saw something moving in the grass. It proved
-to be an Indian, and they were slowly moving in upon us,
-their intention being to shoot the pickets with arrows, and
-as noiselessly as possible rush in and destroy us in our confusion.
-The sentinel fired at the moving object, and instantly
-our camp was encircled by fire and smoke from the
-guns of five hundred Indians, who had hemmed us in.
-The guard who fired escaped the bullet intended for him.
-He said he thought the moving object in the grass might
-be a hog or it might be an Indian, and, hog or Indian, he
-intended to kill it if he could. The fire was returned by the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_113" id="Page_113">« 113 »</a></span>
-pickets as they retreated to the camp, and although there
-necessarily was confusion, there was no panic. Quicker
-than I can write we were out, musket in hand, but the captain&rsquo;s
-command to &ldquo;fall down&rdquo; was mistaken for &ldquo;fall in,&rdquo;
-which makes a vast difference under such circumstances.
-We soon broke for the wagons, however, which were formed
-in a circle about our tents, and this afforded us some little
-shelter.</p>
-
-<p>As this was our baptismal fire, and a most important engagement,
-I devote more space to it than I otherwise would.
-What an experience it was to inexperienced, peaceable, unsuspecting
-men! Think of being awakened out of a blissful
-sleep by the fire from five hundred Indian rifles&mdash;it is
-a wonder that we were not all destroyed amid the confusion
-that naturally would follow; but we had cool heads among
-us, and none were cooler than Old Joe Brown and Captain
-H. P. Grant, of Company A, who was in immediate command.
-I will here refer to two others. First, Mr. William
-H. Grant, a lawyer of St. Paul, who still lives in Minnesota.
-He went out to see the fun. Well, he saw it, and the &ldquo;trial&rdquo;
-was a severe one. He &ldquo;objected&rdquo; and &ldquo;took exceptions&rdquo; to
-everything the Indians did.</p>
-
-<p>He wore a black plug hat, and this was a good mark for
-the redskins; they shot it off his head twice, and it was
-finally lost altogether. &ldquo;Bill&rdquo; was cool; he did not lose his
-temper, but laid down very flat on the ground and gave
-directions to those about him how to shoot to kill. We
-afterward voted him in as a brevet private, and were always
-ready to divide grub and &ldquo;shake.&rdquo; Postmaster Ed.
-Patch, of St. Anthony, was another of our citizen escorts.
-He was a jolly good fellow and &ldquo;cool as a cucumber,&rdquo; with
-a bay window on him like an overgrown bass drum. He
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_114" id="Page_114">« 114 »</a></span>
-found this excess of stomach very much in the way, in his
-great desire to hug mother earth and get out of range of
-the Indian bullets, and looked as if he wished he had never
-been born, or that he had been a disciple of anti-fat.</p>
-
-<p>One of our little thin fellows was lying down alongside
-of &ldquo;Ed,&rdquo; and I&rsquo;ll never forget the expression of his face
-when he said: &ldquo;God, bub, I wish I was as little as you be.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>The camp was miserably located, being commanded by
-the deep ravine on one side and by a mound on the other,
-so that the savages were well sheltered from our fire. Had
-the instructions given by Colonel Sibley been followed,
-which were always to encamp in open and level prairie,
-there would have been no such destruction of valuable
-lives, but the spot was chosen for our camp because it was
-near wood and water, and the Indians were supposed to be
-fifty miles away. It was a mistake, which we discovered
-after it was too late. A brisk fire was opened by the boys,
-and soon the cartridge boxes were being depleted. Ammunition
-was called for, and upon opening a box, to our dismay
-we found it to be of too large a calibre. Other boxes
-were opened with a like result. In loading up our ammunition
-a mistake had been made, and we found ourselves
-in this unfortunate dilemma; but no time was to be lost,
-as we had not more than an average of twenty rounds to
-the man, and a hoard of savages about us who seemed well
-supplied with powder and ball.</p>
-
-<p>We went to work cutting the large bullets down with our
-knives, but this was a slow and unsatisfactory process. We
-used the powder from these large cartridges to load our
-guns with, putting in an extra amount, so that when we
-fired these blanks they made a great noise, and thus kept
-up a successful &ldquo;bluff,&rdquo; though doing no damage. A dead
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_115" id="Page_115">« 115 »</a></span>
-silence would ensue, and occasionally some of our best
-shots picked off a more daring redskin simply to remind
-them that we were awake. We had but one shovel and one
-pick; there were others in some of the wagons, or they
-had been thrown out in the grass and could not be found.
-The captain offered $5 apiece for them, but the bullets
-were too thick to admit of a search, so we used jack-knives,
-spoons and bayonets to dig our intrenchments with. In
-time we had very good pits dug, and with the assistance of
-the dead bodies of our horses had ourselves tolerably well
-protected.</p>
-
-<p>With the wounded horses rearing and plunging, the men
-groaning and calling for help, the hurried commands, and
-the unearthly yells of the five hundred red devils about us,
-this baptismal fire was trying to the souls of raw recruits,
-as most of us were. We were encircled by fire and smoke,
-the bullets were doing their deadly work, and it really
-seemed as though no man could escape death. Our orders
-were: &ldquo;Load and fire, but steady, boys, and give them hail
-Columbia!&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>Upon the first fire of the Indians two men fled from the
-camp, one a citizen, who was with us, and the other a soldier.
-The citizen we found afterward on the prairie, dead.
-He was the last of his family, for we had buried his wife
-and two children just the previous day, before going into
-camp. The soldier, a Swede, returned, but he was so paralyzed
-with fear that he was like a dead man during all this
-memorable thirty-six hours, and the poor fellow afterward
-succumbed to sickness. Everything was improvised for a
-barricade&mdash;camp kettles, knapsacks, wagon-seats, etc., and
-it was done in a hurry, for hot work was on our hands.
-The word soon went the rounds: "College is dead, Irvine
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_116" id="Page_116">« 116 »</a></span>
-is dead, Baxter, Coulter, Benecke, King and a score of
-others are dead, and nearly all are wounded." It was only
-a few minutes after the first fire when we realized all this,
-and it verily looked as though the little command would
-be wiped out of existence. If a head was shown fifty Indians
-leveled at it. During all this terrible fire Old Joe
-Brown walked about seemingly unconcerned, until a bullet
-went through the back of his neck. He came to the ground
-as quick as if shot through the heart, for it was a bad
-wound, but with it all he continued to give instructions.
-Nearly all the damage was done before ten o&rsquo;clock, for up
-to that time we found ourselves with sixty killed and
-wounded, out of 155, and ninety-five horses dead, out of
-ninety-six. The horses saved our little encampment. As
-soon as they fell their bodies formed a good barricade for
-us, and this and the overturned wagons were our only protection.
-The Indians, occupying higher ground than we
-did, had us at a disadvantage. The day wore on, and all
-we could do was to assist Surgeon J. W. Daniels with the
-wounded and keep the Indians at bay. Dr. Daniels proved
-himself a cool-headed, brave man, never flinching for a
-moment. Where duty called he was found, and he immortalized
-himself with the boys. The great fear of the
-wounded seemed to be that we would be obliged to abandon
-them to their fate, for the sun was extremely hot and the
-camp had become very offensive from the smell of decomposing
-bodies of horses; besides, we had no means of transporting
-the wounded, and their fears were not without
-foundation, for it looked as though we would be driven by
-necessity from the camp. We assured and reassured them
-that if we went they would go, too. If we died it would be
-in defending them as well as ourselves.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_117" id="Page_117">« 117 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The one thing, aside from cowardice on the part of the
-Indians, that saved us from assault was the fact of our having
-several half-breed scouts with us, who talked back and
-forth.</p>
-
-<p>The Indians said: &ldquo;Come out from the pale-faces; we
-do not want to kill you, but we want all their scalps.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>Private James Auge of our company was the spokesman.
-He was a Canadian Frenchman, but had lived among the
-Indians, knew them well, and spoke their language, and as
-he went so would all the other Indians and half-breeds who
-were with us.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_118" id="Page_118">« 118 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XIX" id="CHAPTER_XIX">CHAPTER XIX.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">BIRCH COOLIE CONTINUED.</p>
-
-
-<p>On the second day, at about sunrise, we discovered a large
-body of Indians closing up nearer to us, when one of their
-number, probably Little Crow&rsquo;s brother, came within
-twenty rods of us. He was on a white horse, and carried a
-flag of truce. He held a conversation with Auge, our interpreter,
-and tried to persuade him to leave us and bring
-the other half-breeds with him. When the conversation
-was interpreted to Captain Grant, he said: &ldquo;Well, Auge,
-what do you fellows intend to do, go with the Indians or
-stay with us?&rdquo; Auge replied:</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;Captain Grant, we want nothing to do with these Indians;
-we will stand by you and fight as long as there is a
-man left, and I will now tell them so.&rdquo; He did call to
-them, and said:</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;We won&rsquo;t come over to you; we will stay with the
-soldiers, and if you come we will kill you if we can. You
-are cowards to kill poor women and children, and if we
-catch you we will treat you as you treated them.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>We felt relieved to know that our half-breeds were loyal.
-Auge, after this, was Corporal Auge, and he went all
-through the South with us, making a splendid soldier. I
-shall have occasion to refer to him in another place in this
-chapter.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_119" id="Page_119">« 119 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 697px;">
-<img src="images/page_119.png" width="697" height="391" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption"><div class="tdl smaller">Designed by <span class="smcap">A. P. Connolly</span>.</div><br />
-
-<div class="smcap">Battle of Birch Coolie. Minn.</div>
-<br />
-<div class="smaller">Fought September 2nd and 3d, 1862. Ninety-five horses lay dead within the camp; 60 men killed and wounded; 500 Indians
-were under cover in the tall grass, and concentrated their fire on the camp.</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_120" id="Page_120">« 120 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_121" id="Page_121">« 121 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Captain Grant told Auge to say to them that we had two
-hundred fighting men and plenty of ammunition, and that
-Little Crow and all his dirty Indians could not take us,
-and for him to get out with his flag of truce.</p>
-
-<p>It was a game of bluff, for at that time we only had
-about sixty-five effective men, and were nearly out of ammunition.</p>
-
-<p>We did not know whether we could trust the half-breeds
-or not, and were instructed to fire on them to kill if they
-made the slightest move to desert us. Our firing had been
-heard at Fort Ridgely, sixteen miles away, and the Colonel
-dispatched two hundred and fifty men, with one howitzer,
-to our relief.</p>
-
-<p>Just at sunset the second day we saw two horsemen
-come to the edge of the woods across the Coolie, but the
-Indians also saw them, and chased them back. They returned
-to their command and reported a large body of Indians,
-and said they saw a small camp with the stars and
-stripes flying, but as they had no field glass, could not make
-it out. Colonel McPhail, who was in command of this relief,
-ordered the howitzer to be fired to give us courage,
-if the little camp proved to be ours. A shout went up at
-this welcome sound just as the sun went down. Old Joe
-Brown, who had been disabled early in the day, called out
-from his tent: &ldquo;Captain Grant, instruct the men to be
-watchful; we are in a bad fix; the Indians will hate to
-lose our scalps, now that they are so near their grasp; give
-them a few shots occasionally, assure the wounded men that
-we will not leave them, and keep the pick and shovel busy.&rdquo;
-We disposed of ourselves for the night as best we could.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_122" id="Page_122">« 122 »</a></span>
-Every man was on guard, and nearly all had two rifles fully
-charged and bayonets fixed. We clasped our rifles, looked
-up into the starry heavens, and, asking God&rsquo;s protection,
-swore not to yield an inch. We made this demonstration
-to encourage the wounded men, who seemed fearful that
-something more terrible was in store for them. The prayers
-and groans of the wounded and the awful silence of the
-dead inspired us to do our whole duty. The watch-word,
-&ldquo;wide-awake,&rdquo; went the rounds every few minutes, and
-there was &ldquo;no sleep to the eye nor slumber to the eye-lids,&rdquo;
-during all that live-long night.</p>
-
-<p>Out of our ninety-six horses we had but one left. This
-was a splendid animal, and had thus far escaped without a
-scratch. He was feeding about the camp, unmindful of the
-fate of his fellows.</p>
-
-<p>The picture of Birch Coolie is an exact reproduction of
-the situation. The ninety-five dead horses were all within
-the enclosure, and the one who escaped for the time is
-grazing among them.</p>
-
-<p>Just before midnight the clouds began to gather, and we
-felt cheered to think we would soon have rain. We were
-sorely in need of water, for we had not tasted a drop since
-the night before, and the wounded men were nearly famished
-with thirst and burning with fever. As the sky
-darkened Captain Grant called for a volunteer to go to
-Fort Ridgely for relief. Corporal James Auge volunteered
-to go, and by this act proved himself a truly brave man,
-and if it had been successfully carried out would have
-gained for him a commission at no very distant day. The
-fact of its not being carried out was no fault of his, and, in
-the abandonment of the trial, he was declared not the less
-brave by all his comrades, who trembled for him while he
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_123" id="Page_123">« 123 »</a></span>
-was preparing to make the perilous journey. The night
-was cloudy, and he being conversant with Indian methods
-and well posted in the topography of the country, could be
-successful in getting through the Indian&rsquo;s lines, if anybody
-could; but the chances were ten to one against the success
-of the undertaking.</p>
-
-<p>The horse was saddled and the Corporal had his instructions.
-He had his foot in the stirrup when the clouds
-rolled back from the full moon like the rolling back of a
-scroll, and it was almost as light as noon-day. The Indians,
-ever on the alert, saw the preparations and opened fire
-anew upon us, and, long before they ceased, our good horse
-was pierced by six bullets, and the project was abandoned&mdash;we
-could only wait anxiously for results. The enemy did
-not allow us to wait long, for at four o&rsquo;clock they opened a
-terrific fire, which they kept up for an hour. The only
-response they got from us was blank cartridges, but we
-made a great noise with them, and it answered the purpose
-very well. We had ourselves so well protected that in this
-fusillade they killed but one man and wounded another.</p>
-
-<p>The early morning dawn and heavy, dewy atmosphere
-found our eyes heavy from loss of sleep, so we divided up
-and some slept while others watched. We heard nothing
-of the detachment, and as the day advanced the Indians
-became bolder. They had driven the relief back and were
-closing in upon us, and we, having so little ammunition,
-could do them but little harm. They were puzzled at our
-silence. Some of the chiefs said it was a trick, others said
-we were all killed. At any rate, with them &ldquo;discretion was
-the better part of valor,&rdquo; and we didn&rsquo;t object.</p>
-
-<p>About one o&rsquo;clock the same day we descried the glimmer
-of the polished rifle in the distance. We had no glass, but
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_124" id="Page_124">« 124 »</a></span>
-anxious eyes strained to see what it was, and the dark outline
-of a moving mass told us reinforcements were coming.
-The chiefs, by waving their blankets and shouts, called off
-their warriors. &ldquo;There&rsquo;s a mile of whites coming,&rdquo; they
-said. They waved their tomahawks, shouted, fired, and
-finally galloped off on the prairie.</p>
-
-<p>A few warriors more daring than the others remained
-behind for a time to get a scalp, and some of them came
-so close we could readily discern their war paint. Before
-the main body of the Indians left, however, they rode very
-close, and gave us several parting volleys. The wounding
-of a few of our men was all the damage they did at this
-time.</p>
-
-<p>Right joyful were we when the reinforcements arrived.
-Our camp had been formed by driving twenty teams in a
-circle, and it can readily be seen that it was not large. It
-was about as large as an ordinary circus tent, and inside
-of this we had our horses, men and tents. After the battle
-the sight was a sickening one, for with sixty dead and
-wounded men and ninety-five horses in such a small space,
-and all the confusion arising out of such a siege it was
-enough to appall the stoutest heart. Strong men, when
-they beheld the sight, wept like children. It was our baptismal
-fire, and the horror seemed greater to us. Our men,
-whose nerves had been on a tension so long and bodies exhausted
-for want of food, water and sleep, when the relief
-came, fell down and slept. Colonel Sibley was the first to
-arrive, and when he rode up to our barricade, and saw the
-terrible loss of life he looked as though he had lost his best
-friends. His heart bled at the sight, and the tears he shed
-spoke volumes. A detail was at once made to bury the
-dead side by side in a temporary grave, dinner was cooked
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_125" id="Page_125">« 125 »</a></span>
-for the remainder of the command and the wounded were
-put in ambulances, tents were &ldquo;struck,&rdquo; and we took up
-the line of march for Fort Ridgely, which we reached sometime
-during the night. Our tents had been so completely
-riddled with bullets that they were condemned as useless,
-and were finally sent down to Fort Snelling and placed on
-exhibition for a long time. One of them had 375 bullet
-holes in it, and when the people looked at them they wondered
-that any man escaped. The narrow escapes were
-almost miraculous, and congratulations were frequently in
-order. It was not every man for himself, but a strong
-fellow-feeling sprang up among us that forever afterwards
-cemented our hearts. We shared our shelter and encouraged
-one another, and no man shrank from duty. We had
-determined to die together, and if ever soldiers stood shoulder
-to shoulder we did on this bloody spot, where our nerves
-and courage were taxed to the utmost. Company A, so
-nearly wiped out, was ever afterwards considered the &ldquo;Old
-Ironsides&rdquo; of the regiment.</p>
-
-<p>Before we left, Colonel Sibley addressed a note to Little
-Crow, and placing it on a stick stuck it in the ground so
-he might find it when he would visit the battle ground,
-as he surely would do as soon as we were out of the way.
-The note was as follows:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>&ldquo;If Little Crow has any proposition to make let him
-send a half-breed to me and he shall be protected in and
-out of my camp.</p>
-
-<p class="tdr">
-&ldquo;H. H. Sibley,&nbsp; &nbsp; &nbsp;<br />
-&ldquo;Colonel Commanding Military Expedition.&rdquo;</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>To specify the remarkable escapes would unduly lengthen
-this chapter, but, as near as my recollection serves me, no
-man entirely escaped. I&rsquo;ll specify two&mdash;one an escape and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_126" id="Page_126">« 126 »</a></span>
-the other an incident. Lieutenant Swan, of the Third
-Minnesota, now a lawyer of Sioux City, Iowa, was with
-us on this picnic. He was not ordered to go, neither was
-he detailed, but he simply went, and he had a very narrow
-escape. During the sharp firing, and after we had some
-shallow pits dug, this officer was in one as far as his long
-legs would admit. He had a fine gold watch in his fob
-pocket, and one of the boys asked him the time of day. He
-undoubled as well as he could and got out his watch, but in
-returning it put it in his vest pocket instead of the fob. It
-was no sooner in his pocket than an Indian bullet struck it
-squarely in the center. The concussion knocked the lieutenant
-over, but the watch saved his life. He keeps it as a
-valued souvenir of the occasion.</p>
-
-<p>The incident relates to Private James Leyde, of Company
-A, of the Sixth. He was a little fellow who could
-march longer and eat oftener than any youngster of his
-size I ever saw. Jimmy was a splendid soldier, always
-ready for drill or guard, and never forgot his manners
-when he met a &ldquo;shoulder-straps.&rdquo; He was a pious little
-fellow, too, and carried a Bible his mother gave him.</p>
-
-<p>Well, &ldquo;after the battle&rdquo; Jimmy was looking over the
-wreck with his comrade, Billy Caine, and in taking up his
-Bible found a bullet embedded in it. &ldquo;Hello, Billy, my
-Bible got struck!&rdquo; The ball had gone through Genesis,
-Exodus and Leviticus, until it stopped half way through
-Deuteronomy. Jimmy says: &ldquo;God, Billy, it didn&rsquo;t get
-through Deuteronomy anyway!&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>There were many close calls, and it really seemed remarkable
-that so many could escape. I could specify
-scores, but it is not necessary.</p>
-
-<p>Among the incidents on the march before we arrived
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_127" id="Page_127">« 127 »</a></span>
-at Birch Coolie I might mention the finding of a wounded
-woman by the roadside. She had been without food or
-water for twelve days, and was the only one of a large
-party supposed to have been murdered. She did not
-escape uninjured, however, for the surgeon took fourteen
-buckshot from her back. During our thirty-six hours&rsquo;
-siege this poor woman remained in the wagon where she
-had been placed the first day, and spent her time in praying
-for our deliverance. She sustained a broken wrist in
-addition to her other wounds, but after we got to the
-fort she was among her own people and soon fully recovered
-to tell the tale of her twelve days&rsquo; wanderings and her
-marvelous escape.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_128" id="Page_128">« 128 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XX" id="CHAPTER_XX">CHAPTER XX.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">BATTLE OF WOOD LAKE.</p>
-
-
-<p>At this juncture the press and people were clamoring for
-Colonel Sibley&rsquo;s removal because of his delay and, as they
-claimed&mdash;lack of energy and judgment. He lacked in
-neither, for he knew the foe he had to deal with, and if
-he had heeded the behests of the press and people, so
-far away, not a woman or child of the captives would have
-escaped. However, he dispatched Col. William Crooks to
-St. Paul to explain the situation in detail to Governor
-Ramsey and satisfy the clamorous press that they knew
-but little of the situation as it existed at the seat of the
-Sioux war.</p>
-
-<p>After our return to Fort Ridgely and a few more days
-of preparation, the command was put in splendid marching
-condition, and &ldquo;forward&rdquo; was the word for the rescuing
-of the captives and if possible the capture of the renegades.
-We met the Indians next at Wood Lake and had a sharp
-battle with them early in the morning. They had come
-down in force to annihilate us, but we were glad to meet
-them in broad day light on the open prairie and receive
-them with &ldquo;open arms to hospitable graves.&rdquo; We were
-just up from a good night&rsquo;s sleep and had partaken of a
-generous supply of Old Java and &ldquo;hard tack,&rdquo; and felt
-abundantly able to defend ourselves. Besides we were
-veterans now, for we had profited by our baptismal fire and
-had an old score to settle with &ldquo;Mr. Injun,&rdquo; and we settled
-to our entire satisfaction.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_129" id="Page_129">« 129 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 671px;">
-<img src="images/page_129.png" width="671" height="370" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption"><div class="tdl smaller">Designed by <span class="smcap">A. P. Connolly</span>.</div><br />
-<span class="smcap">Battle of Wood Lake, Minn.</span><br />
-<span class="smaller">Fought September 23d, in which the Indians were defeated.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_130" id="Page_130">« 130 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_131" id="Page_131">« 131 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Our sappers had gone out to repair a bridge that had
-been burned, and the temptation was too great for some
-of the younger warriors. The plan of the Indians was to
-surprise us as we were crossing the river&mdash;to divide our
-attention by having a small body in the rear and one in
-front, and then the main body to spring from their ambush,
-and in our confusion to destroy us; but the young
-bucks, when they saw a few of our men, wanted their
-scalps so bad they opened fire. The &ldquo;long roll&rdquo; was
-sounded, and we stood to arms. Little Crow knew that
-Colonel Sibley was aware of his tactics, and was determined
-to remove him if he could by detailing about eighty of his
-best warriors to do the work, and at this battle of Wood
-Lake they tried hard to reach him, but he was too watchful
-to be caught napping. A detachment of the Third
-Minnesota, under Major Welch, and the Renville Rangers
-charged upon the Indians in one direction, and the Seventh
-Minnesota, in command of Col. William R. Marshall, in
-another, while the battery, under command of Captain
-Mark Hendricks, did effective work also. The Sixth Minnesota,
-under command of Colonel William Crooks, routed
-the Indians from a deep ravine on the right flank of our
-camp and probably saved Colonel Sibley from being captured
-by the picked men sent out for that purpose by Little
-Crow.</p>
-
-<p>The conflict lasted more than two hours and was decisive.
-The Indians offered to surrender if Colonel Sibley
-would promise them immunity from punishment, but
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_132" id="Page_132">« 132 »</a></span>
-this was sternly refused. They fled in dismay, not being
-permitted to take their dead and wounded from the field.
-So confident were they of success that they had brought
-their women and teams to take back the pillage after the
-Indians had loaded themselves with glory and scalps&mdash;but
-presto, change; they got no glory and lost their scalps.</p>
-
-<p>The soldiers had not forgotten Birch Coolie quite so
-soon and took great pleasure in procuring Indian scalps
-for trophies.</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;Other Day,&rdquo; who guided a large party in escaping the
-massacre, seemed to have a charmed life, and a little incident
-here, in which he is the chief figure, will not be amiss.
-&ldquo;Other Day,&rdquo; the same as other scouts, wore United States
-clothing. The day before the Wood Lake battle he was
-out scouting, and coming to a house turned his pony out
-to graze and lay down to take a noon-day nap. An Indian
-espied the pony and wanted it. He stealthily came up to
-the sleeping &ldquo;Other Day,&rdquo; and putting up some kind of a
-sign so he might know a brother Indian had his pony, he
-rode off with the animal. &ldquo;Other Day,&rdquo; considerably crestfallen,
-came back to headquarters and reported his loss
-and the manner of it. The Colonel and his staff had a
-hearty laugh at his expense, which rather offended his Indian
-sensitiveness. &ldquo;Never mind,&rdquo; says he, &ldquo;me get two
-for one.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>Early next morning &ldquo;Other Day&rdquo; put on his Indian toggery,
-paint, feathers and all, and as the Indians hove in
-sight the morning of the Wood Lake battle, he started out
-on his pony hunt. Our men espied him across the ravine,
-and thinking him a hostile opened fire on him. His blanket
-was perforated with bullets, even the feathers in his
-hair were shot off, and yet no harm came to him. After the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_133" id="Page_133">« 133 »</a></span>
-battle he came in with two ponies, and reporting to the
-Colonel, laughingly said: &ldquo;Me got two for one.&rdquo; His wonderful
-escape was the talk of the camp, and the Colonel had
-an order issued prohibiting any one attached to the command,
-in the future, wearing anything but the United
-States regulation uniform.</p>
-
-<p>The battle was a very decisive one and very discouraging
-to the Indians, who suffered a loss of 175 in killed and
-wounded, while our loss was fifty-seven killed and wounded.
-The engagement lasted two hours, and after the dead were
-gathered up and buried and the wounded cared for the
-column was again ready to move. This battle developed
-the fact that the Indian forces resisting our advance were
-composed in part of the Medawakantons and Wahpekutas
-of the Lower and Wahpetons and Sissetons of the Upper
-Sioux and Winnebagoes, half-breeds and deserters from the
-Renville Rangers.</p>
-
-<p>The utmost solicitude was expressed for the safety of
-the white prisoners, who knew that the Indians had gone
-down to fight the soldiers. They knew the temper of the
-squaws especially and feared the results of the battle. They
-heard the firing of the howitzer away in the distance, and
-by noon squaws began to arrive and in a most unhappy
-mood.</p>
-
-<p>It was immediately after the battle of Wood Lake that
-General Pope wrote to General Halleck as follows;</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;You do not seem to be aware of the extent of the Indian
-outbreak. The Sioux, 2,600 warriors, are assembled at
-the Upper Agency to give battle to Colonel Sibley, who is
-advancing with 1,600 men and five pieces of artillery.
-Three hundred and over of women and children are captives
-in their hands. Cannot the paroled officers and men
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_134" id="Page_134">« 134 »</a></span>
-of the rifle regiment (dragoons) now in Michigan be sent
-here?&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>The stay-at-homes, who were loudest in their complaints,
-were raising the cry, &ldquo;On to Richmond,&rdquo; on the one hand,
-and then again, &ldquo;On to Little Crow&rdquo; on the other. Colonel
-Sibley stood like a man of iron against these impatient
-behests. The &ldquo;howlers&rdquo; were not heeded, and in the liberation
-of the captives he gained the gratitude of the nation
-and a merited promotion.</p>
-
-<p>The friendly chiefs who had determined at all hazards
-to protect the defenseless women and children redoubled
-their vigilance during the night; because they, too, knew
-the temper of a vanquished Sioux warrior. The position
-of these poor creatures was truly pitiable.</p>
-
-<p>No less than four different councils were convoked, the
-Upper Indians arrayed, in a measure, against the Lower,
-and a quarrel ensued. Little Paul, Red Iron, Standing
-Buffalo, Chaska and a hundred Sissetons determined to
-fight Little Crow himself should any attempt be made to
-massacre the captives or place them in front at the coming
-battle. The hostiles began to fear that judgment was
-near, and it compelled Little Crow to assume a spirit of
-bravado not at all in consonance with his feelings.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_135" id="Page_135">« 135 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 487px;">
-<img src="images/page_135.png" width="487" height="235" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">INDIAN CAMP TAKEN BY COLONEL SIBLEY.</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_136" id="Page_136">« 136 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_137" id="Page_137">« 137 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Colonel Sibley, when he came in sight of the hostile
-camp, did not do as the majority of the soldiers thought
-he ought; viz., march up and at once surround the camp.
-This is where his coolness and knowledge of the Indians
-served him so good a purpose. He knew if he attempted
-such a course that the renegade Indians in the camp would
-at once take the alarm and run away, and that probably before
-they did go they would attempt to take the prisoners
-with them, and failing in this would kill them outright.
-He was informed of this by one of the scouts and at once
-concluded to adopt but one course, to go into camp and
-pay no attention to them and thus disarm them of any fear
-as to his real intention. While the Colonel did this, and
-apparently intended to leave them alone, he was informing
-himself of the condition of affairs in the Indian camp. He
-learned that several of the worst bands had gone farther
-up north, and he sent word to them to return and they
-should not be harmed. Several bands did come back, but
-there were those who did not, and after the scouts had
-located them, companies of soldiers were sent out to make
-their capture. In this way they all came back or were
-captured and compelled to come, excepting Little Crow
-and his immediate followers.</p>
-
-<p>At Camp Release we attended to guard mount, company
-and battalion drill, and all other duties incident to a soldier&rsquo;s
-life. It became necessary to make a concerted move
-against the Indian camp in our immediate vicinity and
-relieve the white prisoners, and the orders were received one
-night for all the infantry to turn out at twelve midnight.
-It was to be done noiselessly, and the instructions were so
-given. The whole command marched out in single file
-until the Indian camp was surrounded, and then we were
-ordered to close in. After this was done we received orders
-to lie down and to remain until daylight, when, at the
-sound of reveille, we were to rise up. The Indians, hearing
-the early bugle call so near them, flocked out to see
-what it was and found themselves prisoners.</p>
-
-<p>Negotiations at once commenced for the unconditional
-surrender of the white prisoners, and the object about
-which General Sibley was so solicitous was accomplished.
-He knew that he could not attack the hostiles in the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_138" id="Page_138">« 138 »</a></span>
-friendly camp without endangering the lives of the captives,
-and that the best policy was to appear indifferent
-about their presence and thus disarm them of fear. The
-plan worked admirably, and the game was successfully
-bagged.</p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 241px;">
-<img src="images/page_138.png" width="241" height="303" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">OTHER DAY.</div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_139" id="Page_139">« 139 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XXI" id="CHAPTER_XXI">CHAPTER XXI.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">CAMP RELEASE.</p>
-
-
-<p>Among the attractive and cultivated women found
-among the prisoners was a Miss Mattie Williams, of Painesville,
-Ohio, who at the time of the outbreak was living with
-an uncle on the Yellow Medicine River. They had been
-surprised by the Indians without a moment&rsquo;s warning, and
-of course, in their hurry, had no time to plan for an escape;
-but each sought safety as best they could and became
-separated. Miss Williams, in her wanderings, was picked
-up by a Mr. Patwell, who was escaping with a German girl,
-who also was fleeing. They were overtaken by the Indians,
-Mr. Patwell was killed, the German girl so wounded that
-she died, and Miss Williams herself, wounded in the
-shoulder, was alone with her Indian captors, who imposed
-upon her all the indignities born of their hellish desires.
-For forty days she suffered as no human mind can imagine,
-forty anxious days and sleepless nights in a dirty, smoke-begrimed,
-leaky tent, clad in Indian costume and obliged
-to submit to savage passion. But the angels listened and
-the day of deliverance drew near. The women of this
-camp were all of one mind&mdash;in accord they prayed that
-deliverance should come, and that the guiding hand should
-be directed by a clear head. As Moses was preserved in the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_140" id="Page_140">« 140 »</a></span>
-bulrushes and found by Pharaoh&rsquo;s daughter and educated
-for a purpose&mdash;to lead the children of Israel from out the
-land of bondage and through the Red Sea to the wilderness
-and the promised land&mdash;so, too, was Colonel Sibley
-raised up to frustrate the designs of the Indians and liberate
-these women and children.</p>
-
-<p>On the night of September 25th our heroine, wrapped in
-her Indian blanket, laid herself down, not to pleasant
-dreams, but to blissful waking visions of release. Nor was
-she alone in her night vigils; other hearts, burdened and
-borne down with unutterable anguish, petitioned God to
-so direct the soldiers who were on the way, that their
-release might be sure. The soldiers are coming, and are
-these weary, anxious, fearful days and nights to end? At the
-first dawning of the day, September 26th, the Indian camp
-was astir and preparations made to receive distinguished
-guests. And who were these guests? Colonel Sibley, the
-big white chief, and his staff. Extra paint, paint of every
-hue, and beads, together with eagle feathers and white flags,
-were conspicuous throughout this excited Indian tepee
-village.</p>
-
-<p>The bright gleam of muskets away in the distance,
-banners fluttering in the breeze and the sound of martial
-music as it struck the glad expectant ear, was an answer
-to all their prayers: &ldquo;Deliverance had come!&rdquo; Hearts made
-glad because the terrible nightmare of weeks had been
-dissipated, the anxious days and sleepless nights were at
-an end, prayers had been answered, and it was now a time
-for thanksgiving. Was it ended, this horrible dream? Yes.
-But with it all, strong attachments sprang up between the
-captive and the captor. They would have been less than
-human if it were not so. These sturdy and determined
-Indian women and men who protected them had jeopardized
-their lives, and what greater love can we show one
-for the other than that we lay down our lives?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_141" id="Page_141">« 141 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 506px;">
-<img src="images/page_141.png" width="506" height="378" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">CAMP RELEASE.</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_142" id="Page_142">« 142 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_143" id="Page_143">« 143 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The little children, from one year up to four or five,
-who had become orphaned, were adopted by the Indian
-mother, and these mothers, who became so under such
-sorrowful circumstances, and having all the maternal instincts
-of her more favored white sister, cared for them
-as tenderly as she did her own. The little things were
-there with their dirty, chubby faces, just the same as their
-Indian mates, their faces were painted, their hair braided
-and garnished with eagle feathers, and they really seemed
-happy and contented amid their changed and strange environments.
-When the time came for them to go to our camps
-they cried and wanted to stay with their newly found Indian
-mothers, and the mothers in turn hugged them and cried
-over them and hated to give them up. There is nothing
-passes a mother&rsquo;s love, even an Indian mother&rsquo;s love.</p>
-
-<p>It was a proud day for Colonel Sibley, and as he looked
-into the happy faces of the captives and received their blessings
-and reverent homage, his heart was touched and tears
-coursed down his cheeks. He was yet a colonel, so far as
-we knew, and one of his staff officers, in addressing him
-said:</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;Colonel Sibley, I would rather have the glory of your
-achievement to-day than the proudest victory ever won in
-battle.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>The military camp at this point was designated Camp
-Release, so named from the nature of our mission in releasing
-the people from their Indian captivity. The manner
-in which they were rescued and the Indians captured reflects
-greatly to the credit and sagacity of Colonel Sibley
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_144" id="Page_144">« 144 »</a></span>
-and his advisers. The impetuous and indignant soldiers,
-after what their eyes had beheld in the region where the
-whites had been murdered, were determined to annihilate
-the camp, and it was almost impossible to restrain them,
-especially Company A, of the Sixth Minnesota, which had
-suffered so severely at Birch Coolie; but wiser counsels prevailed.</p>
-
-<p>After the Indians had been secured, and the captives
-released, we went among them and listened to the recital
-of experiences that would make the blood of any ordinary
-mortal boil with indignation, and it was a miracle that the
-soldiers did not take the matter in hand and then and
-there forever settle the Indian question. The orders were
-very strict about guarding the Indians, but on the sly many
-acts of cruelty were indulged in by the soldiers that would
-hardly be warranted, for we should not for a moment
-forget the fact that they were our prisoners and we were
-not savages and should not indulge in savage propensities.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Henry Hastings Sibley at Camp Release received
-a notification of his deserved promotion, and we shall
-hereafter speak of him as General Sibley.</p>
-
-<p>During our stay at Camp Release we were daily drilling
-by company and battalion, and perfecting ourselves in all
-things pertaining to soldier life. We had a splendid camping
-place on the broad prairie near the river bank, but the
-cold nights reminded us that winter quarters would soon
-be more comfortable than the open prairie, and the rations
-were getting rather scarce. &ldquo;Fall in for grub&rdquo; ordinarily
-is quite as welcome to the hungry soldier as is the gong at
-a fashionable hotel to the fashionable guest. How we
-jumped for the haversack containing, not solid silver, but
-tin cup, tin plate, knife, fork and spoon, and fell in line
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_145" id="Page_145">« 145 »</a></span>
-according to our agility to get there, and not according to
-size, so as to give the ponies an equal chance with the tall
-men, whose place is on the right when in parade. Each
-received his ration of coffee, hard tack, pork and beans,
-irrespective of size, weight or previous condition.</p>
-
-<p>Commissary stores at Camp Release were getting very
-low and the supply train was not yet due by several days&rsquo;
-march, so it became necessary to count out the crackers&mdash;five
-crackers to each man for a day, and no pie or strawberries
-and cream for dessert. From five we were reduced
-to three, and then there was nothing left but the bottom
-of the barrels. There was some ear corn, but a guard was
-placed over that to keep it safe for the horses and mules.
-Every mule was honored with a guard during his meal
-hour to prevent the &ldquo;boys in blue&rdquo; from appropriating the
-precious ear for his own use. No coffee, no meal, no hardtack,
-but there was a load of potatoes remaining, and when
-the call to grub sounded, again we scrambled into line to
-receive our ration for the day, which was&mdash;one potato. Just
-after we received this potato ration the commissary train
-hove in sight under strong guard with three days&rsquo; rations,
-which were issued to the hungry soldiers, and the indications
-were that the command would soon move.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_146" id="Page_146">« 146 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XXII" id="CHAPTER_XXII">CHAPTER XXII.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">THE INDIAN PRISONERS&mdash;THE TRIAL.</p>
-
-
-<p>After liberating the captives it became necessary to at
-once proceed against the Indians, and to this end the
-General appointed a commission consisting of Colonel
-William Crooks, president; Lieutenant-Colonel William R.
-Marshall, Captains H. P. Grant, H. S. Bailey and Rollin
-C. Olin and Lieutenant I. V. D. Heard as recorder. The
-Indians were properly represented, and through an interpreter
-understood the nature of the charges brought
-against them.</p>
-
-<p>The rescued white captives, as soon as possible, were
-sent under suitable escort to Fort Ridgely and then forwarded
-to their friends. As before narrated, some of them
-had formed quite strong attachments for their dusky protectors.</p>
-
-<p>And it is not to be wondered at. Because a man&rsquo;s skin
-is red or black it does not follow that his heart is black.
-The blackest hearts the world&rsquo;s history ever recorded beat
-beneath the whitest breasts.</p>
-
-<p>These friendly Indians were in a very small minority,
-succeeded in saving the lives of the captives. It was a
-watch by day and by night, and through a bold determination,
-that the few friendly ones succeeded in saving, as they
-did, these captives, and they would be less than human
-if they did not form strong attachments for their dusky
-friends.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_147" id="Page_147">« 147 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 410px;">
-<img src="images/page_147.png" width="410" height="502" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">THE COURT-HOUSE OF THE MILITARY COMMISSION.</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_148" id="Page_148">« 148 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_149" id="Page_149">« 149 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>After the departure of the white captives, the Indian
-trial proceeded, but for good reasons the General concluded
-to move the camp down to the Lower Agency on the Red
-Wood River. The Indian camp, mostly made up of women
-and children, had been moved from Yellow Medicine to
-this place, where the trial still progressed.</p>
-
-<p>It was really amusing to sit by and listen to the testimony
-given in by the Indians through their interpreter. They
-were nearly all like the white criminals of to-day&mdash;innocent.
-I will only record a few. Cut-Nose, for instance,
-will be a fair example of others, who were as guilty wretches
-as ever escaped the immediate vengeance of an outraged
-people.</p>
-
-<p>The bloody old chief tried to play the innocent by saying
-he was not in the battles to hurt anyone. He was most
-always there, but he was engaged in some innocent pastime,
-such as feasting on roast beef and green corn, while
-his comrades of the paint and feathers were killing people
-by the score. If he fired at all it was at random and
-nobody was hurt. He would steal, but that was for the
-benefit of his wife; she insisted upon his doing something
-towards the support of herself and their Indian kids; but
-as for killing anyone, oh! no, he could not think of that
-for a minute.</p>
-
-<p>We have his picture here, and his looks are a &ldquo;dead giveaway;&rdquo;
-and, besides, twenty-seven murders were traced
-directly to him, and his protestation of &ldquo;me good Injun&rdquo;
-all went for nought. He was a notoriously bad Indian;
-he was so adjudged by the commission, who condemned
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_150" id="Page_150">« 150 »</a></span>
-him to death, and he finally dangled at one end of a hempen
-cord.</p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 245px;">
-<img src="images/page_150.png" width="245" height="377" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">CUT-NOSE.<br />
-<br />
-<span class="smaller">Who killed twenty-seven persons, and
-was hanged.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Another one, prematurely gray, thought this ought to
-be evidence in his favor, and others protested that they
-were too weak to face fire; others, that their lives were
-threatened and they were compelled to go on the war path;
-others, that they slept while their more wakeful companions
-fought; and one old man who said he was fifty years old
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_151" id="Page_151">« 151 »</a></span>
-a great many years ago, thought he might be excused, but
-a boy swore straight against him and said, &ldquo;I saw that man
-kill my mother,&rdquo; which solemn words settled the prisoner&rsquo;s
-fate.</p>
-
-<p>This Indian was &ldquo;Round Wind,&rdquo; but it was afterwards
-shown that he was not there and he was reprieved just
-before the day set for the execution.</p>
-
-<p>Among the Indian prisoners were some who had been
-enlisted in the &ldquo;Renville Rangers,&rdquo; and had deserted to
-their friends&mdash;our enemies. These rangers were all Indians
-and half-breeds, and it was largely from this fact that the
-Indians conceived the idea that all the white men had left
-the state and that the time was propitious for the Indians
-to strike to regain their territory.</p>
-
-<p>It was proven conclusively that these men had been
-in all the battles, and at Wood Lake one of them had
-taken the first scalp, and this from an old man and a
-former comrade in his company. For this he received one
-of the two belts of wampum which had been promised by
-Little Crow as a reward for killing the first white man.
-These men all offered excuses, but the evidence was so
-overwhelmingly against them that they also were condemned
-to death.</p>
-
-<p>It was necessary to make an indiscriminate capture of
-the Indians and then investigate their several cases to find
-out the guilty ones, because, there were many among them
-who no doubt had been compelled to participate in the
-fights we had with them at Birch Coolie and Wood Lake,
-and only kept with the hostiles from policy and to save
-the lives of the white people. To these and a good old
-squaw, well known in St. Paul and other parts of the
-Union as &ldquo;Old Betz,&rdquo; over 400 persons owe their lives.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_152" id="Page_152">« 152 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;Old Betz&rdquo; has gone to her reward in the happy hunting
-grounds, having lived over seventy-five years. She was a
-good woman and a good friend to the early settlers of Minnesota.
-Others who were friendly to the whites and loyal
-to their great father at Washington were liberated, and the
-guilty placed under strong guard.</p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 246px;">
-<img src="images/page_152.png" width="246" height="371" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">OLD BETZ.</div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_153" id="Page_153">« 153 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XXIII" id="CHAPTER_XXIII">CHAPTER XXIII.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">CAPTURE OF RENEGADE BANDS&mdash;MIDNIGHT MARCH.</p>
-
-
-<p>General Sibley was apprised by his scouts that there
-were several lodges of Indians up around Goose Nest Lake,
-and also near the mouth of the Lac-qui-Parle River, and
-he dispatched Lieutenant-Colonel Marshall with two hundred
-and fifty men (having six days&rsquo; rations) to bring them
-in. The little expedition started at midnight. They did
-not find Indians at the point designated, but struck across
-the country, and by a forced march of forty-five miles,
-found two lodges. They took the young men prisoners,
-but the women and children were placed in charge of the
-old men and sent away with instructions to report at
-Camp Release, which they did in due time. Colonel Marshall
-heard of twenty-seven lodges at a place described as
-Two Wood Lake, but upon arriving there, found the place
-deserted, the enemy leaving behind for the benefit of other
-Indians, a sign indicating that they had left two days
-before. In order to catch them, the infantry were instructed
-to follow, while the cavalry, with a howitzer,
-pushed on as fast as possible, and about midnight on the
-16th the detachment came up to the Indians, who, unsuspecting,
-were enjoying their sleep. The barking of the
-dogs awoke them, and they realized that something unusual
-was about to occur. Peering out through the opening
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_154" id="Page_154">« 154 »</a></span>
-of their tepees, they saw horsemen and at once suspected
-they were soldiers. The half-breed scouts called upon
-them to surrender and they would not be harmed. Some
-of the younger men started to run away, but they were
-overtaken and all made prisoners. In their conversation
-with the interpreter they said they would have given themselves
-up, but were afraid to do so. They said they knew
-that starvation stared them in the face, because a cold
-winter was at hand, their provisions were all gone, and
-that for the sake of their families they were glad to be
-caught. They said also that Little Crow and some of his
-immediate followers had gone farther north, near Devil&rsquo;s
-Lake.</p>
-
-<p>The game having been successfully bagged, Colonel
-Marshall hastened with the prisoners back to Camp Release,
-where everything was in readiness for a move down
-to Red Wood.</p>
-
-<p>Among the Indians was a negro by the name of Godfrey.
-He had never known any other people and was
-totally ignorant concerning his parentage; but he was
-among them, taking part in all their battles, and a very
-active part, too, for the charge against him was &ldquo;murder,&rdquo;
-in that with his own hand he had killed seven white men,
-women and children. He said he was not guilty. It is
-often thus&mdash;guilty men are innocent in their own estimation.
-Mr. O-ta-kle (Godfrey), was in his own opinion one
-of this sort. Certain it was, he had been enthusiastic over
-the prospect of the excitement that would follow a general
-uprising, for he put on a breech-clout and decorated his
-black face and legs in all the gorgeous hues of Indian war
-paint. He could &ldquo;whoop&rdquo; as loud and yell as fiercely as
-the best of them, and when the Indians returned from one
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_155" id="Page_155">« 155 »</a></span>
-of their raids he was accounted one of the bravest of their
-warriors. He admitted that he had killed seven; this he
-did, however, to his Indian comrades, when it would, if
-a fact, add feathers to his coronet and renown to his cruel
-record; but, when confronted by the men who could pass
-judgment against him if found guilty, he was the most
-innocent creature in all the world. In his hesitating,
-broken way of speaking, he gave a minute account of his
-whereabouts. There was no direct evidence against him,
-excepting his own confession to his comrades that he was
-with the Indians in all their raids and that he had killed
-seven people. In his earnest denial of the fact, he had such
-an honest look, and spoke with such a truthful tone, that
-the court, although prejudiced against him, were inclined
-to listen to his story with a reasonable degree of favor;
-yet he was finally found guilty and sentenced to be hanged,
-the verdict being accompanied with a recommendation that
-his punishment be commuted to imprisonment for ten
-years. He did not go to prison, but was sent to a reservation
-and compelled to stay there. Who he was, or where
-he came from, no one seemed to know, and he could remember
-nothing beyond his life among the Indians.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_156" id="Page_156">« 156 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XXIV" id="CHAPTER_XXIV">CHAPTER XXIV.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">HOMEWARD BOUND.</p>
-
-
-<p>&ldquo;We start for home to-morrow morning,&rdquo; were the gladsome
-words passed around the camp-fire on the evening of
-the 22d of October. The nights were getting chilly, and
-the shortening days indicated that the autumn was fast
-passing away, and that warmer quarters than our tents
-would soon be an absolute necessity. The contemplation
-of the homeward march was a pleasure, for there were ties
-of friendship there that forbade procrastination. A sad
-thought came over us as we remembered the poor fellows
-who had given up their lives&mdash;their waiting ones at home
-would wait in vain.</p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 335px;">
-<img src="images/page_156.png" width="335" height="168" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">&ldquo;<span class="smcap">Reveille.</span>&rdquo;</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Reveille sounded early one morning, and after a hurried
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_157" id="Page_157">« 157 »</a></span>
-breakfast of coffee and hard tack, the headquarters bugle
-sounded &ldquo;strike tents,&rdquo; and the city of canvas was soon
-razed to the ground. With the captives and prisoners we
-took up our line of march for Yellow Medicine, where the
-commission appointed by the General tried and condemned
-305 Indians to hang.</p>
-
-<p>The morning we left Camp Release the sun shone brightly,
-the sky was clear, but there was frost in the air; and,
-as we were on very short rations and only one blanket each,
-we were in high glee as we marched out to the music of
-the band. I think our steps were more than the regulation
-twenty-eight inches, for we were headed towards God&rsquo;s
-country&mdash;home. About four p. m. the fierce fall wind
-veered around in our faces, and coming as it did off the
-burnt prairie, our faces soon presented the appearance of
-men from the interior of Africa. We were black in the
-face. At five o&rsquo;clock we went into camp. It was pitch
-dark, with the wind blowing a hurricane, and in the darkness,
-infantry, cavalry, and artillery were one interminable
-mass of troops and order was impossible. So the orders
-were: &ldquo;By company, left wheel, halt;&rdquo; &ldquo;stack arms;&rdquo;
-&ldquo;break ranks,&rdquo; with orders to pitch tents and get under
-cover. To make fires and cook supper was impossible, so
-we supped on raw salt pork, hard tack, and cold water. The
-Sibley tents blew down as fast as put up, and in this condition
-we crawled under them to get the best protection
-possible from the fierce northern blast. Some of the men
-had found potato cellars that had been dug in the hillside
-by the Indians, and taking possession of them were thus
-afforded good, warm quarters and plenty of potatoes to eat.
-In this respect they were much more fortunate than the
-rest of us who were on the outside and had all we could do
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_158" id="Page_158">« 158 »</a></span>
-to keep from freezing to death. The storm abated somewhat
-by morning, so we could make our fires, which we
-did, and availed ourselves of the Indian potatoes, and with
-salt pork, hard tack and coffee made a hearty breakfast and
-were soon on the march again.</p>
-
-<p>The exposure of that night gave many of us the rheumatism,
-and it took several hours&rsquo; march to get ourselves limbered
-up, but the day was bright and we were homeward
-bound. We made a good day&rsquo;s march, and pitched our
-tents in the valley of the Red Wood.</p>
-
-<p>The Indian camp, consisting principally of women and
-children, had been previously removed to this place from
-Yellow Medicine, where the quartermaster had erected a
-large board prison to hold the captive red men, who had
-all been condemned by the Commission. The papers had
-been sent on to President Lincoln for his final decision,
-and we were here awaiting developments.</p>
-
-<p>The condemned Indians were sent under strong guard
-to Camp Sibley, on the banks of the Red Wood River.
-They were chained together and kept in a structure built
-for the purpose, and their squaws, who were camped on
-the outside, were allowed to cook for them under the supervision
-of a guard, to prevent them from smuggling knives
-or a weapon of any kind on the inside of the enclosure.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_159" id="Page_159">« 159 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 546px;">
-<img src="images/page_159.png" width="546" height="412" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">CAMP LINCOLN.</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_160" id="Page_160">« 160 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_161" id="Page_161">« 161 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>After a week or ten days we again took up the line of
-march to a destination known only to the General and his
-Staff, but which proved to be that the Seventh Minnesota,
-under Colonel William R. Marshall, should proceed with
-the prisoners to Mankato, and the Sixth Minnesota, under
-Colonel Crooks, should report at Fort Snelling for further
-orders. The two regiments marched together until we
-reached a point some way below New Ulm. Nothing of
-importance took place until we reached this place. The
-General having heard that the citizens had determined to
-kill every redskin regardless of consequences if they could
-possibly get hold of them, took precaution against it. It
-was said that every house was supplied with hot water, hot
-soft soap and anything and everything that ingenuity could
-invent to inflict sudden and sure punishment, and death
-if possible, to those that had brought such woe to them.
-For this reason the General changed his course somewhat,
-and making a detour to the right, escaped the necessity
-or perhaps bloodshed, in trying to save his captives from the
-hands of this justly furious people. Men and women turned
-out en masse and hurling imprecations, flourishing butcher
-knives, table knives, and even scissors, axes, pitchforks&mdash;in
-fact, every sort of weapon&mdash;seemed determined to get at
-them, and abused soldiers and Indians alike because they
-were held at bay. They followed us for two or three miles
-before they became convinced that the General was determined
-at all hazards to uphold the supremacy of the government
-in protecting these blood-stained captives from the
-furies of a people who had suffered so much at the hands
-of some of their tribes in the murder of their innocent
-women and children.</p>
-
-<p>At a point below New Ulm the command was divided,
-a portion taking all the condemned men to Mankato, and
-the balance of the command proceeding to Fort Snelling.</p>
-
-<p>At Mankato, as the days wore away and there was some
-doubt as to what the final decision of President Lincoln
-would be, great fear was entertained that there would be
-a general uprising of the people, and an attempt made to
-override military and civil law by wresting the Indians
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_162" id="Page_162">« 162 »</a></span>
-from the soldiers and instituting a general massacre of
-them, irrespective of their guilt or innocence, but Colonel
-Stephen Miller, the post commander, having determined
-that law and not lawlessness should prevail, used the utmost
-vigilance to defeat any such undertaking.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_163" id="Page_163">« 163 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XXV" id="CHAPTER_XXV">CHAPTER XXV.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">PROTESTS&mdash;PRESIDENT LINCOLN&rsquo;S ORDER FOR THE
-EXECUTION.</p>
-
-
-<p>The Indians did not seem to feel cast down; some in fact
-appeared rather to enjoy the situation; others, again, were
-more serious, and were probably speculating as to the
-probable outcome of the unfortunate condition of affairs.
-The soldiers did not relish the idea of guarding them, and
-one night a conspiracy, which I overheard, was formed to
-create a false alarm in the camp and in the excitement fall
-on the Indians and murder them. The plot leaked out and
-the plan miscarried, as it should, for it would have been
-rank murder to have executed it. Among the prisoners
-there were many who really were not guilty, but had been
-caught in bad company. The prisoners were arraigned
-upon written charges specifying the criminating acts, and
-these charges were signed by General Sibley, and with but
-few exceptions were based on information furnished by
-Rev. S. R. Riggs, who had long been a missionary among
-them. The majority of the prisoners were condemned to
-death, and the news reaching the East, far away from the
-scene of the outrages, petitions went in from many New
-England cities, imploring the President to exercise clemency
-toward this unfortunate people. He yielded to the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_164" id="Page_164">« 164 »</a></span>
-clamor in so far as only to include the very worst characters
-among them.</p>
-
-<p>Bishop Whipple said: &ldquo;There are times when the Christian
-laborer has a right to ask for the sympathy, the prayers
-and the co-operation of our fellow-citizens, and to make
-a strong appeal in behalf of this most wretched race of
-heathen men on the face of the earth. The responsibility,&rdquo;
-he says, &ldquo;is great, the fearful issues are upon us, and as
-we are to settle them justly or unjustly we shall receive
-the blessing or curse of Almighty God. Many of these
-victims of savage ferocity were my friends. They had
-mingled their voices with mine in prayer; they had given
-to me such hospitality as can only be found in the log
-cabin of the frontier; and it fills my heart with grief, and
-blinds my eyes with tears, when I think of their nameless
-graves. It is because I love them and would save others
-from their fate that I ask that the people shall lay the
-blame of this great crime where it belongs, and rise up
-with one voice to demand the reform of the atrocious Indian
-system, which has always garnered for us the same fruit
-of anguish and blood.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>Thousands of miles away from the scene of the outrages
-perpetrated against the inoffensive white settlers, protests
-were sent in to the President from all sorts of humanitarians,
-imploring him to stay the sentence that condemned
-to death so many human beings. The provocation to indiscriminately
-condemn and hang was very great, for thousands
-of innocents had been ruthlessly murdered; no moments
-of warning were given them; no former kindnesses
-seemed to be remembered by the Indians, and their hands
-were steeped in their friends&rsquo; blood, and there seemed no
-palliating circumstances. The enormity of the outbreak
-and the fiendish cruelty of the redskins were appalling;
-the people were paralyzed with astonishment and fear, and
-the witnesses, no doubt mistaken and prejudiced, gave such
-positive testimony that the commission felt satisfied in pronouncing
-them guilty of murder in the first degree; but
-would this have been the case if these prisoners had been
-white instead of red?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_165" id="Page_165">« 165 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 505px;">
-<img src="images/page_165.png" width="505" height="249" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">INTERIOR OF INDIAN JAIL.</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_166" id="Page_166">« 166 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_167" id="Page_167">« 167 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>No doubt General Sibley himself was surprised when he
-learned of the indiscriminate condemnation of these prisoners,
-and was glad not to be held responsible for their
-hanging.</p>
-
-<p>It is a fact that there were Indians found with arms in
-their hands in nearly all the battles, but their object was
-to protect the women and children prisoners, and they said
-they must make a show of fighting whether they did or not
-in order to accomplish this. It would have been a great
-stain on the fair name of our country if this wholesale hanging
-had occurred, and President Lincoln acted wisely in
-overruling the recommendation of the commission, which
-he did to such an extent as to sanction the execution of
-thirty-nine of the condemned men, and the balance to be
-further held as prisoners until he should designate a reservation
-to which they should be sent. During the time the
-preparations were being made to carry out the President&rsquo;s
-order the people were clamorous. They were not satisfied
-with the modification of the President&rsquo;s order, and grave
-rumors were abroad that there would be a vigorous effort
-made to take the Indians from the soldiers and have a
-wholesale execution, but the military authorities prevented
-it.</p>
-
-<p>The President acted wisely in this matter. In fact,
-the state of the public mind was such and the pressure
-within our lines was exercised to such a degree that
-the President could do nothing less. If all the condemned
-Indians had been executed the impression would
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_168" id="Page_168">« 168 »</a></span>
-have gone abroad that the great government of the United
-States was putting to death its prisoners of war, and this
-would have done much toward bringing about a recognition
-of the Southern Confederacy.</p>
-
-<p>The President&rsquo;s order was as follows:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p class="tdr">
-&ldquo;Executive Mansion,&nbsp; &nbsp; &nbsp;<br />
-&ldquo;Washington, December 6, 1862.</p>
-
-<p class="tdl">&ldquo;Brigadier-General H. H. Sibley, St. Paul, Minn.:</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;Ordered, that the Indians and half-breeds sentenced
-to be hanged by the military commission, composed of
-Colonel Crooks, Lieutenant-Colonel Marshall, Captain
-Grant, Captain Bailey and Lieutenant Olin, and lately sitting
-in Minnesota, you cause to be executed on Friday, the
-19th day of December, instant.</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;The other condemned prisoners you will hold subject
-to further orders, taking care that they neither escape nor
-are subjected to any unlawful violence.</p>
-
-<p class="tdr">&ldquo;Abraham Lincoln,&nbsp; &nbsp; &nbsp;<br />
-&ldquo;President of United States.&rdquo;</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The execution was carried out on the 26th of December,
-1862. Thirty-eight were hanged.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_169" id="Page_169">« 169 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XXVI" id="CHAPTER_XXVI">CHAPTER XXVI.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">THE EXECUTION&mdash;THE NIGHT BEFORE.</p>
-
-
-<p>The date of the execution was fixed for December 26,
-1862. On the 22d instant the condemned prisoners were
-separated from the others, and on the same day Colonel
-Stephen Miller (afterwards Governor), who was in command,
-through the interpreter, Rev. Mr. Riggs, called
-upon the condemned and announced the decision of the
-Great Father at Washington. He said:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>Tell these thirty-nine condemned men that the commanding
-officer of this place has called to speak to them
-on a serious subject this afternoon. Their Great Father
-at Washington, after carefully reading what the witnesses
-testified to in their several trials, has come to the conclusion
-that they have been guilty of murdering his white
-children; and, for this reason, has directed that each be
-hanged by the neck until dead next Friday at ten a. m.</p>
-
-<p>That good ministers, both Catholic and Protestant, are
-here, and can commune with them for the remaining four
-days they have to live.</p>
-
-<p>That I will now cause to be read the letter from their
-Great Father at Washington, first in English and then in
-their own language.</p>
-
-<p>Say to them, now, that they have so sinned against
-their fellow-men, that there is no hope for clemency except
-in the mercy of God, through the merits of the blessed
-Redeemer; and that I earnestly exhort them to apply to
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_170" id="Page_170">« 170 »</a></span>
-that, as their only remaining source of comfort and consolation.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Rev. Mr. Riggs, the interpreter, had been a missionary
-among them for twenty-five years, and he had known
-them intimately, and it pained him sorely to be obliged to
-convey to them as an interpreter the words that were to
-condemn them to death. In so doing he said:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>I have known you for many years; I have pointed you
-to the cross; endeavored to prayerfully convince you that
-allegiance to God, and the Great Father at Washington,
-was your duty. I have with a broken heart witnessed
-your cruelty to inoffensive men, women and children;
-cruelty to your best friends. You have stained your hands
-in innocent blood, and now the law holds you to strict
-accountability. It pains me to inform you that your Great
-Father in Washington says you must die for your cruelty
-and murders, and I am directed to inform you that on the
-26th day of February you will be hanged by the neck until
-you are dead, and may God have mercy on your souls.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The prisoners received the sentence rather coolly; some
-smoking their pipes composedly during its reading, one of
-them knocking the ashes out of his pipe, and another putting
-in his a fresh supply of kinnikinnick. On Tuesday
-evening they held a death dance, accompanied by wild
-Indian songs, and there were some fears that the excitement
-might cause an attempt to make an escape or create
-a panic; so, precautionary measures were taken. The Indians&rsquo;
-friends and families were permitted to visit them
-and take a last farewell. It was a solemn time even to
-the white soldiers, for it was plainly evident that while
-there was a lack of such demonstration as would be witnessed
-among the whites under similar circumstances, yet
-to the observant eye only, it was plain to be seen that deep,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_171" id="Page_171">« 171 »</a></span>
-deep grief had taken possession of their hearts. There were
-few tears; no hysterics, but profound sorrow was depicted
-on the countenances as the parting word was said, and
-messages sent to children and friends. Some were completely
-overcome; others in bravado laughed and joked as
-if it were an every-day occurrence. One said: &ldquo;Yes, tell
-our friends that we are being removed from this world
-over the same path they must shortly travel. We go
-first.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>Many spoke in a mournful tone; in fact, the majority
-of them desired to say something, and with one or two
-exceptions they seemed to be penitent. Why should they
-not? Their white brethren under like circumstances are
-accorded religious privileges. They repent and accept the
-invitation, &ldquo;Come unto Me all ye who are weary and heavy
-laden and I will give you rest.&rdquo; The thief on the cross
-repented. Could not an ignorant, misguided Indian under
-religious instruction receive light and repent?</p>
-
-<p>The night before the execution Colonel Miller received
-a stay for one of the condemned, as strong doubt existed
-as to his participation in the murders, and he was finally
-pardoned.</p>
-
-<p>It has been said that in the excitement of the preparations
-for the execution that the wrong man was pardoned.
-He was guilty, but the innocent man suffered in his stead.
-The last night was spent by the prisoners in quite a jolly
-camp-fire, chatting merrily and smoking to their hearts&rsquo;
-content.</p>
-
-<p>Father Ravoux, a Catholic priest from St. Paul, remained
-with them all night administering consolation and
-communion, and the more serious of them listened attentively
-to his words of comfort. In the morning, as the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_172" id="Page_172">« 172 »</a></span>
-hour for the execution approached, and while Father
-Ravoux was speaking to the Indians, the provost marshal
-entered and whispered something to the good priest, who
-in turn spoke in French to one of the half-breeds, and he
-repeated it in Dakota to the Indians, who were all lying
-down around the prison. The information he gave was that
-the hour had arrived when they were to march to the
-gallows. In a moment every Indian stood erect, and as
-the provost marshal opened the door they fell in behind
-him with the greatest alacrity. Indeed, a notice of release,
-pardon or reprieve could not have induced them to leave
-their cells with more apparent willingness than this call
-to death. At the foot of the steps there was no delay.
-Captain Redfield mounted the drop, at the head, and the
-Indians crowded after him, as if it were a race to see who
-would get there first. They actually crowded on each
-other&rsquo;s heels, and as they got to the top, each took his position,
-without any assistance from those who were detailed
-for that purpose. They still kept up a mournful wail, and
-occasionally there would be a piercing scream. The ropes
-were soon arranged around their necks without the least
-opposition being offered. The white caps, which had been
-placed on the tops of their heads, were now drawn down
-over their faces, shutting out forever the light of day from
-their eyes. Then ensued a scene that can hardly be described
-and can never be forgotten. All joined in shouting
-and singing, as it appeared to those who were ignorant of
-the language. The tones seemed somewhat discordant,
-and yet there was harmony in it. It was not their voices
-alone, but their bodies swayed to and fro, and their every
-limb seemed to be keeping time. The drop trembled and
-shook as if all were dancing. The most touching scene on
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_173" id="Page_173">« 173 »</a></span>
-the drop was their attempt to grasp each other&rsquo;s hands,
-fettered as they were. They were very close to each other,
-and many succeeded. Three or four in a row were hand
-in hand, and all hands swaying up and down with the rise
-and fall of their voices. One old man reached out on each
-side, but could not grasp a hand; his struggles were piteous
-and affected many beholders.</p>
-
-<p>Those who understood their manners and language said
-that their singing and shouting was necessary to sustain
-each other. Each one shouted his own name and called on
-the name of his friend, saying in substance: &ldquo;I am here! I
-am here!&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>The supreme moment arrived, and amid an immense
-concourse of citizens and soldiers the drop fell, and thirty-eight
-human beings, whose hands were steeped in innocent
-blood and who had spread such desolation and sorrow to
-thousands of happy homes, were ushered into the presence
-of their Maker.</p>
-
-<p>The arrangements were under the immediate supervision
-of Captain Burt, of the Seventh Regiment, and they
-were so complete that there was not the slightest hitch.</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;Positions of honor were given to the most interested.
-For instance, the cutting of the rope was assigned to William
-J. Daly, of Lake Shetek, who had three children killed
-and his wife and two children captured, and who were at
-this time in the hands of Little Crow, on the Missouri, and
-were afterward ransomed by Major Galpin at Fort Pierre.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>The quotation I make here is from a book in the public
-library, and I found penciled on the margin by one of
-those persons who take advantage of the courtesies extended
-by public libraries, the following:</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;So should every remaining Indian be &rsquo;elevated'!&rdquo; Nay!
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_174" id="Page_174">« 174 »</a></span>
-Nay! scribbler. We cannot tell why one man&rsquo;s face is
-black and another red, while yours and mine are white.
-Would you mete out the same measure to the whites? Innocency
-among the Indians, per capita, is not more rare
-than among their more favored white brethren, and we are
-brethren of a different hue. Punish the guilty, be he
-white or black, but protect the innocent.</p>
-
-<p>After the bodies had hung for about half an hour, the
-physicians of the several regiments present examined them
-and reported that life was extinct. The bodies were carried
-away in United States mule teams and dumped in one
-common grave, dug in the sand bar in front of the city,
-the half-breeds in one corner of the hole so they might be
-found by their friends if they so desired. There may be
-times and circumstances when a Christian people can afford
-to act as we expect the benighted to do; but it has not
-arrived yet. No matter what the crime, the penalty has
-been paid, and after the spirit has gone to God
-to be adjudged, it is part of our civilization to
-be decent in our conduct toward all that remains
-mortal. It is not necessary to make a great display,
-but that we perform our duty according to our law.
-We have taken a life in accordance with a human law, and
-in justification of it we quote, &ldquo;An eye for an eye and a
-tooth for a tooth.&rdquo; No matter how atrocious the deed,
-after the penalty has been paid we cannot as a Christian
-people, apologize for our acts of barbarism to the inanimate
-clay.</p>
-
-<p>After the mandate of the President had been executed
-the telegraph flashed to Washington the following:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p class="tdr2">&ldquo;St. Paul, Minn., December 27, 1862.</p>
-
-<p class="tdl">&ldquo;To the President of the United States:</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;I have the honor to inform you that the thirty-eight
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_175" id="Page_175">« 175 »</a></span>
-Indians and half-breeds, ordered by you for execution, were
-hung on yesterday at Mankato, at ten a. m. Everything
-went off quietly, and the other prisoners are well secured.</p>
-
-<p class="tdr">&ldquo;Henry H. Sibley,&nbsp; &nbsp; &nbsp;<br />
-&ldquo;Brigadier-General.&rdquo;</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>With this the curtain drops on this bloody drama, and
-thus ended the great Indian campaign of 1862.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_176" id="Page_176">« 176 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XXVII" id="CHAPTER_XXVII">CHAPTER XXVII.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">SQUAWS TAKE LEAVE OF THEIR HUSBANDS.</p>
-
-
-<p>The condemned men, and the others who were to be
-deported after the execution took place, were called upon
-to bid good-bye to their wives and children, who were to
-be taken down to Fort Snelling. The wives were allowed
-a few at a time to go inside the jail and with the children
-have words of conversation with the husband and father.
-After a reasonable time they took leave of them. There
-were no hysterics, no sobs, no tears, but the heart-beats
-and the thoughts were there. Love? Yes. How deep,
-no white on-looker could tell. It was a supreme moment
-to the poor Indian and his dusky wife. Their roads were
-very divergent from this time, and in low tones they
-answered in their own tongue. Some of the soldiers made
-slighting remarks, but there are those among educated
-whites who have no serious moments, no serious thoughts;
-they have not time to be serious, and no inclination; but
-this was a serious time for those poor creatures; they knew
-the hour had arrived when they must say good-bye forever
-on earth to their red-skinned partners in life&rsquo;s joys and
-sorrows. No hand shake; no embrace; no crying; but
-a sorrowful, affectionate look, and they turn their back on
-them forever.</p>
-
-<p>The women and children are taken down to Fort Snelling,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_177" id="Page_177">« 177 »</a></span>
-and in a camp prepared for them they are put for the
-winter, and a strong guard placed about them to prevent
-any outrages being committed. The night the news was
-carried to them of the execution the wails of the poor
-creatures could be heard for a long distance away: &ldquo;Rachael
-mourning for her children and would not be comforted,
-because they were not.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>Much sorrow was expressed for them because we could
-but feel that they were unfortunate creatures, endowed
-with all the attributes of human beings.</p>
-
-<p>The mortality among them was very great and hundreds
-died before the winter of suspense had passed away.</p>
-
-<p>In April, 1863, the camp was broken up and the remaining
-ones were placed in a steamer for St. Louis, from
-whence they were to be sent up the Missouri River to the
-Crow Creek agency. Some died on the way, and as they
-left their homes and looked for the last time on their
-native hills, a dark cloud was crushing out their hearts.
-Soon after landing at Crow Creek every tepee had its sick
-and anxious hearts&mdash;mothers and children far away from
-their dead.</p>
-
-<p>The deported ones joined their families in time, and as
-the years glide on they have had time for reflection, and
-the events, as they undoubtedly come trooping back to
-them, furnish food for thought.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_178" id="Page_178">« 178 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XXVIII" id="CHAPTER_XXVIII">CHAPTER XXVIII.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">CAPTURE AND RELEASE OF JOE BROWN&rsquo;S INDIAN
-FAMILY.</p>
-
-
-<p>We knew Major Brown well. He was known to nearly
-all early settlers, because he came to Minnesota when the
-white people were very few. He felt that it was not well
-for man to live alone, a white man especially, and so he
-took unto himself a dusky bride. He was in government
-employ and a big white chief among his new found wife&rsquo;s
-people and to whom he was a friend.</p>
-
-<p>As he grew in years his family grew also, and the
-dusky mother&rsquo;s household cares increased. Yes, they lived
-in a fine stone house, elegantly furnished, down on the Yellow
-Medicine below the agency, but which came in the way
-of his red brother&rsquo;s vengeance, and it was destroyed. The
-Brown family lived happily in their rather modern home.
-The Major attended to his official duties, and the wife and
-boys cultivated the land; but in common with all the
-others during these sad days, their only safety was in flight.
-Their home, including books and furniture, was totally
-destroyed. The father was a fugitive and his family prisoners.
-They did not suffer as some others did, because the
-wife and mother was a full blood and was related to the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_179" id="Page_179">« 179 »</a></span>
-Sisseton tribe and had powerful friends among them. Their
-capture, captivity, and final release, as related by Samuel
-Brown, the fifteen-year-old boy, is an interesting recital.
-He says:</p>
-
-<p>On Monday, the 18th day of August, I went to Yellow
-Medicine with my sister Ellen upon an errand. We met
-on the way an Indian named Little Dog, who told us that
-the Indians had killed a family at Beaver Creek, and were
-going to kill the whites as far as St. Paul, and that we
-must not tell any one about it, or they would kill us. He
-said he warned us at the risk of his own life. This was
-about noon. Soon after our arrival at Yellow Medicine
-an old squaw told us that we had better be getting away,
-as there would be trouble. We asked many of the other
-Indians about it, but they said they had heard of nothing
-of the kind. Another squaw afterward told us that she
-thought it must be the Yanktonais who were coming down
-to take the agency. We left them about half-past three
-o&rsquo;clock. George Gleason had just left with Mrs. Wakefield
-and her children for below. When we reached home
-we told mother what we heard. She was very much scared
-and did not sleep any that night. About four o&rsquo;clock
-next morning I heard some one outside calling in a loud
-voice a number of times for my mother, and then I heard
-Charles Blair, my brother-in-law (a white man), ask what
-was the matter, and the man, who was a half-breed named
-Royer, said that four hundred Yanktonais had arrived at
-the upper agency and were killing everybody. We then
-became very much alarmed, and had our oxen yoked at
-once to the wagon, put everything in we could, and started
-for Fort Ridgely. We had all the neighbors warned, and
-they went with us. They had three wagons, with ox
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_180" id="Page_180">« 180 »</a></span>
-teams. Four or five white men overtook us on the road,
-among them Garvey&rsquo;s cook (Garvey was the trader
-wounded at the agency, and who afterward died at Hutchinson.)</p>
-
-<p>When we had gone about five miles we saw some
-men two miles ahead, near the bank of the river,
-but supposed they were farmers. The Yanktonais,
-whom we were afraid of, lived above us. We
-thought nothing about the men until we saw an Indian
-on a hill ahead of us. He beckoned to others, and before
-we knew it we were surrounded. De-wa-nea, of Crow&rsquo;s
-band, and Cut-Nose and Shakopee, three of the worst
-among the Lower Indians, came to us first. We were in
-the head wagon. Mother told them who we were, and
-they said we must follow them, and that we were all as
-good as dead. De-wa-nea said that the whites had taken
-him prisoner a good many times and that it was now his
-turn. He wanted the rest of the Indians to kill us all.
-There was an Indian in the party, John Moore&rsquo;s brother-in-law,
-who took our part, and he and his friends saved us
-from the others. This Indian had once come to our
-house when he was freezing and my mother took him in
-and warmed him. He told the other Indians that he remembered
-this, and that we should live. They insisted
-that my brother Angus should shoot one of the white men,
-but he refused to do so. Each of the Indians had one of
-the whites picked out to shoot as they came up. My mother
-said they were poor men and it would do no good to kill
-them. John Moore&rsquo;s brother-in-law said they should live
-if she wanted them to. The Indians made a great fuss
-about it, and said she ought to be satisfied with what she
-had got, but afterwards consented and told the men to
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_181" id="Page_181">« 181 »</a></span>
-start off. The women stayed with us. After the men had
-got off a little, Leopold Wohler, who had a lime-kiln at the
-agency, came back to the wagon after his boots, and an
-Indian told him if he didn&rsquo;t go away he would kill him. He
-started off with one boot, and came back again for the
-other, and the Indian drove him away again with the same
-threat. He went a short distance and came back again
-to kiss his wife. The Indians then became very much
-enraged, and acted so fiercely that he was glad to escape
-without further difficulty. There were ten Indians close
-to us, and twenty-five or thirty near, running into the
-houses. They made Angus and Charles Blair, who were
-riding horses, give them up. De-wa-nea put on my sister&rsquo;s
-bonnet and began singing a war song. He was very merry.
-He said the Indians were now going to have a good time,
-and if they got killed it was all right; that the whites
-wanted to kill them off, and were delaying the payment
-in order to do it by starvation, and that he preferred to be
-shot. We saw three men and a woman on the road terribly
-hacked up. This party had committed the murders.
-The men had been mowing together; their scythes
-and pitchforks were lying near by. Cut-nose showed
-us his thumb, from which a piece had been bitten
-near the nail, and he said it was done by one of these men
-while he was working the knife around in his breast; that
-he was very hard to kill, and he thought he would never
-die.</p>
-
-<p>Cut-nose afterward went to a wagon and told a Scotch
-girl who was in it that he wanted her for his wife, and
-to get out and follow him. She refused, and he then drew
-his knife and flourished it over her, and she got out and
-went away with him. That was the last I saw of him until
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_182" id="Page_182">« 182 »</a></span>
-we got to camp. He was called Cut-nose because one of his
-nostrils had been bitten out. This was done by Other Day
-in a quarrel.</p>
-
-<p>When we reached the camp of the Red Creek Indians,
-four miles above the Redwood River, they told us that the
-Agency Indians had sent word for all to come down there,
-and that those who did not come would be taken care of
-by the &ldquo;Soldiers&rsquo; Lodge.&rdquo; They were then about starting,
-and an Indian made Augus and myself hitch up a mule
-team which he said he had taken from Captain Marsh&rsquo;s
-men the day before. He said they had just heard a cannon
-at the fort and they wanted to go down and whip the
-whites there. This was about noon. We then went down
-to John Moore&rsquo;s house (this was where Other Day&rsquo;s horse
-was stolen), and they put us upstairs, where they had two
-or three women captives. We were there about an hour,
-when three Indians told us to come up to their camp on the
-hill, where we were to stop with John Moore&rsquo;s mother,
-or grandmother. We followed them, and when we got halfway
-up suddenly missed them. We supposed they hid
-from us, and we wandered on. We met a German woman
-who had seven or eight children with her, all under eight
-years of age,&mdash;two on her back, one under each arm and
-two following behind. They came along with us. We
-went to Moore&rsquo;s relative, but she said she knew nothing
-about us and couldn&rsquo;t take us, and that we had better go
-down to Crow&rsquo;s Village. We started, not knowing where
-to go, when a squaw, who was crying about the troubles,
-met us, and took us home with her. The Indians sent our
-team back to camp. They gave Augus and I blankets and
-moccasins, and we put them on and went down to see Little
-Crow. He told us to bring our folks down there, and no
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_183" id="Page_183">« 183 »</a></span>
-one should hurt us. This was Tuesday evening, about
-seven o&rsquo;clock. He was in his own house, and the camp was
-pitched around it. We went back and brought our folks
-down. Little Crow put us up in the top room of the house,
-and gave us buffalo robes and everything to make us comfortable.
-He brought us a candle as soon as it was dark;
-he was very kind to us; he said he would take as good care
-of us as he could, but he didn&rsquo;t believe he could keep Charley
-Blair alive until morning. He gave him a breech clout
-and leggings, which he put on.</p>
-
-<p>During the night an Indian or a half-breed came in
-the room downstairs where Crow was, and told him that
-we ought to be killed. We overheard what they said. The
-man was very ugly, and said no prisoners ought to be
-taken, and that we were related to the Sissetons, and had
-no claim on the Lower Indians, and there was no reason
-why we should be spared. He said he wanted Crow to call
-a council about it immediately. Crow told him that he
-saved us because we were his friends, and that he would
-protect us; that it was too late to hold a council that night,
-and he compelled him to leave.</p>
-
-<p>He gave us plenty to eat, and came up several times
-during the night to see how we were getting along. We
-begged him to let Charley Blair go. He said he couldn&rsquo;t;
-that the Indians knew he was there, and would kill him
-(Crow) if he allowed it. We coaxed him for a couple of
-hours, when he consented, and brought an Indian, who
-took Charley down to the river and left him in the brush.
-He made his escape from there to the fort. Crow told us
-not to say anything about it, for the Indians would kill
-him, and that he did it because he had known our folks
-so long. He said the young men started the massacre, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_184" id="Page_184">« 184 »</a></span>
-he could not stop them. A week after that Akipu, an
-Upper Indian, came down from the Yellow Medicine
-Agency and took us up with him. From that time until our
-deliverance we remained with our relatives, and were well
-treated by them.</p>
-
-<p>The foregoing recital is just as the boy gave it, and in
-subsequent conversations with the father it was substantially
-verified.</p>
-
-<p>Major Brown, after recovering his family, lived for a few
-years, and did much toward assisting the Government in
-adjusting the many claims brought against it by persons
-who had suffered so much at the hands of the Indians.
-He died a number of years ago, but the members of his
-family live and are much respected in the community in
-which they live.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_185" id="Page_185">« 185 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XXIX" id="CHAPTER_XXIX">CHAPTER XXIX.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">GOVERNOR RAMSEY AND HOLE-IN-THE-DAY.</p>
-
-
-<p>Alexander Ramsey, of Minnesota, is the last of the famous
-coterie of war governors; a band that will be immortal.
-Curtin, of Pennsylvania; Dix, of New York; Dennison,
-of Ohio; Morton, of Indiana; Randall, of Wisconsin;
-Yates, of Illinois; Blair, of Michigan; Andrew, of Massachusetts;
-and Kirkwood, of Iowa;&mdash;a notable group, stalwart,
-rugged patriots with hearts beating as one. Comprehending
-the danger that menaced the nation, confronted
-with no easy task, these grand old stalwarts pledged their
-states to uphold, with men and money, the general government.
-They have passed away honored by a grateful country
-and beloved by the men who responded to their call.
-Governor Ramsey alone remains, and in the National Grand
-Army encampment held in St. Paul in 1896 he was a central
-figure. Passed, as he has, beyond the allotted time of
-man, measure full and running over, he saw the salvation
-of his country, proud of the part Minnesota&rsquo;s sons took in
-its restoration, and proud to meet them after the smoke
-of battle had cleared away. Governor Ramsey, being in
-Washington at the time of the first call for troops, promptly
-responded in person to the President, and tendered a regiment
-from Minnesota, and it was accepted; and it was the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_186" id="Page_186">« 186 »</a></span>
-first to be accepted. He immediately telegraphed to Adjutant
-General William Henry Acker to at once issue
-a call for one regiment of three months men.</p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 352px;">
-<img src="images/page_186.png" width="352" height="501" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">HOLE-IN-THE-DAY.</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The companies were soon filled up, and Adjutant-General
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_187" id="Page_187">« 187 »</a></span>
-Acker was commissioned as captain of Company &ldquo;C.&rdquo;
-He was afterwards commissioned as captain in the Sixteenth
-U. S. Infantry, and was killed at Shiloh.</p>
-
-<p>Governor Ramsey was elected United States Senator from
-Minnesota, and served his state faithfully and well, and
-was at one time Secretary of War. At this writing he is
-hale and hearty, honored by men of all political faith.</p>
-
-<p>Governor Ramsey&rsquo;s part in the Indian trouble was more
-than commissioning officers and sending men to the frontier.</p>
-
-<p>The Chippewas were in a turbulent state of mind, and
-Hole-in-the-Day, their chief, did not seem inclined to
-soften their feelings to the Government, but rather encouraged
-them in their desire to break their compact. He
-said to his people that &ldquo;we had all we could manage, with
-our brethren in the South, and if they pleased to combine
-with the Sioux, their power could not be resisted.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>This surely was cause for alarm,&mdash;alarm for the safety
-of the state, and it required strong measures to curb this
-uprising among these Indians. Commissioner Dole lost
-hope of successfully meeting the demands of the Indians,
-and dispatched a messenger to Governor Ramsey asking
-him to hasten to his relief. The Governor lost no time,
-and with two or three others were soon on the way. He
-did not go with an army carrying banners, but quietly and
-unostentatiously met the Chippewa chiefs, and soon adjusted
-all difficulties.</p>
-
-<p>When it became known to Hole-in-the-Day that General
-Sibley had an overwhelming force, he was then desirous to
-befriend the state and assist in making a treaty of perpetual
-friendship with the whites, and assist them in fighting
-Little Crow. And after the battle of Wood Lake the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_188" id="Page_188">« 188 »</a></span>
-Winnebagoes, who were inclined to go to war against the
-&ldquo;pale faces,&rdquo; concluded it best to court his favor and proclaim
-war against the Sioux. Prior to this, all the tribes
-in Wisconsin had sent their &ldquo;wampums&rdquo; to the Winnebago
-chief, and a council of war had been fixed for the 28th of
-September. There seemed to be indications that an unfriendly
-white element was stirring up strife among all our
-Indian neighbors, and hence the impression that it was
-emissaries from the South who were doing it. It came
-from high authority that evidence existed to show that
-&ldquo;the Western tribes are going to join the South.&rdquo; It was
-a critical moment for this country. Slavery existed yet,
-and God&rsquo;s hand was laying heavily upon us. Federal reverses
-and Confederate successes cast a gloom over the
-North, and loyal men trembled, while the copper-head
-came forth and, with an exultant hiss, impeded the progress
-of the Government in its efforts to bring about an
-honorable peace. Under these depressing conditions Governor
-Ramsey, to whom all looked with so much solicitude,
-nerved himself to bring about an amicable settlement with
-the Chippewas.</p>
-
-<p>In three days from the time of departure, Governor
-Ramsey returned, having effected a settlement of all misunderstandings
-on September 15th, 1862.</p>
-
-<p>The public mind was relieved, for nearly every chief of
-the Nation being present to sign this treaty of peace, all
-hostile demonstrations ceased, and they evinced their
-further friendship by coming to St. Paul to return Governor
-Ramsey&rsquo;s visit, and tender their services to General
-Pope to operate against the Sioux.</p>
-
-<p>The Governor assured them he was pleased to know they
-had not stained their hands in innocent blood, as the Sioux
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_189" id="Page_189">« 189 »</a></span>
-had done;&mdash;that he would communicate their desire to join
-the white soldiers to the big chief, General Pope, and he
-would send for them. The talk they had with the Governor
-so pleased them that they became confidential and talkative.
-Their responses thus far had been grunts and &ldquo;ho,
-hos,&rdquo; but Chief Berry Hunter said the words they listened
-to &ldquo;went right into his ears, and they were good,&rdquo; and
-although he was an old man he had not lost his reason.
-That they had come down to show their white brothers
-they felt very friendly, and never desired to have any other
-feeling towards them.</p>
-
-<p>Big Dog, another of their noted chiefs, whose hands
-were very red, said he had painted them purposely, so that
-if he should kill an enemy and blood got on his hands it
-would not stain them.</p>
-
-<p>Governor Ramsey extended them an invitation to ride
-in the &ldquo;fire wagon&rdquo; to St. Anthony (now East Minneapolis).</p>
-
-<p>This meant that he would take them on the train. Railroading
-in Minnesota at this time was new to the white
-people, and the beautiful engines were objects of delight
-and admiration to them, and more so to the Indians, who
-were much interested in everything they saw in and about
-the locomotive, and they expressed great wonder at the
-steam whistle, and invariably ducked their heads as its
-shrill notes broke upon their ears. They did not wish to
-appear as cowards, but, like white soldiers dodging bullets
-after they had passed, so they inadvertently would &ldquo;duck&rdquo;
-when the whistle blew, and afterward have a hearty laugh
-over it.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_190" id="Page_190">« 190 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XXX" id="CHAPTER_XXX">CHAPTER XXX.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">CHASKA&mdash;GEORGE SPENCER&mdash;CHASKA&rsquo;S DEATH&mdash;THE
-&ldquo;MOSCOW&rdquo; EXPEDITION.</p>
-
-
-<p>Chaska and George Spencer were great friends, and there
-was reason for it, as you will see. It was in George Spencer&rsquo;s
-store where the first shot was fired, and he was the
-victim. He ran upstairs, but the Indians surrounded the
-place and threatened to burn the store, which they probably
-would have done but for the fact they wanted the
-goods. They could not muster courage to go upstairs to
-kill him, because they naturally thought: &ldquo;What would
-he be doing while we are trying to kill him?&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>An old squaw got him out the back way and secreted
-him in her tepee, and the Indians finally burnt the building,
-and supposed he had perished in the flames. The
-squaw turned him over to his Indian friend Chaska, and
-when the other Indians, who supposed he was dead already,
-saw him quite alive, they were much puzzled, for they
-had no inkling of his escape.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_191" id="Page_191">« 191 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 498px;">
-<img src="images/page_191.png" width="498" height="366" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">HOUSE OF CHASKA, A CIVILIZED INDIAN.</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_192" id="Page_192">« 192 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_193" id="Page_193">« 193 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>He was the only white man at the agency who did
-escape, and can attribute it to the friendly ministration
-of those two native Americans, Chaska and the squaw. It
-was no miraculous escape, but a plain case of genuine
-friendship toward a white man by an Indian. An Indian
-will avenge a wrong&mdash;that is his nature. It is born in
-him, and it cannot be blotted out; so, too, will he remember
-a kindness with an equal degree of fidelity, and, under
-any and all circumstances, will &ldquo;stick closer than a brother.&rdquo;
-Friend Spencer in this case found that the investment he
-had made in kindness to this red man was a paying one&mdash;it
-came in good time&mdash;his life was surely in jeopardy, and
-no miracle, but a faithful Indian, saved him, and this Indian
-was Chaska, a chief whom Little Crow had depended
-upon to help carry on the war. His friendship for Spencer
-was great, and when his friend&rsquo;s life was threatened, he
-with a double shooter in his hands would cry out: &ldquo;Shoot
-if you like, kill him if you will, but two of you will come
-out of your saddles if you do.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>Chaska dressed his friend in Indian garb and painted
-his face. It became necessary to kite him about, first in
-one friendly tepee and then in another, so that the spies
-could not keep track of him. I remember well the day
-I spoke with him. He had been wounded and was suffering
-from this, and the long days and nights of anxiety had
-told on him, but now that he could throw all this off he
-said he would soon be on the speedy round to complete
-recovery. Chaska was faithful to his friend of former
-years. He was desirous of becoming a white man so far
-as he could, by adopting their manners and customs. He
-came to see General Sibley one morning in his Indian garb,
-and the General said to him: &ldquo;I am not pleased to see you
-in your blanket.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;Then I will wear it no more,&rdquo; was his reply. He washed
-off the paint from his face, trimmed his hair, and dressed
-as a citizen. He desired to live in a house rather than a
-tepee and to have his children attend school. This was
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_194" id="Page_194">« 194 »</a></span>
-the wish of all the friendly Indians. They instituted reforms
-in the social fabric, and in marrying, the rite was
-performed by an ordained minister, the same as among
-their white brethren. Poor Chaska, I remember well the
-night he died, for at the time a strong suspicion pointed
-toward a member of my own regiment, who was a clerk
-in the hospital department, and there never was a doubt
-but Chaska&rsquo;s death was by poison administered by this
-man. George Spencer, his white friend, said of him: &ldquo;On
-the second day of our return from the Missouri, we rode
-along talking pleasantly of the future, he telling me how
-he would like to be situated on a small farm of land near
-me, and congratulating himself that his trouble was over,
-and that he would soon be restored to the bosom of his
-family. Alas, for my friend! He now sleeps tranquilly
-near the turbid waters of the Missouri, under the shadow
-of our intrenchments. Savage though he was, he was a
-noble man!&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>The night he died he had gone around to his white
-friend&rsquo;s tent, where he was always welcome, and supped
-with him and arranged for carrying in the commissary
-wagon, a pack of furs he had captured. He went to his
-quarters after taking a dose of medicine and was soon
-taken ill. He sent for his white comrade, who went immediately
-to his bedside, to find him senseless, dying. In
-his delirium he predicted a thunderstorm that would
-shake the earth and blind the people the day he was put in
-the ground, and the prediction came true. He did not
-once recognize his friend, who remained with him, closing
-his eyes with a sorrowful heart. He died at the age of
-thirty-two, leaving a wife and two interesting children.
-He was faithful among the faithless.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_195" id="Page_195">« 195 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 331px;">
-<a id="CHAPTER_XXXI"></a>
-<img src="images/page_195.png" width="331" height="168" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption"><span class="smcap">The Sentinel.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="caption2">CHAPTER XXXI.</p>
-
-<p class="caption3">THE &ldquo;MOSCOW&rdquo; EXPEDITION.</p>
-
-
-<p>This expedition, well named &ldquo;Moscow,&rdquo; will be remembered
-by the participants so long as they live. The government
-had decided to remove all the Indians to Fort Thompson,
-a military post on the Missouri, and after it had been
-done, it was found a little later that they were in a starving
-condition. General Pope communicated this fact to the
-authorities at Washington, and that the Indian agent had
-applied to him to furnish an escort for a supply train, that
-would be sent from Minnesota rather than from Sioux City,
-Iowa. Three companies were designated to undertake this
-perilous journey, and placed in command of Captain J. C.
-Whitney, of the Sixth Minnesota. It was impossible to
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_196" id="Page_196">« 196 »</a></span>
-hire teamsters to go, so an offer of twenty-five cents per
-day was made to the soldiers in addition to their $13 per
-month; but the undertaking was too hazardous and the
-offer was refused. The bid was raised until it reached $1.25
-per day extra, when a few soldiers agreed to accept. On
-the 6th day of November a partial start was made, but one
-delay after another occurred until the case became desperate,
-and the teamsters finally got two dollars a day
-extra.</p>
-
-<p>The fact was, the soldiers rebelled, and in order to frustrate
-the plans of the contractors the wagons were so disabled
-that it was impossible to move. Colonel Crooks, of
-the Sixth Minnesota, took matters in hand so vigorously
-that the soldiers knew that the expedition would have to
-move at all hazards, and it was foolish and dangerous to
-object and waste any more time. Several arrests of mutinous
-soldiers were made, but upon promises of better conduct
-they were released, and the &ldquo;Moscow&rdquo; expedition was
-finally and fully launched on the 20th day of November,
-1863. The undertaking was hazardous, but the men were
-supplied with the best of Sibley tents and blankets in
-plenty. Under the most favorable circumstances it was
-not a picnic, but barring the stinging cold days and colder
-nights, with a few frozen noses, no serious mishap overtook
-the brave soldier boys of this celebrated &ldquo;Moscow&rdquo; expedition.</p>
-
-<p>The return march was by way of Sioux City, Iowa, and
-the first post in Minnesota was reached on December 29th,
-1863. During the trip the command encountered severe
-storms and the thermometer at times fell to 40 degrees
-below zero&mdash;but thirteen dollars a month in depreciated
-currency was a fair compensation.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_197" id="Page_197">« 197 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 381px;">
-<img src="images/page_197.png" width="381" height="259" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption"><div class="tdl smaller">Designed by <span class="smcap">A. P. Connolly</span>.</div><br />
-<span class="smcap">Camp Pope</span>.<br />
-<span class="smaller">Where the troops assembled for the campaign of 1863.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_198" id="Page_198">« 198 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_199" id="Page_199">« 199 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XXXII" id="CHAPTER_XXXII">CHAPTER XXXII.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">CAMPAIGN OF 1863&mdash;CAMP POPE.</p>
-
-
-<p>In October, 1862, General John Pope had informed
-General Halleck that five Minnesota regiments could be
-sent south by November 1, but local influences were at
-work to prevent the transfer of troops, as it seemed very
-likely that hostilities would be renewed by the Indians
-again in the spring, and the demand that the State should
-be fully protected against these roving bands was acceded
-to, and orders were forthwith issued to the various companies
-to proceed at once to points designated on the
-frontier and go into winter quarters. Rumors were afloat
-at all times, but there really was no danger, and the soldiers
-had little to do but attend to a light guard duty and while
-away the tedious hours as best they could. The campaign
-of 1863 was planned by General John Pope, and General
-H. H. Sibley, who was in command of the district of Minnesota,
-with headquarters at St. Paul, was selected to command
-the Minnesota column, and General Alfred Sully
-to command the column that was to proceed up the west
-bank of the Missouri.</p>
-
-<p>These two columns were to co-operate for the final extinction
-of the Indians; but the low water of the Missouri
-prevented the plan from being carried out.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_200" id="Page_200">« 200 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The rendezvous of the Sibley column was at a point
-near the mouth of the Red Wood River, and twenty-five
-miles above Fort Ridgely. The forces comprising the
-expedition organizing at this point were the Sixth, the
-Seventh and the Tenth Regiments of Minnesota Infantry,
-under Colonels William Crooks, William R. Marshall and
-James H. Baker; eight pieces of artillery, under command
-of Captain John Jones; the Mounted Rangers, under
-Colonel McPhail; Indian scouts and other small detachments,
-which brought the force up to 3,052 infantry, 800
-cavalry and 146 artillerymen.</p>
-
-<p>The camp, named in honor of General John Pope, then
-in command of the Department of the Northwest, was
-situated at the mouth of Red Wood River, in the vicinity
-of the place where the outbreak was inaugurated. The
-various regiments, composed of infantry, cavalry and artillery,
-rendezvoused here. Colonel William Crooks, of the
-Sixth Minnesota, was in temporary command, and soon
-after the troops began to assemble, guard mount, company
-and regimental drills were the order of the day.</p>
-
-<p>The land upon which we were encamped was a perfect
-level, and in order to attain better discipline, and instruct
-the men in works of defense, a complete system of sod
-breastworks and bastions were erected about the camp, of
-sufficient width to admit of the sentinels being placed on
-the top of them. It was really a magnificent piece of
-engineering and reflected credit on the officer in command.
-The sentinels were instructed to &ldquo;walk the beat&rdquo; all in
-the same direction, turn about at the same time and retrace
-their steps, so that an enemy could not creep in between
-them. This was done to instruct the men in guard duty
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_201" id="Page_201">« 201 »</a></span>
-and keep them out of mischief, for there really was no
-danger.</p>
-
-<p>On the 9th day of June, 1863, the monotony of the camp
-was relieved by the arrival of General Sibley and his staff.
-This official family consisted of Captain R. C. Olin, A. A.
-G.; Captain Forbes, brigade commissary; Captain Atchinson,
-ordnance officer; Captain Edward L. Corning, brigade
-commissary; Captain Kimball, A. Q. M.; First Lieutenants
-Douglas Pope, F. J. H. Beaver, Joseph R. Putnam and
-Charles H. Flandreau, aides-de-camp, and Rev. S. R. Riggs,
-brigade chaplain.</p>
-
-<p>The cannon, placed across the river on the high bluff,
-boomed forth the intelligence that the cavalcade of brilliantly
-uniformed officers was approaching, and the General
-doffed his hat in salute as he rode down the long line of
-soldiers who stood at &ldquo;present arms.&rdquo; General Henry H.
-Sibley, who had gained the confidence and universal respect
-and love of the soldiers, was again with us.</p>
-
-<p>Soon after his arrival he received the sad intelligence of
-a beloved daughter&rsquo;s death. But the responsibilities resting
-upon him would not admit of days of mourning; there
-was no time for communion with grief; the needs of the
-hour reminded him of his duty.</p>
-
-<p>While lying at Camp Pope, General Sibley heard that a
-party of Indians were on their way down to the settlements,
-and would cross Red Wood River at a certain point the
-next night. He at once gave orders that my own company,
-the one that had sustained such losses at Birch Coolie,
-should proceed at once to watch for and intercept this band.
-We received the orders at midnight, and with three days&rsquo;
-rations, and sixty rounds of ammunition, started out on
-our mission in charge of First Lieutenant Harry J. Gillhams.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_202" id="Page_202">« 202 »</a></span>
-We had no doctor with us; no team; not even an
-ambulance. I never thought our General knew of this,
-for he was a very careful man, and the question with me
-was: &ldquo;If we are attacked and meet with losses in killed
-or wounded what shall we do with them in the absence of
-any means of transportation?&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>We arrived at the point designated the next day about
-noon and halted. There was no going into camp, for we
-had no tents. We simply halted and waited for night and
-Indians. I was in hopes that the Indians would not come,
-and I got my wish. There were others hoping they would
-come, and among those most desirous for them to make
-their appearance were our three full blooded Indian soldiers
-we had captured, and who were present at the various
-battles the year before. One of them, Joe Alord, a powerful
-fellow, claimed to have a grudge against his own people.
-He said they had always treated him badly, and he wanted
-to fight them, but I was a little suspicious of him&mdash;did not
-think him sincere. This Alord formed a strong attachment
-for me, which endured until he was finally mustered
-out. He went south with us and stood the climate, and
-proved himself a faithful soldier. I at one time saved him
-from death by his own hands. He had been punished by
-the Colonel for an offense of which he said he was not
-guilty. I think myself he had been imposed upon, like
-&ldquo;Old Dog Tray,&rdquo; by getting into bad company. The
-Colonel, as a punishment, ordered him to parade up and
-down the square with a bag of sand on his back. This
-was galling to the Indian, and calling me to one side, he
-said: &ldquo;Sergeant, me kill me mine self; me kill me mine
-self!&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>I tried to persuade him from his purpose, but he seemed
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_203" id="Page_203">« 203 »</a></span>
-determined to carry out his threat, and I watched him
-closely. I could see he was very much aggrieved, for to him
-the humiliation was galling.</p>
-
-<p>He grabbed a bayonet, and putting it to his breast, attempted
-to throw the weight of his body and thus push it
-through him. I jumped and kicked it from under him
-just in time and then put him in a cell until he became
-more reconciled. Soon after the close of the war he enlisted
-in the regular cavalry, but one morning he was missing.
-He had deserted, taking his horse and all his equipments
-with him; and although he was posted as a deserter,
-he was not heard of for many months.</p>
-
-<p>When heard from it was to the effect that he had gone
-back to the Indians, taking the horse and all plunder with
-him. The old grudge against him was rekindled and intensified
-on account of the course he pursued against his
-people during the Sioux war, and some of the young bucks,
-engaging him in a controversy, it resulted in his death.</p>
-
-<p>The Indian soldier Miller was inclined to be pious. He
-served until the close of the war, and afterwards was caught
-on the prairie in a severe thunder storm, from which he
-took refuge in a barn, which was struck by lightning and
-he was killed. The third was named Walker. At the outbreak
-he was home on vacation from Bishop Whipple&rsquo;s
-school at Faribault, Minn., and was taken prisoner. I have
-referred to these Indian soldiers once before. Walker was
-quite well educated and now lives near St. Paul.</p>
-
-<p>These three Indian boys were with us on this midnight
-expedition, and I felt they would bear watching, because
-I could not make up my mind to the fact that they should
-want to so suddenly turn against their own people. About
-midnight the second night an incident happened that gave
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_204" id="Page_204">« 204 »</a></span>
-us some alarm for a little while. We were all on duty
-watching and listening for Indians. You have heard
-about the burnt child dreading the fire. Well, we had
-been seriously burnt at Birch Coolie, and did not relish
-another taste of the same sort of fire, and it is not astonishing
-under such circumstances how many Indian sounds
-there are to the square foot. Every minute some of us
-heard an Indian sound, and all at once Joe Alord skipped
-out in the darkness, and immediately he was followed by
-Miller. I at once thought it was treachery, and the same
-opinion prevailed among nearly all the boys. I was but
-a sergeant then and of course could not assume supreme
-authority. If I had been in command I should have held
-the remaining one as a hostage. He wanted to go after
-the other two and gained the consent of the lieutenant to
-do so, and away he went out in the darkness. I expected
-soon to hear the crack of the rifle, for I felt satisfied that
-they had proved false to us. After they were gone half
-an hour and returned to our lines with the news that the
-noise they heard was not Indians we all felt relieved.</p>
-
-<p>But the half hour was an anxious one, and we were
-rejoiced to have them return. The Indians we were sent
-out to intercept did not appear, and the next day our little
-expedition returned to camp.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_205" id="Page_205">« 205 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XXXIII" id="CHAPTER_XXXIII">CHAPTER XXXIII.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">&ldquo;FORWARD MARCH.&rdquo;</p>
-
-
-<p>On the 16th day of June, 1863, with the thermometer
-100 degrees in the shade, all things being in readiness, the
-column took up the line of march into the almost unexplored
-region of Dakota Territory.</p>
-
-<p>This invading army was composed of nearly five thousand
-men, with a pontoon train, and an adequate ammunition
-and commissary train composed of 225 four- and six-mule
-teams; and these, with the troops, really made a formidable
-army. The big train, five miles long, was necessary,
-because the expedition was headed for an unknown and
-hostile country, and expected to traverse a territory totally
-devoid of vegetables of any sort, and game would probably
-be very scarce.</p>
-
-<p>The force was well organized, and the appearance of the
-train alone would awe the whole Sioux nation. It was a
-season of drouth such as was never before known in the
-West. The prairies were literally parched up with the
-heat, the grass was burned up, and the sloughs and little
-streams were dry. The fierce prairie winds were like the
-hot siroccos of the desert, and great clouds of dust, raised
-by the immense column, could be seen for miles and were
-viewed in wonder. We suffered from the heat, the dust
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_206" id="Page_206">« 206 »</a></span>
-and the weight of our knapsacks, gun and equipments, for
-the first day. The second day was as hot and dry, but the
-knapsacks were much lighter. Any one, even at this late
-date and so far removed from the days of the war, who
-thinks that a soldier&rsquo;s life is an easy one, that war is a
-picnic, is not endowed with common &ldquo;horse sense.&rdquo; And
-yet there are those who thus express themselves.</p>
-
-<p>The trains were soon being relieved of a part of their
-load by us drawing rations, and we had transportation to
-carry our individual loads.</p>
-
-<p>I cannot in the few pages allotted me follow the daily
-march of General Sibley and his hosts; but will, after a
-hard day&rsquo;s march of eighteen prairie miles (twenty-five in
-God&rsquo;s country), with heavy knapsacks, halt, stack arms,
-pitch our tents and direct letters from</p>
-
-<p class="center">CAMP SIBLEY,</p>
-
-<p class="p0">for such it was named, in honor of our commander.</p>
-
-<p>The General had decided to observe Sunday as a day
-of rest, deeming it necessary for the welfare of man and
-beast. There is no doubt but better service was rendered
-for so doing, and General Sibley was honored for this
-proper respect shown the Lord&rsquo;s day.</p>
-
-<p>The several camps were named after the officers in the
-command, the senior officers taking precedence; first, the
-colonels, then lieutenant-colonels, etc., etc. Nothing of an
-unusual nature other than a prairie fire occurred until we
-reached camp Atchison, where the forces were divided,
-and this will be the subject of a future chapter.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_207" id="Page_207">« 207 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 537px;">
-<img src="images/page_207.png" width="537" height="391" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption">PRAIRIE ON FIRE.</div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_208" id="Page_208">« 208 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_209" id="Page_209">« 209 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XXXIV" id="CHAPTER_XXXIV">CHAPTER XXXIV.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">BURNING PRAIRIE&mdash;FIGHTING FIRE.</p>
-
-
-<p>We started out on an exploring expedition to hunt Indians
-when we left Camp Pope. On the prairies there
-are enemies of various sorts&mdash;Indians, dust, heat and fire.
-The latter is a most formidable weapon with the Indian
-if the grass is plentiful and the weather dry, and they can
-use it to great advantage if the attacking party is not cool
-headed.</p>
-
-<p>Our sentinels were always instructed to report fire at
-once, no matter how far off it might appear to be. This
-enemy came in good time&mdash;it appeared one night when
-there was a high wind.</p>
-
-<p>The flames spread, becoming one vast sheet, sweeping
-over the prairies&mdash;a very roaring cataract of fire, the billows
-of which reached to the clouds. Coming on at this
-rapid, relentless rate, it would envelop and destroy the
-whole command.</p>
-
-<p>To arms! to arms! we are called, by bugle and by drum,
-and in face of this enemy, at a &ldquo;double quick,&rdquo; we march
-out to meet it. In case of fire the animals are frenzied,
-and it was a question at one time whether there would not
-be a stampede.</p>
-
-<p>The only way to conquer this sort of an enemy is to
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_210" id="Page_210">« 210 »</a></span>
-fight fire with fire, and this is done by burning away from
-you; so we started our fire, and as it burned away from us,
-we took possession of the burnt area as the fire demon in
-the rear came roaring on to consume us in his hot embrace.
-The red flames roared on high, the dense smoke obscured
-the moon and the stars, the atmosphere was stifling and
-thick with coal black dust, and the roar, as the fire fiend
-rolled on towards us, would have struck terror to the stoutest
-heart did we not know that his fury would soon be
-spent.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_211" id="Page_211">« 211 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XXXV" id="CHAPTER_XXXV">CHAPTER XXXV.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">DEATH OF LITTLE CROW.</p>
-
-
-<p>We will halt the column for a little and hunt in another
-direction for Little Crow. He had not been captured and
-would not surrender after the battle of Wood Lake in
-1862. Carried away with the idea that he would receive
-proper recognition and the confidence of the Indians he
-started away towards the British dominions. Devil&rsquo;s Lake
-was always a favorite &ldquo;summer resort&rdquo; for the Indians, and
-perhaps we can find him there.</p>
-
-<p>In the State of Dakota, nearly five hundred miles west
-from St. Paul, Minn., is the celebrated Minnewakan, or
-Devil&rsquo;s Lake. It is about sixty-five miles in length, and
-its waters are as salt as are those of the ocean. The immediate
-shores are part timber and part prairie; but a mile
-beyond, the country is one vast rolling prairie, destitute of
-trees, and dotted over with little lakes of salt water. This
-inland sea is a romantic place, and is well filled with fish,
-and game quite plentifully can be found there. Among
-other things are sea gulls and swan. The shore of the lake
-is covered with petrified wood, and the bones of fishes and
-animals are in abundance.</p>
-
-<p>To this neighborhood Little Crow and his followers,
-after the defeat at Wood Lake, Minn., wended their way
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_212" id="Page_212">« 212 »</a></span>
-and encamped, where they were joined by nearly all the
-Minnesota Sioux who had not surrendered or been captured.
-There were in all about 4,000 souls, and among
-them were Yanktonais. During the winter the chief sent
-out runners with messages and presents to many of the
-Western tribes, and endeavored to enlist them as allies in
-a general war.</p>
-
-<p>About the first of June Little Crow went to St. Joseph
-and Fort Garry to gain recognition from the British, as
-well as to obtain ammunition, but both were refused him.</p>
-
-<p>When at St. Joseph Little Crow had on a black coat
-with velvet collar, a lady&rsquo;s fine shawl adorned his head,
-and another was knotted around his waist. He had discarded
-his rifle, and carried a pistol instead, which latter
-was one of his trophies from the last summer&rsquo;s raid. He
-had learned of the deportation of his friends to the Missouri,
-of which the white residents there had as yet received
-no information. Crow received the news in advance from
-an Indian who had outstripped the regular mail. He and
-sixty of his braves had a war dance, after which he made a
-speech, in which he said that he considered himself as good
-as dead, but that he still had plenty of warriors upon whom
-he could rely, and would not be caught during the summer.
-He failed to get the recognition he thought he was entitled
-to as commander-in-chief of the Sioux army then in the
-field. It is a little strange that he could not be recognized,
-when cannibal kings from the islands of the sea can get
-recognition, and the devotees of royalty will tumble over
-each other to pay their respects to a lecherous, murderous
-Turk.</p>
-
-<p>Being disappointed in this, he made up his mind to slip
-through the cordon of posts that had been established for
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_213" id="Page_213">« 213 »</a></span>
-the protection of the people, and while General Sibley with
-his army was hunting for him away towards the Missouri,
-he would, single-handed and alone, go horse stealing down
-in the settlements.</p>
-
-<p>Alas! How are the mighty fallen! From a commander-in-chief,
-seeking recognition of a foreign nation, he at
-once becomes a vagabond horse thief.</p>
-
-<p>His son, Crow, Jr., was his only confidant, and to him
-he said:</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;I am getting old and cannot fight the white men, but
-will go below, steal horses from them for you children,
-so you may be comfortable, and then I can go away where
-they cannot catch me.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>The whole party that went with the fallen chief numbered
-sixteen men and one squaw.</p>
-
-<p>Crow, Jr., whose Indian name was Wa-wi-nap-a (one who
-appeareth), was with his father near Hutchinson, Minn.,
-picking berries to &ldquo;stay their stomachs,&rdquo; when they were
-discovered by a Mr. Lamson and his son Chauncey. This
-was Friday evening, July 3, 1863, and the skirmish that
-followed between Crow, his son, and the Lamsons prevented
-the Sioux chief from celebrating the Fourth of
-July in any sort of patriotic manner, for two shots from
-the trusty rifle of Mr. Lamson sent Crow&rsquo;s soul on its
-eternal mission to the happy hunting ground of his fathers.
-Mr. Lamson and his son were out in the country and they
-saw two Indians picking berries in an &ldquo;opening&rdquo; in the
-woods. The Indians did not discover the white men, who
-were taking aim at them. Mr. Lamson had crept cautiously
-forward among the vines and rested his gun against a
-tree and fired. His first shot took effect, but not a deadly
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_214" id="Page_214">« 214 »</a></span>
-one, as evinced by the loud yell of his victim, who fell to
-the ground severely wounded.</p>
-
-<p>With prudence and caution Mr. Lamson retreated a
-short distance, where he could obtain shelter from behind
-some bushes.</p>
-
-<p>The wounded Indian, not to be foiled, crept after him,
-and thus they were brought face to face. Another shot
-from the white man and the Indian was dead. His companions,
-his own son and another Indian, mounted a horse
-and fled.</p>
-
-<p>The Indian&rsquo;s shot, however, had not gone amiss, for it
-lodged in Mr. Lamson&rsquo;s shoulder, and he being some distance
-from his son, was supposed by him to be killed. The
-son returned to town to give the alarm. A quick response
-brought men to the scene of conflict, where they found
-the dead Indian, but Mr. Lamson was missing. A singular
-thing about it was that Crow was laid out, his head resting
-on his rolled-up coat, and he had a new pair of moccasins
-on. It would appear as though his son returned to make
-sure of his father&rsquo;s death, and finding him dead, he performed
-this last deed.<a name="FNanchor_1" id="FNanchor_1"></a><a href="#Footnote_1" class="fnanchor">[A]</a></p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-<p><a name="Footnote_1" id="Footnote_1"></a><a href="#FNanchor_1"><span class="label">[A]</span></a> Brown&rsquo;s Valley, Minn., Nov. 30.&mdash;Nathan Lamson, the man
-who, during the Indian outbreak in Minnesota in 1862, killed
-Little Crow, the famous Sioux chieftain, died to-day on his
-farm across the line in South Dakota, aged 96.&mdash;[Chicago
-Times-Herald, Dec. 1, 1896.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Mr. Lamson&rsquo;s wound was a severe one, but he made his
-way back to his home, which he reached about two o&rsquo;clock
-the next morning. Little Crow&rsquo;s body was brought to
-town, and the coat he had on was recognized as belonging
-to a man who had been found murdered some weeks before.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_215" id="Page_215">« 215 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 579px;">
-<img src="images/page_215.png" width="579" height="318" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption"><div class="tdl smaller">Designed by <span class="smcap">A. P. Connolly</span>.</div><br />
-<span class="smcap">Mr. Lamson Shooting Little Crow near Hutchinson, Minn., in August, 1863.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_216" id="Page_216">« 216 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_217" id="Page_217">« 217 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The body of this murderous old chief, after it lay in state
-on the ground for a day or two, was dumped into an unhonored
-grave, and no tears of regret were shed for him.
-While this was being done down in Minnesota, a military
-train five miles long was in pursuit of him up in Dakota;
-and the news did not reach General Sibley for two weeks.
-The description given of this Indian was so accurate that
-the General said it was no other than Little Crow. This
-again was corroborated by his son, who was some weeks
-after captured in a starving condition.</p>
-
-<p>Thus ended the ignominious life of Little Crow, the great
-Sioux chief who had influenced his people to believe that
-the time had come for them to reclaim their lost empire.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_218" id="Page_218">« 218 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XXXVI" id="CHAPTER_XXXVI">CHAPTER XXXVI.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">LITTLE CROW, JR.&mdash;HIS CAPTURE.</p>
-
-
-<p>After the death of Crow, senior, as narrated in the preceding
-chapter, his son and heir, Wo-wi-nap-a, becomes an
-important character in this chapter, and we will follow
-him and hear what he has to say about his father&rsquo;s death.</p>
-
-<p>When he was satisfied that his father was dead he started
-off he knew not where. He was a fugitive, a miserable creature,
-bereft of home, country and parents&mdash;a human being
-without a country, but with a soul&mdash;in a land where every
-hand was raised against him; a fugitive from an enraged
-white people because of the sins of his father. He hid by
-day and travelled by night until beyond the white settlements.
-He was captured by a company of soldiers who
-were out hunting Indians in the region of Devil&rsquo;s Lake,
-Dakota. When captured he was in a starving condition
-and glad to get even among Uncle Sam&rsquo;s soldiers. He was
-questioned as to his father and where he had been. He
-said:</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;I am the son of Little Crow; my name is Wo-wi-nap-a,
-and I am sixteen years old. Father said he was getting
-old and wanted me to go with him to carry his bundles.
-He left his wives and other children behind. There were
-sixteen men and one squaw in the party that went below
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_219" id="Page_219">« 219 »</a></span>
-with us. We had no horses, but walked all the way down
-to the settlements. Father and I were picking red berries
-near Scattered Lake at the time he was shot. It was near
-night. He was hit the first time in the side, just above the
-hip. His gun and mine were lying on the ground. He
-took up my gun and fired it first, and then fired his own.
-He was shot the second time while firing his own gun.
-The ball struck the stock of the gun and then hit him in
-the side near the shoulder. This was the shot that killed
-him. He told me that he was killed and asked me for
-water, which I gave him. He died immediately after.
-When I heard the first shot fired I laid down and the man
-did not see me before father was killed.</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;A short time before father was killed an Indian named
-Hi-a-ka, who married the daughter of my father&rsquo;s second
-wife, came to him. He had a horse with him, also a gray-colored
-blanket that he had taken from a man whom he
-had killed, to the north of where father was killed. He
-gave the coat to my father, telling him that he would
-need it when it rained, as he had no coat with him. Hi-a-ka
-said he had a horse now and was going north. He further
-said that the Indians who went down with them had
-separated, and he had not seen them since.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>After the death of his father Young Crow took both
-guns and started for Devil&rsquo;s Lake. He had no ammunition,
-but found a cartridge and cut it into slugs. With this he
-shot a wolf and ate some of it. His strength gave out,
-and twenty-six days after his father was killed he was captured.</p>
-
-<p>The old chief was a great wooer of the fair sex, for his
-son said of him:</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;My father had two wives before he took my mother;
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_220" id="Page_220">« 220 »</a></span>
-the first one had one son, the second a son and daughter;
-the third wife was my mother. After taking my mother
-he put away the first two; he had seven children by my
-mother; six are dead; I am the only one living now; the
-fourth wife had four children born; do not know whether
-any died or not; two were boys, two were girls; the fifth
-wife had five children; three of them are dead, two are
-living; the sixth wife had three children; all of them are
-dead; the oldest was a boy, the other two were girls; the
-last four wives were sisters.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>This young savage was cared for and finally sent away
-to the reservation. Having found the whereabouts of Little
-Crow and disposed of him, we will return to the command.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_221" id="Page_221">« 221 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XXXVII" id="CHAPTER_XXXVII">CHAPTER XXXVII.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">CAMP ATCHISON&mdash;GEORGE A. BRACKETT&rsquo;S ADVENTURE&mdash;LIEUTENANT
-FREEMAN&rsquo;S DEATH.</p>
-
-
-<p>Camp Atchison was the most important of all the camps
-on the whole route. It was here the General was visited
-by some three hundred Chippewa half-breeds, led by a
-Catholic priest named Father Andre, who told him that
-the Indians, hearing that General Sully, who was marching
-up the west side of the Missouri with a large body of
-troops, was delayed on account of low water, were deflecting
-their course in the hope of being reinforced by the
-Sioux inhabiting the country west of the Missouri.</p>
-
-<p>The General, upon becoming satisfied of this, decided
-to push on as rapidly as possible after them, and to facilitate
-the movement he formed a permanent post at Camp
-Atchison, which is located about fifty miles southeast
-from Devil&rsquo;s Lake, where he left all the sick and broken-down
-men, and a large portion of his ponderous train, with
-a sufficient guard to protect them if attacked. With these
-arrangements completed, the column, with twenty-five
-days&rsquo; rations for 1,500 infantry, 500 cavalry, 100 pioneers
-and artillery, started by forced marches to overtake the
-Indians before they reached the Missouri River.</p>
-
-<p>On the morning of July 20th the General, with his selected
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_222" id="Page_222">« 222 »</a></span>
-men and reduced train, left Camp Atchison to pursue
-the Indians and engage them in battle. Attached to the
-expedition in the capacity of contractor was Mr. George A.
-Brackett, who met with an experience, the memory of
-which will remain with him during his life. It is most
-interesting and exciting, and his own version of it, as
-narrated at the &ldquo;camp fire&rdquo; when he found his old St.
-Anthony friends and Captain Chase&rsquo;s company, known as
-the &ldquo;Pioneers,&rdquo; will be read with interest. Mr. Brackett
-says:</p>
-
-<p>On the fourth day out, in company with Lieutenant
-Ambrose Freeman, of the Mounted Rangers, we left the
-main column for the purpose of adventure and game. I
-had my train started and in good hands, and got permission
-for the Lieutenant to accompany me. Five miles
-away, having met nothing worthy of note, we surveyed the
-country from the summit of a range of hills, when we saw
-several scouts not very far away. We struck a parallel
-course, believing we were moving in the same direction
-as the main column. While watering our horses in the
-lake, we espied two other scouts on the opposite side doing
-the same thing. We then moved farther on, over the range
-of bluffs, covering about three-quarters of a mile. We
-followed along parallel, or perhaps a little to the left of
-the main body, a distance of three miles. Lieutenant
-Freeman saw three antelopes, an old one and two young
-ones, in the distance. We fired and wounded the old one,
-who made off around the bluff. I held the Lieutenant&rsquo;s
-horse and he chased her on foot, which took us off our
-course some distance round the bluffs. We traversed a
-section of country bordering a large lake, near which we
-succeeded in killing the antelope.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_223" id="Page_223">« 223 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>As we were coming down to the lake and while the
-Lieutenant was creeping up toward the antelope, I again
-saw scouts on the opposite side of the lake, and the train
-was in sight on the hillside several miles distant. Instead
-of taking our course back, we had a curiosity to go around
-the lake to where we saw the scouts. On our way around
-we saw cherry bushes newly cut and piled up, and I set
-about to tear them down. Lieutenant Freeman persisted
-in saying that they were Indian signs and that Indians
-were in the vicinity. In preparation for them we cocked
-our rifles and made around the bushes, so as not to put
-ourselves in a too exposed position. We took our course,
-as we supposed, towards the train, or where the train had
-recently passed.</p>
-
-<p>Between one and two o&rsquo;clock we discovered three objects
-a long distance off, but between us and the train&rsquo;s course,
-and making for the train. This action, as soon as we
-came near enough to judge, convinced us that they were
-Indians, yet we kept on toward them, and they were making
-preparations to meet us, one leading and the other two
-riding their horses. We got all ready to give them a trial,
-they creeping around on one side of the bluff and we creeping
-around to meet them. I saw one with a straw hat on
-rise up and recognized him as one of our scouts. He beckoned
-us to come towards him. From all the description I
-had of him I supposed him to be Chaska, and the other
-two were full blood Sioux. Both had government horses,
-and armed, one with a Springfield and the other a carbine.
-I asked him where General Sibley was. They pointed to
-a hill, I should judge, three miles away from where we
-stood, in the direction where the train passed.</p>
-
-<p>I saw a large number of men on a bluff, judged to be
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_224" id="Page_224">« 224 »</a></span>
-about two hundred in number, whom I supposed to be
-General Sibley&rsquo;s men looking for us. We all started
-directly for them, and as we did so, saw what we supposed
-to be a guard of cavalry starting towards us. After we
-had started the scouts turned to a little lake to water their
-horses, but the Lieutenant and myself having previously
-watered ours, did not go with them. We still saw the
-cavalry, as we supposed, about fifteen in number, coming
-towards us.</p>
-
-<p>I remarked to Lieutenant Freeman that they must have
-turned back, as they had disappeared and were out of
-sight. We were soon surprised, however, by seeing fifteen
-Indians charging upon us as with a flag of truce; but they
-were not coming evidently in a friendly spirit, as they
-fired a volley upon us. I yelled to the scouts that they
-were Indians, and remarked to Lieutenant Freeman that
-we had better at once join the scouts, which we endeavored
-to do. When we got within twenty or twenty-five rods of
-the scouts we were riding about three rods apart. One
-Indian rode up to Lieutenant Freeman and shot an arrow
-through his back, on the left side, and at the same time
-another Indian dismounted and discharged his gun at me,
-but I laid low on my horse&rsquo;s neck, as close as I possibly
-could, and he shot over me, and Chaska stepped up to the
-top of a knoll and shot this same Indian who had fired at
-me.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_225" id="Page_225">« 225 »</a></span></p>
-
-<hr class="full" />
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 505px;">
-<img src="images/page_225.png" width="505" height="373" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption"><span class="smcap">George A. Brackett Telling the Thrilling Story of His Escape to the
-Members of Capt. Chase&rsquo;s Company of &ldquo;Pioneers.&rdquo;</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p class="caption3">THE MINNESOTA MASSACRE OF 1862.</p>
-
-<table summary="prices">
-<tr>
- <td class="vmid">Price, to any address,</td>
- <td style="font-size:3em;">{</td>
- <td class="tdl">60 Cents in Paper.<br />
- $1.00 and $1.50 in Cloth.</td>
-</tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="caption4"><i>A. P. CONNOLLY, Chicago.</i></p>
-
-<hr class="full" />
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_226" id="Page_226">« 226 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_227" id="Page_227">« 227 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>As Lieutenant Freeman dropped from his horse I asked
-him if he was hurt. He replied, &ldquo;I am gone.&rdquo; He wished
-me to cut a piece of string which was around his neck,
-and supported a part of the antelope which he was carrying.
-As I cut the string he changed his position more on
-his side and more up hill. He asked faintly for water,
-which I gave him from my canteen, and by this time the
-scouts had mounted their horses and left us. The Indians
-were then all around us, and one at the side of the lake;
-but as the scouts ran toward them they fell back. Lieutenant
-Freeman, by this time being dead, I took his rifle
-and revolver and followed the scouts as fast as I could. The
-Indians mentioned as near the lake, seeing the Lieutenant&rsquo;s
-horse, which followed me, left us and started for the horse,
-thus enabling me to overtake the scouts. The Indians succeeded
-in catching the horse, and the whole crowd again
-started after us. We rode for about four miles, when we
-were overtaken and surrounded by them by the side of a
-little marsh. We all jumped from our horses. The scouts
-made motions and ran up to meet them, but Chaska motioned
-for me to jump into the tall rushes on the marsh.
-I saw nothing more of the scouts, and the Indians all
-rushed down to where the horses were. I cocked my rifle,
-and lay in the rushes within ten feet of where they were,
-and heard them quarrel about the possession of the horses.
-They presently settled their dispute and started off, for
-fear, as I supposed, of being overtaken by some of our
-forces. They took their course around the marsh in which
-I lay for an hour; this was about three p. m. A shower
-came up, and immediately after it cleared I started on my
-course, with the sun to my back, and traveled for two hours.
-I followed this direction for two days, stopping in marshes
-during the night. On the evening of the second day I
-struck a river of clear water, about a quarter of a mile
-wide, running in a southerly direction. Next morning I
-started due south, and traveled until almost night, when
-I took a westerly course, concluding that the trail was not
-in that direction; traveled a little to north of west, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_228" id="Page_228">« 228 »</a></span>
-struck Gen. Sibley&rsquo;s trail the afternoon of the third day,
-about twelve miles from where we camped the night before.
-I left the main column, and made the deserted camp that
-night. I started next morning on the back track for Camp
-Atchison, and made the painful journey in two days, arriving
-there the second night, between eight and nine o&rsquo;clock,
-making the distance of the four camps in two days, bare-headed,
-barefooted and coatless. I was obliged to leave
-my rifle on the last day of my travel, but I could not carry
-it any farther, and made up my mind that this would probably
-be my last day. It was probably about nine o&rsquo;clock,
-and I was about to give up when I came to a few tents and
-found them to be those of the Pioneers (Captain Chase&rsquo;s
-company of the Ninth Minnesota Infantry), and fell to the
-ground faint and unable to rise again. But, thank God!
-around that fire were sitting some of my old St. Anthony
-friends, who kindly picked me up and carried me to my
-tent.</p>
-
-<p>I lost my coat, hat and knife in the fight the first day,
-so I took Lieutenant Freeman&rsquo;s knife, and with it made
-moccasins of my boot legs, as my boots so chafed my feet
-in walking that I could not possibly wear them. These
-improvised moccasins were constantly getting out of repair,
-and my knife was much needed to keep them in order
-for use, as well as to make them in the first place. But
-just before reaching the trail of the expedition on the fifth
-day I lost the knife, and the loss, I felt at the time, would
-have decided my fate if I had much farther to go. But
-a kind Providence was in my favor, for almost the first
-object that greeted my eyes upon reaching the trail was a
-knife, old and worn to be sure, but priceless to me. This
-incident some may deem a mere accident, but let such a one
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_229" id="Page_229">« 229 »</a></span>
-be placed in my situation at that time and he would feel
-with me that it was given in answer to a prayer made to
-the great Giver of Good. On the third day, about ten
-miles from the river spoken of, I left Lieutenant Freeman&rsquo;s
-rifle on the prairie because I became too weak to carry it
-longer; besides, it had already been so damaged by rain
-that I could not use it. I wrote upon it that Lieutenant
-Freeman had been killed, and named the course I was then
-pursuing. The pistol I retained and brought with me to
-Camp Atchison.</p>
-
-<p>While wandering I lived on cherries, roots, birds&rsquo; eggs,
-young birds and frogs, caught by my hands, all my ammunition
-but one cartridge having been spoiled by the
-rain of the first day. That cartridge had a gutta percha
-case and was preserved. It was my only hope for fire
-when I should need it, or when I dared venture to make
-one. I had also some water-proof percussion caps in my
-portmanteau, which were also put to good use. I took
-one-half the powder in the cartridge, with a percussion
-cap, and with the use of my pistol and some dried grass,
-started a fire at which I cooked a young bird. How did I
-catch the bird? Well, Providence again favored me, and
-as I was lying low and making no noise, the bird wandered
-so near that by firing a stick I had with me in such a
-manner as to make it whirl horizontally, it struck the bird
-on the side of the head and broke its neck. This was on
-the second night. On the fourth I used the remainder of
-the cartridge in the same way and for a like purpose. The
-rest of the time I ate my food uncooked. Except some hard
-bread (found at the fourth camp mentioned above), which
-had been fried and then thrown in the ashes. I have forgotten
-one sweet morsel (and all were sweet and very
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_230" id="Page_230">« 230 »</a></span>
-palatable to me), viz., some sinews spared by wolves from
-a buffalo carcass. As near as I am able to judge I traveled
-in the seven days at least two hundred miles. I had ample
-means for a like journey in civilized localities, but for the
-first time in my life found gold and silver coin not legal
-tender. My boot-leg moccasins saved me, for a walk of
-ten miles upon such a prairie, barefooted, would stop all
-farther progress of any person accustomed to wearing covering
-upon the feet. The exposure at night, caused more
-particularly by lying in low and wet places, in order to
-hide myself, was more prostrating to me than scarcity of
-food. The loneliness of the prairies would have been
-terrible in itself, but for the drove of wolves that after
-the first day hovered, in the day time, at a respectful distance,
-and at night howled closely around me, seemingly
-sure that my failing strength would soon render me an
-easy prey. But a merciful Providence has spared my life
-by what seems now, even to myself, almost a miracle.</p>
-
-<p>The body of Lieutenant Freeman was afterwards found
-and buried by members of General Sibley&rsquo;s main force.
-An arrow had pierced his breast, and the tomahawk and
-scalping knife had left bloody traces about his head. He
-was buried on the desolate plain, five hundred miles away
-from his beloved, bereaved wife and children. After the
-war closed his body was exhumed, carried to his late home,
-and re-interred by loving hands, with all the honors due a
-brave soldier. The peculiar circumstances of his death,
-my last moments with him, my subsequent days of weary,
-dangerous wandering, my suffering, anxiety and happy deliverance
-have made an impression upon my memory so
-indelible that time has not, nor cannot efface them.</p>
-
-<p>My friend Brackett and myself came to St. Anthony,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_231" id="Page_231">« 231 »</a></span>
-Minn., on the same day, May 1st, 1857, and we &ldquo;put up&rdquo;
-at the same hotel, and it is most interesting to hear him
-relate this wonderful adventure and marvelous escape. He
-yet lives to tell the story, and poor Freeman! It seemed
-sad to leave him in his lonely grave on the prairie wild,
-but such is the fate of war.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_232" id="Page_232">« 232 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XXXVIII" id="CHAPTER_XXXVIII">CHAPTER XXXVIII.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">BATTLE OF BIG MOUND.</p>
-
-
-<p>A few days after leaving Camp Atchison scouts began
-to report to General Sibley that Indians in large numbers
-were between us and the hills beyond. Everything indicated
-this, and the evidences were that we were soon to
-have a battle.</p>
-
-<p>We came in sight of the Indians every day, but nothing
-decisive until July 24th, when we overtook them. Scouts
-reported a large body of Indians, with Red Plume and
-Standing Buffalo among them, encamped by the very
-lake near which the General intended camping. Standing
-Buffalo was not there as a hostile, and it was a surprise
-all around. The General, satisfying himself that a determined
-resistance would be offered us, corralled his train and
-made such disposition of the troops as he deemed necessary.
-It was here where Dr. Weiser, of the First Minnesota
-Rangers, was killed while parleying with a delegation from
-the hostile camp, and it was treachery, pure and simple.
-The battle was opened by Whipple&rsquo;s battery, and while the
-cannon boomed and sent leaden hail and death among the
-fleeing Indians, the artillery of Heaven opened amid a
-furious thunder storm, and a private of Colonel McPhail&rsquo;s
-command was killed.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_233" id="Page_233">« 233 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 662px;">
-<img src="images/page_233.png" width="662" height="363" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption"><div class="tdl smaller">Designed by <span class="smcap">A. P. Connolly</span>.</div><br />
-<br />
-<span class="smcap">Battle of Big Mound, Dakota.</span><br />
-<br />
-<span class="smaller">Fought between General Sibley&rsquo;s forces and the Sioux, on July 24th, 1863. The Indians were defeated.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_234" id="Page_234">« 234 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_235" id="Page_235">« 235 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The Indians in this affair lost eighty-seven killed and
-wounded and a vast amount of property.</p>
-
-<p>A portion of our command made forty-six miles that
-day. My own regiment was ordered in pursuit, and we
-followed them for ten miles, after having already marched
-eighteen. An order had been sent by an aide for the pursuing
-troops to bivouac where they were, but being misunderstood,
-instead of camping, as it was intended, we returned,
-having been on the march all night. As we came
-into camp we found that an early reveille had been
-sounded, and the troops were about ready to march. The
-part of the command that had joined in the pursuit and
-returned during the night was so completely exhausted
-that the whole force was compelled to rest for a day. This
-battle was a decided victory, counting heavily in the scale
-of advantage, as it put the savages on the run to a place
-of safety and materially disabled them from prosecuting
-further hostilities.</p>
-
-<p>After the battle of the Big Mound, as narrated, the
-command was compelled to take one day&rsquo;s rest on account
-of the over-taxed condition of the troops. The next day
-we marched over the same ground, and it was a comical yet
-interesting sight to witness the wholesale abandonment of
-buffalo robes, camp equipage and &ldquo;jerked&rdquo; meat; robes by
-the thousands and meat by the tons had been thrown away
-by the Indians in their hurry to get out of harm&rsquo;s way.
-We found dogs that had been harnessed up and loaded
-down with cooking utensils, dead;&mdash;they had died from
-sheer exhaustion. The prairies as far as the eye could penetrate
-on either side presented this condition of abandonment
-by the Indians, of their property and winter&rsquo;s supply
-of food. As far as the eye could penetrate on either hand
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_236" id="Page_236">« 236 »</a></span>
-were evidences of their hasty flight, as if swept with the
-besom of God&rsquo;s wrath. The men would &ldquo;right about&rdquo; and
-fight the soldiers, and then turn, and running towards their
-fleeing families, urge them to still greater exertion to get
-away from the avenging army.</p>
-
-<p>In the sand on the bank of the lake, I found a tiny papoose
-moccasin, and could see the imprint and count each
-separate toe of the little foot in the sand, as it probably
-was dragged along by the anxious mother, who was too
-heavily laden to carry her little baby. I thought,&mdash;poor,
-helpless child, not in the least responsible for its unhappy
-condition, and yet made to suffer. So with all
-classes of God&rsquo;s humanity;&mdash;the innocent too often made
-to suffer, not only with the guilty, but for the guilty, and
-in our decisions we should be careful lest we injure innocent
-persons. The fresh made graves we found on this
-trail told their sorrowful story,&mdash;the little Indian spirit had
-taken its flight,&mdash;the body was buried and the heart-broken
-mother hurried on to keep up with her people, and get
-away from the army.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_237" id="Page_237">« 237 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 265px;">
-<a id="CHAPTER_XXXIX"></a>
-<img src="images/page_237.png" width="265" height="206" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption"><span class="smcap">Ready to Go Into Action.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="caption2">CHAPTER XXXIX.</p>
-
-<p class="caption3">BATTLE OF DEAD BUFFALO LAKE.</p>
-
-
-<p>After the decisive battle of the Big Mound the Indians
-made up their minds evidently that the army and destruction
-was in their rear, and their Rubicon must be reached
-and crossed or annihilation was their portion, hence activity
-was apparent among them. The great impediment to
-their active work in the field and hasty flight was their
-families, and it required good generalship to successfully
-manage this retreating host.</p>
-
-<p>The next decisive engagement with them was fought on
-July 26th; known as the battle of &ldquo;Dead Buffalo Lake,&rdquo;
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_238" id="Page_238">« 238 »</a></span>
-so designated from the fact that the carcass of a big buffalo
-was found on its shores.</p>
-
-<p>This day strict orders had been given that there should
-be no shooting within the lines. This was made necessary
-from the fact of a soldier having been wounded the day before
-from the careless use of a rifle in the hands of a comrade.
-We were going along at an easy jog, when all at
-once a beautiful deer went bounding along. He seemed
-terribly frightened, and evidently had been surprised by the
-skirmishers ahead. All orders were forgotten, and a general
-stampede was made for this beautiful deer. Shots
-were fired after him, but he made his escape, and it did
-seem too bad, for we were hungry for deer meat. The
-general thought we had met the Indians again, and aides
-were sent to the front, with orders for the proper disposition
-of the troops. As the Indians were known to be in
-large numbers not far ahead, the General was pardoned for
-his surmises.</p>
-
-<p>We passed their abandoned camp early in the morning,
-but about noon the scouts reported a large body of Indians
-coming down upon us from various directions. The command
-was placed in line of battle, and soon the skirmishers,
-in command of Colonel William Crooks, opened fire,
-supported by Lieutenant Whipple&rsquo;s six-pounder.</p>
-
-<p>The savages came swooping down on us, and it seemed
-as though they sprang up out of the earth, so numerous
-were they.</p>
-
-<p>There were those among them who knew something
-of the tactics of war, and they attempted a vigorous flank
-movement on the left of the column, which was promptly
-checked by Captain Taylor and his mounted Rangers.
-Another determined attack was made which was handsomely
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_239" id="Page_239">« 239 »</a></span>
-repulsed by two companies of the Sixth Minnesota,
-under Colonel Averill.</p>
-
-<p>A running fire was kept up until about three o&rsquo;clock,
-when a bold dash was made to stampede the animals which
-were herded on the bank of a lake.</p>
-
-<p>This attempt was promptly met and defeated by Wilson&rsquo;s
-and Davy&rsquo;s cavalry and six companies of the Sixth
-Minnesota, under Major McLaren. The Indians, foiled at
-all points, and having suffered serious losses in killed and
-wounded, retired from the field, and galloped away after
-their families, who, a few miles ahead, were hurrying
-on towards the Missouri river. Our animals were so jaded
-they could not stand a forced march. The reason was very
-apparent. We had our regular rations, while the horses
-and mules were on short rations on account of the hot
-weather burning up the grass, and, besides, the alkali water
-was as bad for beast as for man.</p>
-
-<p>We were obliged to dig wells every night for water before
-we could get our supper, for we could not use the water
-from the alkali lakes. As many as sixty wells were dug
-in a night. Think of it,&mdash;each company obliged to dig a
-well in order to get water for supper, but this was one of
-the daily duties of the soldier. It is astonishing how the
-&ldquo;boys in blue&rdquo; could adapt themselves to every condition
-and circumstance. I am on a tender spot now,&mdash;&ldquo;the boys
-in blue.&rdquo; &rsquo;Tis true times are changed; a few of us are
-alive yet, and perhaps we are just a little bit &ldquo;stuck on ourselves&rdquo;;
-but, &ldquo;the old soldier,&rdquo; as we are now dubbed,
-cannot forget &ldquo;the boys in blue.&rdquo; In a few years more a
-new generation will have control of our government, but
-the wonderful years from 1861 to 1865 will not be forgotten.
-If we do not give our government, body and soul, into
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_240" id="Page_240">« 240 »</a></span>
-the hands of foreigners who cannot speak our language it
-is possible that the memory of the &ldquo;boys in blue&rdquo; will remain
-with us for a time yet. They were a mighty host
-then, and the tramp, tramp, tramp of their feet as they
-marched to defeat and victory will go down the centuries;&mdash;but,
-I must come back to my narrative.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_241" id="Page_241">« 241 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XL" id="CHAPTER_XL">CHAPTER XL.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">BATTLE OF STONY LAKE&mdash;CAPTURE OF A TETON&mdash;DEATH
-OF LIEUTENANT BEAVER.</p>
-
-
-<p>On the morning of July 28th, just as the command was
-breaking camp at Stony Lake, we were attacked by Indians,
-in full force.</p>
-
-<p>General Sibley had the expeditionary forces so well in
-hand that the enemy could not possibly do us any harm.
-We halted but a moment, as some of the scouts came riding
-furiously towards us, followed by Indians intent on their
-capture. The boys cheered as they came within our lines.
-The battery was ordered to the front, and soon threw a
-shell among the Indians, who then galloped around on the
-flank, while another squad came immediately upon our
-rear; but, the whole column, in a solid square, moved on.
-The engagement took place on the prairie, and it was a
-beautiful sight to see the regularity with which the column
-moved. First, two companies of cavalry skirmishers,
-and at a proper interval two companies of infantry; the
-same order was preserved in the rear, and flankers on the
-right and left, so as to form a hollow square. In the center
-were the reserve troops, stores of all sorts, and the
-artillery.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_242" id="Page_242">« 242 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The teams were so fixed as to make it impossible to get
-up a stampede. The Indians resort to their peculiar tactics
-to stampede the teams,&mdash;they tried it to its fullest extent
-on this occasion, but without avail. They did not
-impede our progress in the least, and as the column moved
-right along, they soon gave up the attempt, and we pressed
-them so closely they allowed the killed and wounded to
-fall into our hands. The casualties were light, because the
-shells that were thrown among them did but little damage.</p>
-
-<p>The cavalry in this case was effective, and crowded the
-Indians, as they charged them with drawn sabre.</p>
-
-<p>This was the last stand the Indians made in a body, and
-they hastened on towards the Missouri river, which they
-finally crossed at a point near where Bismarck, North Dakota,
-now stands. They made a determined resistance, and
-had been repulsed in three successive engagements, and
-their situation was critical in the extreme,&mdash;the victorious
-army in the rear and the Missouri in front.</p>
-
-<p>After the Indians had given up the fight and had ridden
-ahead to urge their families on, and we had buried the
-dead and cared for the wounded, we pushed on after them.</p>
-
-<p>A young Teton chief, who was out on a tour of observation,
-was captured by some of the cavalry, and the circumstances
-and manner in which it was done are interesting.</p>
-
-<p>Thousands of us saw the strange object, but the men
-who captured him were the more interested observers, and
-the narrator says:</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;As the scouts approached it, a dark, motionless object
-was seen lying upon the ground. Coming nearer, some one
-cried out: &lsquo;It&rsquo;s an old buffalo robe&rsquo;; but, as one stooped to
-pick it up, it sprang from the earth and bounded off like
-a deer, arms extended, and flying swiftly, in a zig-zag manner.
-It was a broad mark for the carbines, but where in
-it was the motive power? It was impossible to tell. Some
-thirty shots were fired, all hitting the robe, but still he
-kept on with the same zig-zag motion, so that it was impossible
-to hit him.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_243" id="Page_243">« 243 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 609px;">
-<img src="images/page_243.png" width="609" height="337" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption"><div class="tdl smaller">Designed by <span class="smcap">A. P. Connolly</span>.</div><br />
-<br />
-<span class="smcap">Battle of Stony Lake, Dakota, July 28th, 1863.</span><br />
-<br />
-<span class="smaller">Indians defeated and slaughtered in great numbers by General Sibley&rsquo;s troops.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_244" id="Page_244">« 244 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_245" id="Page_245">« 245 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;At last one of the guides reined up near him and, placing
-a revolver to his head, fired, but he dodged and escaped
-the ball.</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;He now stopped, dropped the robe, and threw up both
-hands, in token of surrender.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>The robe he wore was literally riddled with bullets, but
-not a scratch upon the body of the Indian. His gallantry
-and his lordly bearing won the admiration of his captors,
-and placing him behind one of the scouts they bore him
-away in triumph, and presented him to General Sibley,
-to whom he extended his hand in friendly salute, but
-which was declined until he had made his statement, and
-assured the General that his hands were not stained with
-innocent blood. Being thus convinced, General Sibley
-shook him by the hand, and they became friends. He belonged
-to the Teton band, which is one of the largest divisions
-of the Dakota Nation. They lived west of the
-Missouri, and his information was that they were interested
-observers, but had no sympathy with, nor taking no part in,
-the war.</p>
-
-<p>He and his father, who was one of the head chiefs, were
-out on a visit to the Yanktonians, and, learning that they
-were soon to have a fight with the soldiers, his curiosity
-prompted him to go as an observer. His curiosity was
-satisfied, and he retired with the balance, but had stopped
-in a clump of grass to allow his pony to graze. While here
-he had fallen asleep, and the pony was the object that
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_246" id="Page_246">« 246 »</a></span>
-first attracted the attention of the scouts, which resulted in
-the Indian&rsquo;s capture, as above narrated.</p>
-
-<p>He was a prisoner with us for five days, during which
-time he was treated with some consideration as the heir
-apparent to the chieftainship of his tribe. He was about
-twenty years old; a fine looking fellow, tall and athletic.
-He became strongly attached to the General and the staff.</p>
-
-<p>General Sibley afterwards learned of this Indian&rsquo;s death.
-He had given the boy, on his departure, a letter to his
-father, commending him for refusing to take up the tomahawk
-against the whites, and in appreciation of this, that
-he had kept the son for a few days in his camp and then
-gave him his liberty, so that he might return to his own
-people. It was good policy, because the letter, being found
-in his possession, indicated to the Indians that General
-Sibley was not responsible for his death.</p>
-
-<p>A few days after his departure, a party of miners, who
-had been up in Idaho, were coming down the Missouri
-river, and at the very place where our men had reached the
-river and filled their canteens the Indians were lying in
-wait for the descending miners.</p>
-
-<p>The young Teton desired peace, and rushed toward them
-waving General Sibley&rsquo;s letter over his head. They, not
-understanding his signal, shot him to death, when they
-were at once surrounded by the exasperated Indians, and
-a battle, short and decisive, was fought, and every man of
-the miners was killed, but not before twice their number
-of Indians had shared the same fate.</p>
-
-<p>This was another sad chapter of this unholy war.</p>
-
-<p>The Indians now approached the river, but, owing to the
-thick underbrush, were obliged to abandon all their carts,&mdash;their
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_247" id="Page_247">« 247 »</a></span>
-ponies they took with them, but their winter&rsquo;s supply
-of meat they abandoned.</p>
-
-<p>Our skirmish line was formed at three paces, but even
-then it was impossible to observe a line, so thick were the
-weeds and underbrush. The enemy was sighted, and an
-advance ordered, when the line moved forward, and after
-an hour of hard work, we, like De Soto, when he discovered
-the Mississippi, gazed in admiration on its prototype,&mdash;the
-Missouri.</p>
-
-<p>After having for weeks drank the brackish water of the
-prairie lakes, we drank from this sweet though turbid
-stream, and were refreshed, as were the children of Israel,
-who partook of the cool water from the stricken rock.</p>
-
-<p>While drinking and wading in the stream, we were fired
-upon from the opposite shore, although a flag of truce had
-been raised. The Indians&rsquo; bullets fell short of their mark,
-but the retreat was sounded, and we marched back for the
-open prairie, and returned to our camp, which was situated
-on a beautiful plateau a few miles below. The brush was
-so thick that the Indians were obliged to abandon all of
-their carts and camp equipage, with thousands of buffalo
-robes, and tons of dried meat. The rout of the Indians
-and destruction of property was complete.</p>
-
-<p>Our casualties were very light; but, among the killed
-was Lieutenant Beaver, an English lord, who came to this
-country to engage in a buffalo hunt; but, upon his arrival,
-learning of the Indian outbreak, tendered his services to
-the Government, and was commissioned a lieutenant on
-General Sibley&rsquo;s staff, as aide-de-camp. He had been sent
-by General Sibley with an order to Colonel Crooks, who
-was in command of the advance, and, on his return, he and
-his beautiful black horse were killed.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_248" id="Page_248">« 248 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Colonel Crooks said to Lieutenant Beaver that the regiment
-would return as soon as the skirmishers could be rallied,
-and invited him to remain and ride with him back to
-camp, but the aide, true soldier that he was, felt it his
-duty to report to General Sibley at once, and paid the
-penalty.</p>
-
-<p>The Indians, some at least, not being able to cross the
-river, were in hiding, and others had re-crossed, and were
-skulking in the thick brush, waiting for a chance to shoot
-with arrows. Lieutenant Beaver had mistaken the path
-he came in on, and took one that led him on to some of
-these skulking Indians, and he thus met his death.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Crooks returned, and though Lieutenant Beaver
-messed with him, his tent was at General Sibley&rsquo;s headquarters,
-and his absence from mess was not noticed until, upon
-inquiry at the General&rsquo;s tent, it was found he had not
-reported. The sudden disappearance of one who was such
-a general favorite cast a gloom over the camp.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as it became dark fire rockets were sent up, in
-hopes that if he was wandering away, through taking a
-wrong road, he might be guided back to camp. The early
-morning found us astir, for a detail of my regiment had
-been made to reconnoiter and to skirmish clear down to the
-bank of the river, in order to gain tidings of Lieutenant
-Beaver, and, also, of Private Miller, of the Sixth Regiment,
-who also was missing.</p>
-
-<p>The reconnoissance proved successful, and both bodies
-were found, as well as the body of the lieutenant&rsquo;s horse.
-Lieutenant Beaver had evidently made a desperate fight
-for his life, because his two revolvers were empty, and the
-indications were that he had made more than one of the
-enemy bite the dust.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_249" id="Page_249">« 249 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 523px;">
-<img src="images/page_249.png" width="523" height="388" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption"><span class="smcap">Sighting the Enemy on the Missouri.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_250" id="Page_250">« 250 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_251" id="Page_251">« 251 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The bodies were brought to camp and prepared for
-burial in the trenches on opposite sides of the camp, and
-the work was so done as to obliterate all signs and prevent
-the Indians from locating the spots and desecrating the
-graves. The service was touchingly solemn, and many
-tears were shed, as we thought of these lonely graves so
-far away from the homes of the living relatives.</p>
-
-<p>Lieutenant Beaver had friends in England who were
-abundantly able to have his remains disinterred and removed
-to a more suitable place of burial. Money was sent
-out from England for this purpose, and trusted agents sent
-up to the Missouri banks for the purpose of bringing back
-the remains. There is a grave at Graceland, in St. Paul,
-on the top of which rests a slab of granite, and engraven on
-this are the words:</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;Sacred to the memory of Lieutenant F. J. H. Beaver,
-who died July 28, 1863. Peace to his ashes.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>On the banks of the Missouri is a lonely grave. The
-winter&rsquo;s storms and the summer&rsquo;s heat have come and gone.
-The night vigils of the strange birds have been kept, the
-requiem of gentle breezes has been sung over this lonely
-grave. Comrade Nicholas Miller, private of Company K,
-Sixth Minnesota Infantry Volunteers, sleeps in his lonely
-bed, and &ldquo;after life&rsquo;s fitful fever he sleeps well.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_252" id="Page_252">« 252 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XLI" id="CHAPTER_XLI">CHAPTER XLI.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">HOMEWARD BOUND.</p>
-
-
-<p>We remained but two days at this Missouri camp, when
-the reveille sounded early in the morning of August 1st,
-and the troops were astir. We were a long way from home,
-and on short rations; and, in addition to this, we felt
-some anxiety about the boys we left at Camp Atchison,
-having heard nothing from them. The sun was very hot
-the day we left; one of the kind the boys called &ldquo;muggy,&rdquo;&mdash;disagreeable
-in the extreme. At dress parade the night
-before, we received the compliments of the General in orders
-read, announcing that the purpose of the expedition
-had been accomplished. This was, of course, good news
-to us, and we speculated as to how early a date would find
-us taking leave of this far-away camp.</p>
-
-<p>The scouts reported to the General that Indians had
-been crossing the river below us all day long, and the indications
-were that they intended to make an attack about
-midnight, in order to steal our teams. With this information
-before him, General Sibley ordered one-half the
-command out on guard, and the balance to lay on their
-arms. In an hour or so another order came, for the balance
-of the command to reinforce the guard, because there surely
-would be an attack, and it did come about twelve o&rsquo;clock;
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_253" id="Page_253">« 253 »</a></span>
-but the attempt to capture the teams miscarried; for, after
-a few shots, the Indians retired. Having lost nearly all of
-their wagons and cured meat, they were in a desperate condition,
-and a commissary train would have been a rich
-prize.</p>
-
-<p>On the morning we left it was astonishing how quickly
-we got ready, and how lonesome the canvas city looked
-after the bugle sounded &ldquo;strike tents.&rdquo; We marched out
-this fine morning with our banners flying, and the band
-playing &ldquo;The Girl I Left Behind Me.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>There were no regrets, for the &ldquo;beautiful Indian maiden&rdquo;
-had not made a favorable impression on us, and we had our
-own little families at home.</p>
-
-<p>The Sixth Minnesota was in the rear, and we were hardly
-beyond the limits of the camp before the Indians had taken
-possession and commenced firing on our rear guard. The
-Colonel gave the necessary commands to bring us to a
-&ldquo;right about,&rdquo; with orders to &ldquo;commence firing.&rdquo; The orders
-came in quick succession, and were such a surprise to
-the Indians that they took to their heels with great alacrity.
-They hovered about us during all the day, but did not in
-the least retard us in our homeward march. We were
-instructed to supply ourselves with water before starting,
-because we must march eighteen miles, to Apple river bend,
-before we could get a fresh supply.</p>
-
-<p>The day was excessively warm, and the men became
-thirsty; but, behold! we look away, and a beautiful lake
-appears before us. &ldquo;Water! water!&rdquo; cry the thirsty men,
-and our canteens were soon empty, in anticipation of refilling
-them from the bosom of this beautiful lake before
-us. We march and thirst again, and the beautiful lake
-seems just as far away.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_254" id="Page_254">« 254 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s two miles to that lake,&rdquo; says one thirsty soul. We
-march the two miles, and yet are two miles away, and the
-thirst and heat are intolerable.</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;Surely that&rsquo;s water,&rdquo; said another, &ldquo;but we don&rsquo;t seem
-to get any nearer to it.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>We marched and marched; but we must be in a valley,
-for the lake is out of sight.</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;When we get over the ridge we&rsquo;ll see the beautiful
-lake,&rdquo; comes from some one in the ranks.</p>
-
-<p>We got over the ridge, but the beautiful lake, in all its
-refreshing loveliness, had vanished. Had it evaporated, or
-had it sunk into the ground? Neither. We had been deceived,&mdash;it
-was a mirage! The air was hot, the earth
-parched, the throats dry, the canteens empty, and we were
-yet eight miles from water.</p>
-
-<p>Eight long, weary miles to go before we reach the bend
-in Apple river, but there was no help for it, and we bear to
-it with our soldier load. &ldquo;Five miles farther,&rdquo; says the
-scout, and our hearts almost stop beating, we are so
-parched; three miles, and on we march; only one mile
-more, and we would run if we could. We reach the bank,
-and the Colonel commands: &ldquo;Battalion, halt!&rdquo; but the
-refreshing water is too near, and the famishing men make
-a run for it, and do not stop until they are in waist deep,
-and then they drink to their fill and replenish their canteens.</p>
-
-<p>On our return march we passed nearly over the same
-ground as we did going out. We passed the battlefield of
-the Big Mound, and went into camp by the lake where
-Lieutenant Freeman was killed; this was on the 4th of
-August. The next day our scouts reported &ldquo;Indians
-ahead,&rdquo;&mdash;a false alarm,&mdash;the Indians espied were half-breeds
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_255" id="Page_255">« 255 »</a></span>
-bringing us mail from Camp Atchison, and also the
-news that George A. Brackett, who was with Lieutenant
-Freeman when he was killed, had made his way, after
-weary days and nights of wandering, and in a half-starved
-condition, to Camp Atchison, where he fell among friends.</p>
-
-<p>When we arrived at Camp Atchison it took but a day to
-arrange for our final departure. Lieutenant Freeman&rsquo;s
-body had been recovered and buried, and the place so
-marked that it was easily found afterwards, when the body
-was removed and taken to his home for final interment.</p>
-
-<p>We drew five days&rsquo; rations of hard tack and bacon, and
-the side dishes that go with it; just what they were I cannot
-now remember. I guess the dear old army bean was
-one and desiccated vegetable another; anyway, we were
-not troubled with the gout from too much eating of rich
-food. The surgeons made proper provision for the transportation
-of the sick by placing them in ambulances, and at
-an early hour the headquarters&rsquo; bugler sounded &ldquo;strike
-tents,&rdquo; and the canvas city was razed to the ground;&mdash;Camp
-Atchison was a back number.</p>
-
-<p>The command took up the line of march for Fort Snelling,
-where we expected to receive orders to proceed at once
-to join the Union Army in the South. We were a jolly
-crowd, and the march seemed but a pleasant pastime; we
-had driven the enemy out of the country, and, save the first
-two or three days of our return march, he was giving us no
-trouble. We made good time, and the nearer we got home
-the shorter the miles became.</p>
-
-<p>When we got down to civilization we were accorded an
-ovation; especially was this the case at Minneapolis, where
-the whole city turned out to bid us welcome.</p>
-
-<p>We arrived at Fort Snelling on the morning of September
-12th, after having made a march of more than twelve
-hundred miles;&mdash;and thus ended the campaign of 1863.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_256" id="Page_256">« 256 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XLII" id="CHAPTER_XLII">CHAPTER XLII.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">THE CAMPAIGN OF 1864.</p>
-
-
-<p>My active work in the Sioux Indian war ended in the
-autumn of 1863, and the regiment went South, but history
-has made me familiar with the campaign of 1864, and I
-thus devote space to it, so as to follow the troops and Indians
-to the culmination and final successful closing of the
-greatest Indian war of modern times.</p>
-
-<p>The return of General Sibley from the Missouri campaign
-of 1863 did not end the Sioux war, because, while
-the Indians had been defeated in five pitched battles in
-1862 and &rsquo;63, yet they were known to be in large numbers,
-ready to take the field again in 1864, as soon as
-the weather would permit. Such being the case, it became
-necessary to organize against them.</p>
-
-<p>To this end another expedition was fitted out from the
-Minnesota side, which was to co-operate with General
-Sully from the Missouri side. General Sully, on account
-of the low stage of water in the Missouri in 1863, was
-unable to co-operate with General Sibley, as was intended,
-and on August 1st, 1863, and when General Sibley&rsquo;s order
-for the homeward march was promulgated, General Sully
-was one hundred and sixty miles farther down the river
-than it was intended he should be. This was the reason why
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_257" id="Page_257">« 257 »</a></span>
-the Indians were not more severely whipped than they were.
-It would have been suicidal for General Sibley to have
-crossed the Missouri river at this time, with rations and ammunition
-as scarce as they were.</p>
-
-<p>The Indians took advantage of the situation and evinced
-a determination to take the field again. A cavalry regiment
-had been authorized by the War Department for one
-year and for frontier service. This regiment was filled to
-the maximum, and placed in command of Colonel R. N.
-McLaren.</p>
-
-<p>A battalion had been raised previous to this, known
-as Hatch&rsquo;s battalion, and was on duty near Pembina, and by
-this wise provision confidence was restored in this part of
-the country.</p>
-
-<p>The Indians still had undisputed possession of the country
-west of the Missouri, and, although they may have been
-peaceable, it was necessary to settle the question permanently,
-and place them on their reservations.</p>
-
-<p>The plan of the campaign of 1864 was very similar to
-that of the year previous, excepting in the matter of command,
-the two columns,&mdash;the one from the Minnesota side
-and the other from the Missouri side,&mdash;were to combine
-and become two brigades, under the command of General
-Sully.</p>
-
-<p>The first brigade was composed of Iowa and Kansas infantry,
-and they embarked at Sioux City, Iowa, and proceeded
-up the Missouri. The second brigade embraced the
-Eighth Minnesota Infantry, mounted on ponies, Colonel M.
-T. Thomas in command; the Second Minnesota Cavalry,
-Colonel McLaren; and the Third Minnesota Battery, Captain
-John Jones. This brigade was in command of Colonel
-Thomas, and left Fort Snelling on June 1st.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_258" id="Page_258">« 258 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>General Sibley and staff accompanied this brigade of
-2,100 men as far as Fort Ridgely, where he gave them their
-final orders.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Thomas, who considered General Sibley a man
-of ability, thought him too cautious, and, in response to
-his final orders, said: &ldquo;General, I am going to hunt for
-Indians; if they will hunt for and find me it will save a
-heap of trouble.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>It was a beautiful morning on June 5th, and as the first
-rays of the morning sun flashed the full light of day, &ldquo;boots
-and saddles&rdquo; sounded in the clear tones of the bugles, and
-the column, headed by a magnificent band, mounted on
-milk white horses, marched out to the tune of &ldquo;The Girl
-I Left Behind Me.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>The General reviewed the column as it passed, and after
-complimenting the appearance of the soldiers and bidding
-good-bye to Colonel Thomas and his staff, who were starting
-on a five months&rsquo; campaign beyond the bounds of civilization,
-rode back to the fort.</p>
-
-<p>The column was now under way, and day after day the
-march went on, in solid square, so organized that all the
-Indians in North America could not disturb it. At night
-the square closed up, so as to ensure greater safety and reduce
-guard duty.</p>
-
-<p>The column moved up the valley of the Minnesota river
-to its source, and then took a westerly course, making daily
-from sixteen to twenty miles, resting on Sunday.</p>
-
-<p>The scouts, failing to find even signs of Indians, the
-march became monotonous until the valley of the Missouri
-was reached. Here was found General Sully&rsquo;s trail of the
-year previous, and soon some of his scouts came into camp
-and reported General Sully only one day&rsquo;s march away,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_259" id="Page_259">« 259 »</a></span>
-where he was waiting for the fleet of boats on which were
-supplies for the troops.</p>
-
-<p>The monotony of the daily march was enlivened by the
-report that Indians were hovering around,&mdash;they came to
-reconnoiter, but not to fight yet. This of itself was encouraging,
-because the boys began to think they would not even
-see an Indian; but there was fun ahead, as we shall see in
-the next chapter.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_260" id="Page_260">« 260 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="caption2"><a name="CHAPTER_XLIII" id="CHAPTER_XLIII">CHAPTER XLIII.</a></p>
-
-<p class="caption3">THE BATTLE OF THE BAD LANDS.</p>
-
-
-<p>General Sully, an unpretentious man, with clear perception,
-appeared to know where the Indians were, and
-what they would do. His service in the regular army peculiarly
-fitted him for this service, and this, with his genial
-temperament, made him an agreeable commander.</p>
-
-<p>The boats were unloaded, the command supplied with
-sixty days&rsquo; rations and divested of all surplus clothing and
-equipments, made ready for a vigorous march after Indians.</p>
-
-<p>The troops were reviewed by the commanding officer,
-General Sully, who, by the way, was at one time Colonel
-of the First Minnesota, and afterwards promoted to Major-General
-of Volunteers and Brevet Brigadier-General of the
-regular army. The review of the troops constituted the
-celebrating the Fourth of July, 1864.</p>
-
-<p>When the column finally moved, which was on July 19,
-it marched out into an unknown and unexplored country,
-from the white man&rsquo;s standpoint.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_261" id="Page_261">« 261 »</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 563px;">
-<img src="images/page_261.png" width="563" height="384" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption"><span class="smcap">Resting Before an Attack.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_262" id="Page_262">« 262 »</a></span></p>
-<p class="pmt2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_263" id="Page_263">« 263 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>What a transformation,&mdash;then unknown and unexplored,&mdash;no
-highways, no railroads, no civilization,&mdash;to-day the
-onward march of our race has left its imprint by railroads,
-beautiful farms, busy cities, busy factories, Christian civilization,
-education and the &ldquo;little red school house.&rdquo; But
-I am anticipating; turn back the leaves and we are again
-on the Knife river, and we snuff a battle, for the Indians
-are ahead in great numbers.</p>
-
-<p>It was on July 28th, among the foothills of the mountains,
-that a large camp of Indians was found. In this camp
-were no less than one hundred and ten bands of hostile
-Sioux, and they meant business, for they had congregated
-here for the express purpose of cleaning out the white
-soldiers, and they felt confident they could do it.</p>
-
-<p>The Indians, on their horses, were stripped for the fray,
-and began leisurely to ride in line of battle toward the
-white enemy. When within rifle shot, the soldiers opened
-fire, and instantly the scene was changed. The bands concentrated,
-and, uttering their war cries, they dashed at
-full speed on our lines, firing, and, like the wind, whirled
-to the rear, loading as they went, when they would again
-face the enemy, and, coming within gunshot, fire again.</p>
-
-<p>They were so confident of success that they did not attempt
-to save their own camp, which was the objective
-point of the soldiers; and they did not realize their dangerous
-position until they found that their terrific onslaught
-on our lines did not in the least impede the progress of the
-troops.</p>
-
-<p>Soon the artillery was brought up, and the shells were
-sent thick and fast among them. By this time they began
-to realize that retreat were the tactics now.</p>
-
-<p>There were 1,600 tepees filled with women and children,
-with the usual supply of dogs,&mdash;not less than two dogs to
-a tepee, and such a stampede.</p>
-
-<p>It was a grand sight in one sense and sad in another.
-To see this great, moving mass of 10,000 or 12,000 souls,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_264" id="Page_264">« 264 »</a></span>
-with their camp paraphernalia, including dogs and ponies,
-rushing over the prairie; the fleeing multitude spread out
-as far as the eye could reach on either side, rushing on in
-mad haste, as though fleeing from the city of destruction.
-It was the sight of a lifetime, but sad to contemplate that
-the sins of some were being showered upon the heads of
-the innocent women and children.</p>
-
-<p>The loss to the Indians in killed was estimated at 100 to
-150; the wounded they carried off the field. The dead
-were buried in the night in large trenches, the earth leveled
-off, and the troops marched away.</p>
-
-<p>The Indians were not satisfied with the result of this
-engagement; they naturally would not be. They claimed
-that the best of their young men were off hunting for our
-troops in another direction, and they should at once call
-them in and give battle again.</p>
-
-<p>The last six days had been very exciting, and was a nervous
-strain on the soldiers. One hundred and seventy-five
-miles had been made, a battle of eight hours had been
-fought, and the camp of Indians destroyed.</p>
-
-<p>The march to the west was resumed over the prairie,
-with the Knife Mountains to the north and the Black Hills
-to the south, looming up in the distance like great sentinels,
-standing to contest the approach of civilization and defying
-the elements of ages.</p>
-
-<p>In the immediate front, off towards the horizon, was
-what seemed to be a level plain,&mdash;it was level, but for a
-little distance, and then broke to your view what might
-have inspired a Dante to write a more recent edition of
-Inferno; for, as far as the eye could reach, north and
-south and for forty miles to the west, the body of the earth
-had been rent and torn asunder, as though giant demons,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_265" id="Page_265">« 265 »</a></span>
-in their infuriated defeat, had sought to disembowel the
-earth.</p>
-
-<p>General Sully said of it: &ldquo;It is hell with the fires put
-out.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>We are now in the Bad Lands, and it is Sunday,&mdash;the
-Lord&rsquo;s day, and in such a region,&mdash;where devils had fought.
-White men&rsquo;s eyes had probably never before seen this region,
-and the Indians were afraid of it; they looked upon
-this region as the abode of evil spirits, and that the great
-gorges and buttes and yawning chasms were but the product
-of their wrath.</p>
-
-<p>The Sunday passed quietly until after noon, when a reconnoitering
-party returned and said they had been fired
-upon by Indians.</p>
-
-<p>About five o&rsquo;clock on this Sunday General Sully changed
-the position of the camp and went four miles farther up the
-river, in order to be in better position to prevent a surprise
-or repel an attack.</p>
-
-<p>The Indians were interested observers, for while this
-move was being made 1,000 of them were quietly sitting on
-their horses on the surrounding hills, observing.</p>
-
-<p>General Sully, being sick in his tent at this time, the
-command devolved upon Colonel Thomas, of the Eighth
-Minnesota, and to him he gave orders to &ldquo;have everything
-ready to move at six o&rsquo;clock in the morning, in perfect
-fighting order; put one of your most active field officers in
-charge of a strong advance guard, and you will meet them
-at the head of the ravine, and have the biggest Indian fight
-that ever will happen on this continent; and let me further
-say that under no circumstances must any man turn
-his back on a live Indian.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>On Monday morning, bright and early, on August 8th,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_266" id="Page_266">« 266 »</a></span>
-1864, the columns were formed. The General was in an
-ambulance at the front, and in admiration looking up and
-down the lines of the soldiers who were so soon to engage
-the Indians in battle, gave vent to his feelings in words
-more expressive than elegant: &ldquo;Those fellows can whip
-the devil and all his angels.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>General Sully himself was unable to go farther, but
-when he grasped Colonel Thomas, who was in immediate
-command, by the hand he said: &ldquo;You must make some
-history to-day.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>&ldquo;Forward!&rdquo; and the column is marching out, and not a
-sound is there to indicate that its progress will be impeded,
-as we enter the narrow gorge, only wide enough for a wagon
-trail. Almost an hour passes in steadily climbing up the
-narrow and secluded way, and when near the head of the
-gulch, from the beautiful stillness of the morning the pandemonium
-of war broke loose.</p>
-
-<p>The artillery advanced in a gallop, and, in position, soon
-commenced planting shells among the redskins. This was
-followed up by the steady advance of the dismounted men,
-who pressed their lines, and they commenced to fall back.
-The General, sick though he was, and in the ambulance,
-could not endure being there when the fight was going on,
-so he ordered up his horse and, mounting, rode to the front,
-but nature resisted, and he was obliged to dismount, which
-he did, and seating himself on a boulder, with his field
-glass took in the whole situation. Colonel Thomas, who
-was in command, hearing that the General was on the field,
-sought him out and said: &ldquo;I am ready to advance, sir.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>The General, pointing his hand toward a range of hills,
-said: "Go ahead, you will find the camp beyond those
-buttes; hold your men well in hand, push the Indians;
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_267" id="Page_267">« 267 »</a></span>
-they will fight for their families; protect your flank, and I
-will protect the rear.&rdquo;</p>
-
-<p>The fight went on; the wounded were sent to the rear,
-and for twelve miles we drove the Indians from point to
-point, but darkness came on before their camp was reached.</p>
-
-<p>In the bivouac at night the scene was a varied one.
-At the roll-call there were names not answered, for the
-unerring arrow and Indian bullet had done its work. At
-the next muster it would be necessary to mark after some
-name: &ldquo;Killed in battle in the Bad Lands August 8th,
-1864,&rdquo; or, &ldquo;died of wounds received from Indians in battle
-in the Bad Lands August 8th, 1864,&rdquo; for there were 109
-killed and wounded on this day.</p>
-
-<p>The wounded received proper attention at once, and the
-other soldiers, well tired out with the day&rsquo;s fighting and
-marching, were soundly sleeping and dreaming of home.</p>
-
-<p>There were 8,000 warriors engaged in this battle, and as
-nearly as could be estimated they lost 350 killed and from
-600 to 800 wounded. It was a bloody battle, and the field
-was named by the Indians Waps-chon-choka.</p>
-
-<p>The Indians, after this decisive battle, broke up into
-small bands and went in every direction, so that the soldiers,
-as an army, could not well follow them.</p>
-
-<p>The war had ended so far as the Indians were concerned,
-but there was another fight on hand. Bad water and lack
-of rations are not a happy condition of affairs, and the soldiers
-had to look this square in the face. And hot! The
-tongues of some of the men were so swelled from thirst
-and heat that they could not talk. The animals suffered
-equally with the men, and in numerous instances it became
-necessary to put them out of their misery by blowing out
-their brains.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_268" id="Page_268">« 268 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>And thus things went on from day to day until August
-12th, when glad news came from one of the scouts, who
-came riding back and frantically waving something in his
-hands. It was simply a little chip of wood, and why should
-this create such unbounded joy among a lot of war-begrimed
-veterans? It was freshly cut and evidently came
-from the steamboat men, as it was borne down on the
-bosom of the cool waters of the longed-for Yellowstone.</p>
-
-<p>The weary soldiers, thirsting and starving, viewed this
-little harbinger of plenty with delight, and their strength
-began to return as they increased their step in the march
-toward the river.</p>
-
-<p>O, that beautiful river:&mdash;&ldquo;The Nectar of the Gods.&rdquo;
-How life-inspiring its fluid, as discipline was forgotten and
-joy and happy shouts took the place of misery in the command.</p>
-
-<p>The thirst was slaked, and now for something to eat, for
-soldiers, poor mortals, get very hungry, and how often they
-longed for some good home-made bread and sugar and
-cream for coffee. And pies; well, our mouths used to
-fairly water for pies. But, on this especial occasion, almost
-anything would do, for the boys were awfully hungry, and
-the commissary was like &ldquo;Old Mother Hubbard&rsquo;s&rdquo; cupboard&mdash;empty.</p>
-
-<p>There were timber bottoms a little way down the river
-full of elk and black-tailed deer, so the Indians informed us.</p>
-
-<p>A detail was made, and the hunters went out in search
-of game, and before night they returned with the evidence
-of their day&rsquo;s hunt with them. They were like the spies
-sent out in Bible times, who came back laden with grapes,
-and reported that the country which they had explored
-was rich, and flowed with milk and honey.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_269" id="Page_269">« 269 »</a></span></p>
-
-<p>So, too, our soldier-hunters said the bottom lands were
-alive with elk and deer; and, by the next night, the luscious
-ribs and steaks were sizzling in the blaze, and hunger was
-being appeased as well as the thirst had been.</p>
-
-<p>The war being practically over, the several commands
-returned by various routes to the points from whence they
-came, and were at once ordered South to take their places
-in some of the other armies. The campaigns of 1862, &rsquo;63
-and &rsquo;64 were successfully carried out, and we will recapitulate
-our desires, our journeyings, our hopes and our fears
-and our rejoicings in another chapter, and bid you adieu.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_270" id="Page_270">« 270 »</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<div class="fig_center" style="width: 270px;">
-<img src="images/page_270.png" width="270" height="224" alt="" />
-<div class="fig_caption"><a id="CHAPTER_XLIV"></a><span class="smcap">Examining the Colors After the Campaign.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="caption2">CHAPTER XLIV.</p>
-
-<p class="caption3">CONCLUSION.</p>
-
-
-<p>In writing this narrative my mind has been refreshed
-and incidents and the names of persons almost forgotten
-come to me&mdash;they press on my memory.</p>
-
-<p>I am able to recall many, but to specify them would
-unduly lengthen this book. There was one important
-character, however, whom I had quite forgotten at the
-proper time, and in this concluding chapter must make
-mention of him.</p>
-
-<p>Pierre Bottineau came originally from the Selkirk settlement,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_271" id="Page_271">« 271 »</a></span>
-and in 1837 made a claim near St. Anthony Falls.</p>
-
-<p>I was with him upon the plains of Dakota in 1857, and
-in his way he was a remarkable man. On one occasion
-the party got lost in a furious storm and we knew that
-war parties of Chippewas were roaming over the prairie
-and it was not any way too healthy to be in the region we
-supposed we were wandering in. We halted to hold a
-council and Pierre said: &ldquo;As soon as the stars come out
-I can locate.&rdquo; So we waited and waited for the storm to
-pass over. The night was pitchy dark, but in time the stars
-came, when Pierre laid flat down on the ground, face up,
-and for perhaps half an hour surveyed the heavens and
-located our wandering feet. We were soon on the right
-trail for our camp, which was forty or fifty miles away.</p>
-
-<p>Pierre was one of General Sibley&rsquo;s principal scouts during
-the several campaigns against the Indians in 1862
-and 1863. He died some years ago, and speaking of his
-death reminds me of others prominent in these military
-operations who have gone beyond the river.</p>
-
-<p>The two generals, Sibley and Sully, are gone, and of
-the field and staff, I can recall Colonel John T. Averill,
-of the Sixth Minnesota, who was, after the war, member
-of Congress. Adjutant Snow and Quartermasters Carver
-and Gilbert, Colonels Stephen Miller and Wm. R. Marshall,
-both honored by Minnesota by electing them to
-chief executive&mdash;they, with Lieut. Colonel Bradley and
-all of the Seventh; Colonel Robert N. McLaren, of the
-Second Cavalry, and Major Hatch, of the battalion bearing
-his name, and Captain John Jones, of the famous
-battery. These are among some of the chiefs who have
-been called.</p>
-
-<p>Among the line of officers and the rank and file, it
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_272" id="Page_272">« 272 »</a></span>
-would be a mighty host, and it saddens my heart when
-I think of them, so I will desist and conclude by reminding
-you of the invitation extended and briefly recapitulate
-our journeyings.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>READER: The invitation extended to you to accompany
-us on a military expedition into the Indian country
-has been accepted. It was under exciting circumstances,
-when the whole country was surcharged with alarm, and
-for good cause.</p>
-
-<p>The Indians, cruel, relentless, revengeful, and with determination,
-were murdering innocent men, women and
-children, and but for the friendly offices of a faithful few,
-whose hearts were whiter than their skins, the death list
-and list of horrors would have been far greater; and it is
-for these few we speak when we say there are good Indians
-other than dead ones; and Minnesota could not do a more
-appropriate thing to-day than erect a monument to the
-memory of Old Betz, Other Day, Chaska and others, who
-risked their lives to save their white friends from the tomahawk
-of their more vengeful brethren, and who did so
-much to alleviate the sufferings and to relieve the anxiety
-of the captive prisoners.</p>
-
-<p>You went with us to besieged New Ulm and Fort Ridgely;
-helped bury the dead at Redwood; marched with us
-and went into camp and endured the thirty-six hours of
-anxiety and suffering at Birch Coolie; helped bury the
-dead and care for the wounded there; returned with us to
-Fort Ridgely; took part in the battle at Wood Lake, where
-the Indians were defeated; shared our joys when we liberated
-the women at Camp Release; helped arrest, shackle
-and guard the Indians; witnessed the execution of thirty-eight
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_273" id="Page_273">« 273 »</a></span>
-at Mankato; marched across with the &ldquo;Moscow Expedition&rdquo;;
-rendezvoused with us at Camp Pope in 1863;
-marched and fought Indians with us at Big Mound, Dead
-Buffalo Lake, Stony Lake and the Missouri River. You
-mingled your tears with ours over Beaver&rsquo;s and Miller&rsquo;s
-graves, as we left them in their loneliness on the bank of
-the river; participated in and rejoiced with us all the way
-on our return, took part in the campaign of 1864, and now,
-before bidding you adieu, one question: Are you satisfied?</p>
-
-
-<p class="caption4">THE END.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<div class="trans_notes">
-
-<p class="caption2">Transcriber Note</p>
-
-<p>Illustrations moved so as to not split paragraphs. Quotation usage
-in quoted letters was standardized.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of A Thrilling Narrative of the Minnesota
-Massacre and the Sioux War of 1862-63, by A. P. (Alonzo Putnam) Connolly
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THRILLING NARRATIVE ***
-
-***** This file should be named 51990-h.htm or 51990-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/1/9/9/51990/
-
-Produced by WebRover, Tom Cosmas, Chris Curnow and the
-Online Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
-(This file was produced from images generously made
-available by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/51990-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 452a5b1..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/cover_epub.jpg b/old/51990-h/images/cover_epub.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index e46157c..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/cover_epub.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_001.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_001.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 368fcf5..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_001.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_009.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_009.png
deleted file mode 100644
index f72668e..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_009.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_015.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_015.png
deleted file mode 100644
index f1825f9..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_015.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_021.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_021.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 78828e2..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_021.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_025.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_025.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 2f36d81..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_025.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_031.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_031.png
deleted file mode 100644
index f1be5fd..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_031.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_035.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_035.png
deleted file mode 100644
index e00a8b3..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_035.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_039.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_039.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 0cfa314..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_039.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_051.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_051.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 258c9c7..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_051.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_057.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_057.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 5119388..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_057.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_061.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_061.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 68eb86b..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_061.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_067.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_067.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 43a2333..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_067.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_073.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_073.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 4a58f3e..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_073.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_078.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_078.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 38e8b59..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_078.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_083.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_083.png
deleted file mode 100644
index ff3591f..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_083.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_087.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_087.png
deleted file mode 100644
index b28cedd..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_087.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_089.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_089.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 8a5579f..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_089.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_091.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_091.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 7f7bcd4..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_091.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_095.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_095.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 3ba2058..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_095.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_102.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_102.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 194fefc..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_102.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_107.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_107.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 1443ab6..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_107.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_110.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_110.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 72da291..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_110.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_119.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_119.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 4bd6b20..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_119.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_129.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_129.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 54c0633..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_129.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_135.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_135.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 4bb26d1..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_135.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_138.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_138.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 77c066d..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_138.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_141.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_141.png
deleted file mode 100644
index ad1fc11..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_141.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_147.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_147.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 4dd39eb..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_147.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_150.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_150.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 8c9eed9..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_150.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_152.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_152.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 5d02e6e..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_152.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_156.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_156.png
deleted file mode 100644
index f905256..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_156.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_159.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_159.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 5f884a6..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_159.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_165.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_165.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 0f0e7d6..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_165.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_186.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_186.png
deleted file mode 100644
index d96f7ae..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_186.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_191.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_191.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 117732c..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_191.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_195.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_195.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 4b8734d..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_195.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_197.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_197.png
deleted file mode 100644
index b3e396a..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_197.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_207.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_207.png
deleted file mode 100644
index e795181..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_207.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_215.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_215.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 44d7bea..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_215.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_225.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_225.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 755ab6d..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_225.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_233.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_233.png
deleted file mode 100644
index d13afcd..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_233.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_237.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_237.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 990ffad..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_237.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_243.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_243.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 9ce5717..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_243.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_249.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_249.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 01dc5d7..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_249.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_261.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_261.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 4ca08c6..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_261.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/page_270.png b/old/51990-h/images/page_270.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 8d1920f..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/page_270.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990-h/images/signature.png b/old/51990-h/images/signature.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 484e37c..0000000
--- a/old/51990-h/images/signature.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51990.txt b/old/51990.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index a8d0c7d..0000000
--- a/old/51990.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,6024 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of A Thrilling Narrative of the Minnesota
-Massacre and the Sioux War of 1862-63, by A. P. (Alonzo Putnam) Connolly
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-
-
-Title: A Thrilling Narrative of the Minnesota Massacre and the Sioux War of 1862-63
- Graphic Accounts of the Siege of Fort Ridgely, Battles of
- Birch Coolie, Wood Lake, Big Mound, Stony Lake, Dead Buffalo
- Lake and Missouri River
-
-Author: A. P. (Alonzo Putnam) Connolly
-
-Release Date: May 3, 2016 [EBook #51990]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: ASCII
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THRILLING NARRATIVE ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by WebRover, Tom Cosmas, Chris Curnow and the
-Online Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
-(This file was produced from images generously made
-available by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-Transcriber Note
-
-Table of Contents added. Text emphasis denoted as _Italics_.
-
-
-[Illustration: Governor Alex Ramsey, of St. Paul,
-
-The Last of the War Governors.]
-
-
-
-
- A THRILLING NARRATIVE
-
- OF
-
- THE MINNESOTA MASSACRE
-
- AND THE
-
- SIOUX WAR OF 1862-63
-
- GRAPHIC ACCOUNTS OF THE
-
- _SIEGE OF FORT RIDGELY, BATTLES OF BIRCH COOLIE, WOOD
- LAKE, BIG MOUND, STONY LAKE, DEAD BUFFALO
- LAKE AND MISSOURI RIVER_.
-
-
- ILLUSTRATED.
-
-
- CHICAGO:
-
- A. P. CONNOLLY, Publisher,
- PAST COMMANDER U. S. GRANT POST, NO. 28, G. A. R.
- DEPARTMENT OF ILLINOIS.
-
-
- Copyright 1896, by
- A. P. CONNOLLY
- CHICAGO.
-
-
- DONOHUE & HENNEBERRY, PRINTERS AND BINDERS, CHICAGO.
-
-
-
-
-DEDICATION.
-
-
-Thirty-four years ago and Minnesota was in an unusual state of
-excitement. The great War of the Rebellion was on and many of her sons
-were in the Union army "at the front." In addition, the Sioux Indian
-outbreak occurred and troops were hurriedly sent to the frontier. Company
-A, Sixth Minnesota Infantry, and detachments from other companies were
-sent out to bury the victims of the Indians. This duty performed, they
-rested from their labors and in an unguarded hour, they, too, were
-surrounded by the victorious Indians and suffered greatly in killed and
-wounded at Birch Coolie, Minnesota, on September 2 and 3, 1862. The men
-who gave up their lives at this historic place, have been remembered by
-the state in the erection of a beautiful monument to their memory and the
-names inscribed thereon are as follows:
-
- John College, sergeant, Company A, Sixth Minnesota.
- Wm. Irvine, sergeant, Company A, Sixth Minnesota.
- Wm. M. Cobb, corporal, Company A, Sixth Minnesota.
- Cornelius Coyle, private, Company A, Sixth Minnesota.
- George Coulter, private, Company A, Sixth Minnesota.
- Chauncey L. King, private, Company A, Sixth Minnesota.
- Henry Rolleau, private, Company A, Sixth Minnesota.
- Wm. Russell, private, Company A, Sixth Minnesota.
- Henry Whetsler, private, Company A, Sixth Minnesota.
- Benj. S. Terry, sergeant, Company G, Sixth Minnesota.
- F. C. W. Renneken, corporal, Company G, Sixth Minnesota.
- Robert Baxter, sergeant, Mounted Rangers.
- Richard Gibbons, corporal, Mounted Rangers.
-
-To these, knowing them all personally and well, I fraternally and
-reverentially inscribe this book.
-
-
-
-
-INTRODUCTION.
-
-
-"We are coming, Father Abraham, SIX HUNDRED THOUSAND MORE!"
-
-This was in response to the President's appeal for men to go to the
-front, and the vast levies this called for made men turn pale and maidens
-tremble.
-
-The Union army was being defeated, and its ranks depleted by disease and
-expiration of terms of service--the enemy was victorious and defiant,
-and foreign powers were wavering. In England aristocracy wanted a
-confederacy--the Commoners wanted an undivided Union. The North responded
-to the appeal, mothers gave up their sons, wives their husbands, maidens
-their lovers, and six hundred thousand "boys in blue" marched away.
-
-In August, 1862, I enlisted to serve Uncle Sam for "three years or during
-the war." In January, 1865, I reenlisted to serve another term; but the
-happy termination of the conflict made it unnecessary. I do not write
-this boastingly, but proudly. There are periods in our lives we wish to
-emphasize and with me this is the period in my life.
-
-The years from 1861 to 1865--memorable for all time, I look back to now
-as a dream. The echo of the first gun on Sumter startled the world. Men
-stood aghast and buckling on the sword and shouldering the musket they
-marched away. Brave men from the North met brave men from the South,
-and, as the clash of arms resounded throughout our once happy land, the
-Nations of the World with bated breath watched the destinies of this
-Republic.
-
-After four years of arbitration on many sanguinary fields, we
-decided at Appomattox to live in harmony under one flag. The soldiers
-are satisfied--"the Blue and the Gray" have joined hands; but the
-politicians, or at least some of them, seem to be unaware that the war is
-over, and still drag us into the controversy.
-
-"The Boys in Blue?" Why, that was in 1866, and this is 1896--thirty years
-after we had fulfilled our contract and turned over the goods; and was
-ever work better done?
-
-Then we could have anything we wanted; now we are "Old Soldiers" and it
-is 16 to 1 against us when there is work to do. A new generation has
-arisen, and the men of 1861 to 1865 are out of "the swim," unless their
-vote is wanted. We generally vote right. We were safe to trust in "the
-dark days" and we can be trusted now; but Young America is in the front
-rank and we must submit.
-
-The soldier was a queer "critter" and could adapt himself to any
-circumstance. He could cook, wash dishes, preach, pray, fight, build
-bridges, build railroads, scale mountains, dig wells, dig canals, edit
-papers, eat three square meals a day or go without and find fault; and
-so with this experience of years,--the eventful years of 1861 and 1865
-before me, when the door is shut and I am no longer effective and cannot
-very well retire--to the poor-house, have concluded to write a book. I am
-not so important a character as either Grant, Sherman, Sheridan or Logan;
-but I did my share toward making them great. I'll never have a monument
-erected to my memory unless I pay for it myself; but my conscience is
-clear, for I served more than three years in Uncle Sam's army and I have
-never regretted it and have no apologies to make. I did not go for pay,
-bounty or pension, although I got both the former when I did enlist and
-am living in the enjoyment of the latter now. I would not like to say
-how much my pension is, but it is not one hundred a month by "a large
-majority"--and so, I have concluded, upon the whole, to profit by a
-portion of my experience in the great "Sioux War" in Minnesota and Dakota
-in 1862 (for I campaigned both North and South) and write a book and thus
-"stand off" the wolf in my old age.
-
-When peace was declared, the great armies were ordered home and the
-"Boys in Blue" became citizens again. The majority of us have passed
-over the hill-top and are going down the western slope of life, leaving
-our comrades by the wayside. In a few years more there will be but a
-corporal's guard left and "the place that knows us now will know us no
-more forever." The poor-house will catch some and the Soldiers' Home
-others; but the bread of charity can never be so sweet and palatable
-as is that derived from one's own earnings,--hence this little book of
-personal experiences and exciting events of these exciting years--1862
-and 1863. In it I deal in facts and personal experiences, and the
-experiences of others who passed through the trying ordeal, as narrated
-to me. As one grows old, memory in some sense is unreliable. It cannot
-hold on as it once did. The recollection of the incidents of youth
-remains, while the more recent occurrences have often but a slender hold
-on our memories; often creeps in touching dates, but the recollections of
-August, 1862, and the months that followed, are indeed vivid; the impress
-is so indelibly graven on our memories that time has not effaced them.
-
-The characters spoken of I knew personally, some for years; the locations
-were familiar to me, the buildings homely as they appear, are correct in
-size and in style of architecture and some of them I helped to build.
-The narrative is as I would relate to you, were we at one of our "Camp
-Fires." It is turning back the pages of memory, but in the mental review
-it seems but yesterday that the sad events occurred.
-
- A. P. CONNOLLY.
-
-[Illustration:
-
- Yours truly,
-
- _A. P. Connolly_
-]
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
-
- Chapter Page
-
- I. General Remarks--Death of Dr. Weiser 11
- II. St. Paul and Minneapolis in 1836 and 1896--Father Hennepin. 14
- III. A Pathetic Chapter--Captain Chittenden's Minnehaha. 20
- IV. Origin of Indians--Captain Carver--Sitting Bull. 27
- V. Fort Snelling. 33
- VI. The Alarm. 38
- VII. Some of the Causes of the War. 43
- VIII. Little Crow at Devil's Lake. 50
- IX. Fort Ridgely Besieged. 63
- X. Siege of New Ulm. 67
- XI. Col. Flandreau in Command. 75
- XII. Mrs. Eastlick and Family. 78
- XIII. The Missionaries--Their Escape. 85
- XIV. The Indian Pow-wow. 87
- XV. Gov. Sibley Appointed Commander. 97
- XVI. March to Fort Ridgely. 103
- XVII. Burial of Capt. Marsh and Men. 106
- XVIII. Battle of Birch Coolie. 112
- XIX. Birch Coolie Continued. 118
- XX. Battle of Wood Lake. 128
- XXI. Camp Release. 139
- XXII. The Indian Prisoners--The Trial. 146
- XXIII. Capture of Renegade Bands--Midnight March. 153
- XXIV. Homeward Bound. 156
- XXV. Protests--President Lincoln's Order For the Execution. 163
- XXVI. The Execution--The Night Before. 169
- XXVII. Squaws Take Leave of Their Husbands. 176
- XXVIII. Capture and Release of Joe Brown's Indian Family. 178
- XXIX. Governor Ramsey and Hole-in-the-Day. 185
- XXX. Chaska--George Spencer--Chaska's Death--The "Moscow"
- Expedition. 190
- XXXI. The "Moscow" Expedition. 195
- XXXII. Campaign of 1863--Camp Pope. 199
- XXXIII. "Forward March." 205
- XXXIV. Burning Prairie--Fighting Fire. 209
- XXXV. Death of Little Crow. 211
- XXXVI. Little Crow, Jr.--His Capture. 218
- XXXVII. Camp Atchison--George A. Brackett's Adventure--Lieutenant
- Freeman's Death. 221
- XXXVIII. Battle of Big Mound. 232
- XXXIX. Battle of Dead Buffalo Lake. 237
- XL. Battle of Stony Lake--Capture of a Teton--Death of
- Lieutenant Beaver. 241
- XLI. Homeward Bound. 252
- XLII. The Campaign of 1864. 257
- XLIII. The Battle of the Bad Lands. 261
- XLIV. Conclusion. 271
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I.
-
-GENERAL REMARKS--DEATH OF DR. WEISER.
-
-
-Historians have written, orators have spoken and poets have sung of the
-heroism and bravery of the great Union army and navy that from 1861 to
-1865 followed the leadership of Grant, Sherman, Sheridan, Logan, Thomas,
-McPherson, Farragut and Porter from Bull Run to Appomattox, and from
-Atlanta to the sea; and after their work was done and well done, returned
-to their homes to receive the plaudits of a grateful country.
-
-More than thirty years have elapsed since these trying, melancholy
-times. The question that then called the volunteer army into existence
-has been settled, and the great commanders have gone to their rewards.
-We bow our heads in submission to the mandate of the King of Kings,
-as with sorrow and pleasure we read the grateful tributes paid to the
-memories of the heroes on land and on sea,--the names made illustrious by
-valorous achievements, and that have become household words, engraven on
-our memories; and we think of them as comrades who await us "on fame's
-eternal camping ground."
-
-Since the war, other questions have arisen to claim our attention, and
-this book treats of another momentous theme. The Indian question has
-often, indeed too often, been uppermost in the minds of the people.
-We have had the World's Fair, the Four Hundredth Anniversary of the
-discovery of America, the recollection of which is still fresh in our
-memories. Now we have politics and doubtless have passed through one of
-the most exciting political campaigns of our day and generation; but,
-let us take a retrospective view, and go back thirty years; look at some
-of the causes leading up to the Indian war of 1862; make a campaign with
-me as we march over twelve hundred miles into an almost unknown land and
-defeat the Indians in several sanguinary battles, liberate four hundred
-captive women and children, try, convict and hang thirty-nine Indians for
-participating in the murder of thousands of unsuspecting white settlers,
-and if, upon our return, you are not satisfied, I hope you will in the
-kindness of your heart forgive me for taking you on this (at the time)
-perilous journey.
-
-I will say to my comrades who campaigned solely in the South, that
-my experience, both North and South, leads me to believe there is no
-comparison. In the South we fought foemen worthy of our steel,--soldiers
-who were manly enough to acknowledge defeat, and magnanimous enough
-to respect the defeat of their opponents. Not so with the redskins.
-Their tactics were of the skulking kind; their object scalps, and not
-glory. They never acknowledged defeat, had no respect for a fallen
-foe, and gratified their natural propensity for blood. Meeting them
-in battle there was but one choice,--fight, and one result only, if
-unsuccessful,--certain death. They knew what the flag of truce meant
-(cessation of hostilities), but had not a proper respect for it. They
-felt safe in coming to us with this time-honored symbol of protection,
-because they knew we would respect it. We did not feel safe in going to
-them under like circumstances, because there were those among them who
-smothered every honorable impulse to gratify a spirit of revenge and
-hatred. As an illustration of this I will state, that just after the
-battle of the Big Mound in 1863, we met a delegation of Indians with a
-flag of truce, and while the interpreter was talking to them and telling
-them what the General desired, and some soldiers were giving them tobacco
-and crackers, Dr. Weiser, surgeon of the Second Minnesota Cavalry, having
-on his full uniform as major, tempted a villainous fellow, who thinking,
-from the uniform, that it was General Sibley, our commander, jumped up,
-and before his intention could be understood, shot him through the back,
-killing him instantly. Treachery of this stamp does not of course apply
-to all the members of all tribes and benighted people; for I suppose even
-in the jungles of Africa, where tribes of black men live who have never
-heard of a white man, we could find some endowed with human instincts,
-who would protect those whom the fortunes of war or exploration might
-cast among them. We found some Indians who were exceptions to the
-alleged general rule--cruel. The battles we fought were fierce, escapes
-miraculous, personal experiences wonderful and the liberation of the
-captives a bright chapter in the history of events in this exciting year.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II.
-
-ST. PAUL AND MINNEAPOLIS IN 1836 AND 1896--FATHER HENNEPIN.
-
-
-As St. Paul, Minnesota, is our starting point, we will pause for a little
-and cultivate the acquaintance of her people. The picture represents St.
-Paul and Minneapolis about as we suppose they were previous to 1838,
-and before a white man gazed upon the natural beauties of our great
-country. In the picture you see "one of the first families," in fact it
-is the first family, and a healthy, dirty-looking lot they are. They had
-evidently heard that a stranger had "come to town" and the neighbors came
-in to lend a hand in "receiving" the distinguished guest. The Indian kid
-on the left hand, with his hair a la Paderewski, was probably playing
-marbles with young Dirty-Face-Afraid-of-Soap-and-Water in the back yard,
-when his mother whooped for him to come. He looks mad about it. They all
-have on their Sunday clothes and are speculating as to whether it is
-best to get acquainted with the forerunner of civilization or not. Their
-liberties had never been abridged. The Indians came and went at will,
-never dreaming that the day was approaching when civilization would force
-them to "move on." As early as 1819 white people were in Minnesota, 'tis
-true, but this was when Fort St. Anthony was first garrisoned.
-
-[Illustration: One of the "First Families" of St. Paul in
-1835.]
-
-Anterior to this, however, a zealous Franciscan priest, Father Hennepin,
-ascended the Mississippi, by oar, impelled on by its beautiful scenery,
-and in August, 1680, he stood upon the brink of the river near where Fort
-Snelling now is, and erected the cross of his church and probably was the
-first to proclaim to the red man the glad tidings of "Peace on earth,
-good will to man." He pointed them to the cross as the emblem of liberty
-from superstition, but they in their ignorance did not heed his peaceful
-coming, but made him their captive, holding him thus for six months,
-during which time he so completely gained their confidence as to cause
-them to liberate him, and his name is still remembered reverentially by
-them.
-
-Father Hennepin named the Falls of St. Anthony after his patron saint,
-and was the first white man to look upon its beauties and listen to the
-music of Minnehaha, as her crystal water rolled over the cliffs and went
-rippling through the grasses and flowers on its merry way to the bosom of
-the "Father of Waters."
-
-Minnehaha, beautiful in sunshine and in shadow; in rain-shower and in
-snow-storm--for ages has your laughter greeted the ear of the ardent
-Indian lover. Here Hiawatha, outstripping all competitors in his
-love-race, wooed his Minnehaha and in triumph carried her away to his
-far-off Ojibway home. The Indians loved this spot and as they camped upon
-its banks and smoked the peace pipe "as a signal to the nations," dreamed
-only of peace and plenty. The Great Spirit was good to them; but the evil
-day was approaching, invisible yet, then a speck on the horizon, but
-the cloud grew and the "pale face" was among them. Sorrowfully they bid
-farewell forever to their beautiful "Laughing Water."
-
-In these early days it was almost beyond the comprehension of man that
-two populous cities should spring up as have St. Paul and Minneapolis,
-and Pierre Parrant, the first settler at St. Paul, little dreamed that
-the "Twin Cities," with a population variously estimated at from 200,000
-to 225,000, would greet the eye of the astonished beholder in 1896. They
-sprang into existence and grew apace; they met with reverses, as all
-cities do, but the indomitable energy of the men who started out to carve
-for themselves a fortune, achieved their end, and their children are now
-enjoying the fruits of their labor.
-
-There is no city in America that can boast an avenue equal to Summit
-avenue in St. Paul, with its many beautiful residences ranging in cost
-from $25,000 to $350,000. Notably among these palatial homes is that
-of James J. Hill, the railroad king of the Northwest. His is a palace
-set on a hill, built in the old English style, situated on an eminence
-overlooking the river and the bluffs beyond. The grounds without and
-the art treasures within are equal to those of any home in our country,
-and such as are found only in homes of culture where money in plenty is
-always at hand to gratify every desire.
-
-The avenue winds along the bluff, and the outlook up and down the river
-calls forth exclamations of delight from those who can see beauty in our
-natural American scenery. In the springtime, when the trees are in their
-fresh green garb, and budding forth, and in the autumn when the days
-are hazy and short, when the sere of months has painted the foliage in
-variegated colors, and it begins to fall, the picture as unfolded to the
-beholder standing on the bluffs is delighting, enchanting.
-
-The urban and interurban facilities for transport from city to city
-are the best in the world, and is the successful result of years of
-observation and laborious effort on the part of the honorable Thomas
-Lowry, the street railway magnate; and the many bridges spanning the
-"Father of Waters" at either end of the line give evidence of the ability
-of the business men of the two cities to compass anything within reason.
-
-Minneapolis, the "flour city," noted for its broad streets and palatial
-homes nestling among the trees; its magnificent public library building
-with its well-filled shelves of book treasures; its expensive and
-beautiful public buildings and business blocks; its far-famed exposition
-building, and its great cluster of mammoth flouring mills that astonish
-the world, are the pride of every Minnesotian. Even the "Father of
-Waters" laughs as he leaps over the rocks and, winding in and out, drives
-this world of machinery that grinds up wheat--not by the car-load, but
-by the train-load, and--"Pillsbury's Best"--long since a national pride,
-has become a familiar international brand because it can be found in
-all the great marts of the world. What a transformation since 1638!
-Father Hennepin, no doubt, looks down from the battlements of Heaven in
-amazement at the change; and the poor Indians, who had been wont to roam
-about here, unhindered, have long since, in sorrow, fled away nearer
-to the setting sun; but alas! he returned and left the imprint of his
-aroused savage nature.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III.
-
-A PATHETIC CHAPTER--CAPTAIN CHITTENDEN'S MINNEHAHA.
-
-
-In August, 1862, what do we see? Homes, beautiful prairie homes of
-yesterday, to-day have sunken out of sight, buried in their own ashes;
-the wife of an early love has been overtaken and compelled to submit to
-the unholy passion of her cruel captor; the prattling tongues of the
-innocents have been silenced in sudden death, and reason dethroned. A
-most pathetic case was that of Charles Nelson, a Swede. The day previous,
-his dwelling had been burned to the ground, his daughter outraged, the
-head of his wife, Lela, cleft by the tomahawk, and while seeking to save
-himself, he saw, for a moment, his two sons, Hans and Otto, rushing
-through the corn-field with the Indians in swift pursuit. Returning with
-the troops under Colonel McPhail, and passing by the ruins of his home,
-he gazed about him wildly, and closing the gate of the garden, asked:
-"When will it be safe to return?" His reason was gone!
-
-This pathetic scene witnessed by so many who yet live to remember it, was
-made a chapter entitled, "The Maniac," in a work from the pen of Mrs.
-Harriet E. McConkey, published soon after it occurred.
-
-[Illustration: Designed by A. P. Connolly.
-
-Minne-ha-ha Falls Before the White Man Ever Saw It.]
-
-Captain Chittenden, of Colonel McPhail's command, while sitting a
-few days after, under the Falls of Minnehaha, embodied in verse this
-wonderful tragedy, giving to the world the following lines:
-
- Minne-ha-ha, laughing water,
- Cease thy laughing now for aye,
- Savage hands are red with slaughter
- Of the innocent to-day.
-
- Ill accords thy sportive humor
- With their last despairing wail;
- While thou'rt dancing in the sunbeam,
- Mangled corpses strew the vale.
-
- Change thy note, gay Minne-ha-ha;
- Let some sadder strain prevail--
- Listen, while a maniac wanderer
- Sighs to thee his woeful tale;
-
- "Give me back my Lela's tresses,
- Let me kiss them once again!
- She, who blest me with caresses
- Lies unburied on the plain!
-
- "See yon smoke? there was my dwelling;
- That is all I have of home!
- Hark! I hear their fiendish yelling,
- As I, houseless, childless, roam!
-
- "Have they killed my Hans and Otto?
- Did they find them in the corn?
- Go and tell that savage monster
- Not to slay my youngest born.
-
- "Yonder is my new-bought reaper,
- Standing mid the ripened grain;
- E'en my cow asks why I leave her
- Wand'ring, unmilked, o'er the plain.
-
- "Soldiers, bury here my Lela;
- Place _me_ also 'neath the sod;
- Long we lived and wrought together--
- Let me die with her--O God!
-
- "Faithful Fido, you they've left me,
- Can you tell me, Fido, why
- God at once has thus bereft me?
- All I ask is here to die.
-
- "O, my daughter Jennie, darling!
- Worse than death is Jennie's fate!"
-
- * * * * *
-
- Nelson, as our troops were leaving
- Turned and shut his garden gate.
-
-[Illustration: Designed by A. P. Connolly.
-
-Father Hennepin Raised the Cross of His Church on the Bank of the
-Mississippi River near where Fort Snelling now Stands in 1618.]
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV.
-
-ORIGIN OF INDIANS--CAPTAIN CARVER--SITTING BULL.
-
-
-There is something wonderfully interesting about the origin of the
-Indians. Different writers have different theories; John McIntosh, who
-is an interesting and very exhaustive writer on this subject, says they
-can date their origin back to the time of the flood, and that Magog,
-the second son of Japhet, is the real fountain head. Our North American
-Indians, however, were first heard of authentically from Father Hennepin,
-who so early came among them.
-
-At a later date, about 1766, Jonathan Carver, a British subject and a
-captain in the army, made a visit of adventure to this almost unknown and
-interesting country. The Sioux were then very powerful and occupied the
-country about St. Anthony Falls, and west of the Mississippi, and south,
-taking in a portion of what now is the State of Iowa.
-
-The country to the north and northeast was owned by the Chippewas. The
-Sioux then, as later, were a very war-like nation, and at the time of
-Captain Carver's advent among them were at war with the Chippewas,
-their hated foes. Captain Carver came among them as a peace-maker; his
-diplomacy and genial spirit prevailed, and the hatchet was buried. For
-these good offices, the Indians ceded to him a large tract of land,
-extending from the Falls of St. Anthony to the foot of Lake Pipin;
-thence east one hundred miles; thence north and west to the place of
-beginning--a most magnificent domain, truly, and which in Europe would
-call for nothing less than a king to supervise its destinies.
-
-A writer, Hon. W. S. Bryant, of St. Paul, Minnesota, on this subject,
-says: "That at a later period, after Captain Carver's death, congress
-was petitioned by others than his heirs, to confirm the Indian deed,
-and among the papers produced in support of the claim, was a copy of an
-instrument purporting to have been executed at Lake Traverse, on the
-17th day of February, 1821, by four Indians who called themselves chiefs
-and warriors of the Uandowessies--the Sioux. They declare that their
-fathers did grant to Captain Jonathan Carver this vast tract of land and
-that there is among their people a traditional record of the same. This
-writing is signed by Ouekien Tangah, Tashachpi Tainche, Kache Noberie and
-Petite Corbeau (Little Crow)." This "Petite" is undoubtedly the father of
-Little Crow, who figures in this narrative as the leader in the massacre.
-
-Captain Carver's claim has never been recognized, although the instrument
-transferring this large tract of land to him by the Indians was in
-existence and in St. Paul less than twenty-five years ago. It has since
-been destroyed and the possessors of these valuable acres can rest
-themselves in peace.
-
-In 1862 the red man's ambition was inflamed, and in his desire to
-repossess himself of his lost patrimony, he seeks redress of his wrongs
-in bloody war. Fort Snelling at the junction of the Mississippi and
-Minnesota rivers was the rallying point for the soldiers and we produce a
-picture of it as it appeared then and give something of its history from
-its first establishment up to date.
-
-The great Sioux or Dakotah nation at one time embraced the Uncapapas,
-Assinaboines, Mandans, Crows, Winnebagoes, Osages, Kansas, Kappaws,
-Ottoes, Missourias, Iowas, Omahas, Poncas, Nez Perces, Arrickarees,
-Minnetarees, Arkansas, Tetons, Yanktons, Yanktonais, and the Pawnees. It
-was a most powerful nation and under favorable conditions could withstand
-the encroachments of our modern civilization. The Ahahaways and Unktokas
-are spoken of as two lost tribes. The Unktokas are said to have lived
-in "Wiskonsan," south of the St. Croix and were supposed to have been
-destroyed by the Iowas about the commencement of the present century.
-The Ahahaways, a branch of the Crows, lived on the Upper Missouri, but
-were lost--annihilated by disease, natural causes and war. The Uncapapa
-tribe were from the Missouri, and Sitting Bull, whose picture appears,
-although not an hereditary chief, was a strong man among them. He was for
-a time their Medicine Man and counselor. He was shrewd and a forceful
-diplomat; he was a pronounced hater of the whites, and has earned
-notoriety throughout the country as the leader of five thousand warriors,
-who annihilated General Custer and his command at the Little Big Horn
-in 1876. After the massacre, this huge Indian camp was broken up, and
-Bull, with more than one thousand warriors retreated into the British
-possessions, from whence he made frequent raids upon American soil. His
-band constantly suffered depletion until, in the summer of 1881, he had
-but one hundred and sixty followers remaining. These he surrendered to
-Lieutenant-Colonel Brotherton, at Fort Buford, and with them was sent as
-a prisoner to Fort Randall, Dakota. He was married four times, and had a
-large family. He was not engaged in the Sioux war of 1862, but being a
-chief of that nation and an important Indian character, I introduce him.
-He has gone to the happy hunting ground, some years since, through the
-treachery of the Indian police, who were sent out to capture him.
-
-[Illustration: Sitting Bull,
-
-The Chief in Command at the Custer Battle of the Little Big Horn in
-1876.]
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V.
-
-FORT SNELLING.
-
-FROM E. D. NEILL'S RECOLLECTIONS.
-
-
-On the 10th of February, 1819, John C. Calhoun, then secretary of war,
-issued an order for the Fifth regiment of infantry to rendezvous at
-Detroit, preparatory to proceeding to the Mississippi to garrison or
-establish military posts, and the headquarters of the regiment was
-directed to be at the fort to be located at the mouth of the Minnesota
-river.
-
-It was not until the 17th of September that Lieutenant-Colonel
-Leavenworth, with a detachment of troops, reached this point. A
-cantonment was first established at New Hope, near Mendota, and not far
-from the ferry. During the winter of 1819-20, forty soldiers died from
-scurvy.
-
-On the 5th of May, 1819, Colonel Leavenworth crossed the river and
-established a summer camp, but his relations with the Indian agent were
-not as harmonious as they might have been, and Colonel Josiah Snelling
-arrived and relieved him. On the 10th of September, the cornerstone of
-Fort St. Anthony was laid; the barracks at first were of logs.
-
-During the summer of 1820 a party of Sisseton Sioux killed on the
-Missouri Isadore Poupon, a half-breed, and Joseph Andrews, a Canadian,
-two men in the employ of the fur company. As soon as the information
-reached the agent, Major Taliaferro, trade with the Sioux was interdicted
-until the guilty were surrendered. Finding that they were deprived of
-blankets, powder and tobacco, a council was held at Big Stone Lake, and
-one of the murderers, and the aged father of another, agreed to go down
-and surrender themselves.
-
-On the 12th of November, escorted by friends and relatives, they
-approached the post. Halting for a brief period, they formed and marched
-in solemn procession to the center of the parade ground. In the advance
-was a Sisseton, bearing a British flag; next came the murderer, and the
-old man who had offered himself as an atonement for his son, their arms
-pinioned, and large wooden splinters thrust through the flesh above the
-elbow, indicating their contempt for pain; and in the rear followed
-friends chanting the death-song. After burning the British flag in front
-of the sentinels of the fort, they formally delivered the prisoners. The
-murderer was sent under guard to St. Louis, and the old man detained as a
-hostage.
-
-The first white women in Minnesota were the wives of the officers of
-Fort St. Anthony. The first steamer to arrive at the new fort was the
-Virginia, commanded by Captain Crawford. The event was so notable that
-she was greeted by a salute from the fort.
-
-In 1824, General Scott, on a tour of inspection, visited Fort St.
-Anthony, and suggested that the name be changed to Fort Snelling, in
-honor of Colonel Snelling, its first commander. Upon this suggestion of
-General Scott and for the reason assigned, the war department made the
-change and historic Fort Snelling took its place among the defenses of
-the nation; and from this date up to 1861, was garrisoned by regulars,
-who were quartered here to keep in check the Indians who were ever on the
-alert for an excuse to avenge themselves on the white settlers.
-
-[Illustration: Fort Snelling in 1865.]
-
-Author's Note.
-
- When visiting Fort Snelling during the occasion of the holding of the
- National Encampment of the Grand Army of the Republic in St. Paul in
- September, 1896, I found such a change.
-
- The old stone quarters for the use of the rank and file during the
- war days were there, it is true, but are being used for purposes
- other than accommodating the soldiers. I found my old squad room, but
- the old associations were gone; the memories of the war days crowded
- upon me, and I thought of the boys whose names and faces I remembered
- well, but they are dead and scattered over the land. Some few were
- there, and we went over our war history, and in the recital, recalled
- the names of our comrades who have been finally "mustered out" and
- have gone beyond the river.
-
- The present commandant of the beautiful new fort is Colonel John
- H. Page of the Third United States Infantry. This officer has been
- continuously in the service since April, 1861. He was a private
- in Company A, First Illinois Artillery, and went through all the
- campaigning of this command until the close of the war, when he
- received an appointment in the Regular Establishment, and as Captain
- was placed on recruiting service in Chicago.
-
- His advancement in his regiment has been phenomenal, and to be called
- to the command of a regiment of so renowned a record as has the Third
- Infantry, is an honor to any man, no matter where he won his spurs.
-
- Colonel Page is a Comrade of U. S. Grant Post No. 28, Grand Army of
- the Republic, Department of Illinois, and is also a Companion of the
- Loyal Legion. He has an interesting family who live with him in the
- enjoyment of his well-earned laurels.
-
-In 1861, and from that to 1866, the scene underwent a wondrous change,
-and volunteers instead of regulars became its occupants. All the
-Minnesota volunteers rendezvoused here preparatory to taking the field.
-Some years after the war the department determined to make this historic
-place one of the permanent forts, and commenced a series of improvements.
-Now it is one of the finest within the boundary of our country, and
-we find the grounds, 1,500 acres in extent, beautifully laid out, and
-extensive buildings with all the modern improvements erected for the
-accommodation of Uncle Sam's soldiers.
-
-The present post structures consist of an executive building, 93x64 feet,
-of Milwaukee brick, two stories and a basement, heated by furnaces and
-with good water supply. It contains offices for the commanding general
-and department staff. The officers' quarters: a row of thirteen brick
-buildings with all the modern improvements, hot and cold water, and a
-frame stable for each building. Minnesota Row: Six double one-story frame
-buildings, affording twelve sets of quarters for clerks and employes.
-Brick Row: A two-story brick building, 123x31 feet, with cellars, having
-sixteen suites of two rooms each, for unmarried general service clerks
-and employes. Quartermaster's employes have a one-story brick building,
-147x30 feet, containing eight sets of quarters of two rooms each, also
-a mess-house, one story brick, 58x25 feet, containing a kitchen and
-dining room, with cellar 30x12 feet. Engineer's quarters, school house,
-quartermaster's corrals, brick stables, blacksmith shops, frame carriage
-house, granary and hay-house, ice house, etc., good water works, sewer
-system, and electric lights.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI.
-
-THE ALARM.
-
-
-The Indians! The Indians are coming!
-
-How the cry rang out and struck terror to the hearts of the bravest. It
-brought to mind the stories of early days, of this great Republic, when
-the east was but sparsely settled, and the great west an unknown country,
-with the Indian monarch of all he surveyed. The vast prairies, with their
-great herds of buffalo were like the trackless seas; the waving forests,
-dark and limitless; mountain ranges--the Alleghanies, the Rockies and the
-Sierra Nevadas, towering above the clouds; the countless lakes--fresh and
-salt, hot and cold; the great inland seas; the gigantic water falls, and
-the laughing waters; the immense rivers, little rivulets at the mountain
-source, accumulating as they flowed on in their immensity, as silently
-and sullenly they wend their way to the sea; the rocky glens and great
-canyons, the wonder of all the world. It was in the early day of our
-Republic, when the hardy pioneer took his little family and out in the
-wilderness sought a new home; a time when the Indian, jealous of the
-white man's encroachment, and possessor by right of previous occupation,
-of this limitless, rich and wonderful empire, when great and powerful
-Indian nations--The Delawares, the Hurons, the Floridas, and other tribes
-in their native splendor and independence, said to the pale face, "Thus
-far shalt thou go, and no farther." The terror-stricken people were
-obliged to flee to places of safety, or succumb to the tomahawk; and on
-throughout the Seminole, the Black Hawk and other wars, including the
-great Minnesota Massacre of 1862.
-
-[Illustration: Squad Room at Fort Snelling.]
-
-Reader accompany me. The atmosphere is surcharged with excitement, and
-the whole country is terror-stricken. The southland is drenched in blood,
-and the earth trembles under the tread of marching thousands.
-
-The eyes of the nation are turned in that direction, and the whole
-civilized world is interested in the greatest civil war of the world's
-history. The levies from the states are enormous, and the stalwarts, by
-regiments and brigades, respond to the call for "Six Hundred Thousand
-more."
-
-The loyal people of the frontier have long since ceased to look upon the
-Indians as enemies, and tearfully urge their husbands and sons to rally
-to the colors in the South. What is taking place in the land of the
-Dakotahs?
-
-Their empire is fading away, their power is on the wane, their game is
-scarce, and they look with disgust and disfavor upon their unnatural
-environments. In poetry and in prose we have read of them in their
-natural way of living. They have been wronged; their vast empire has
-slipped away from them; they laugh, they scowl and run from tribe to
-tribe; they have put on the war-paint and broken the pipe of peace; with
-brandishing tomahawk and glistening scalping knife they are on the trail
-of the innocent.
-
-"Turn out, the regulars are coming!" were the ringing words of Paul
-Revere, as he, in mad haste, on April 18, 1775, on foaming steed, rode
-through the lowlands of Middlesex; so, too, are the unsuspecting people
-in Minnesota aroused by the cry of a courier, who, riding along at a
-break-neck speed shouts: "The Indians, the Indians are coming!" All
-nature is aglow; the sun rises from his eastern bed and spreads his warm,
-benign rays over this prairie land, and its happy occupants, as this
-terrific sound rings out on the morning air, are aroused and the cry:
-"Come over and help us" from the affrighted families, as they forsake
-their homes and flee for their lives, speeds on its way to ears that
-listen and heed their earnest, heart-piercing not, of despair, for the
-"Boys in Blue" respond.
-
-The people had been warned by friendly Indians that the fire brands
-would soon be applied; and that once started, none could tell where it
-would end. They were implored to take heed and prepare for the worst;
-but unsuspecting, they had been so long among their Indian friends, they
-could not believe that treachery would bury all feelings of friendship;
-but alas! thousands were slain.
-
-Go with me into their country and witness the sad results of a misguided
-people, and note how there was a division in their camp. The hot young
-bloods, ever ready for adventure and bloody adventure at that, had
-dragged their nation into an unnecessary war and the older men and
-conservative men with sorrowful hearts counselled together how best to
-extricate themselves and protect the lives of those who were prisoners
-among them. The campaign of 1862 is on.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII.
-
-SOME OF THE CAUSES OF THE WAR.
-
-
-Lo! the poor Indian, has absorbed much of the people's attention and vast
-sums of Uncle Sam's money; and being a participant in the great Sioux war
-of 1862, what I write deals with facts and not fiction, as we progress
-from Fort Snelling, Minnesota, to "Camp Release," where we found and
-released over four hundred white captives. But I will digress for a time
-and look into the causes leading up to this cruel Sioux war that cost so
-many lives and so much treasure. There is a great diversity of opinion on
-this question, and while not particularly in love with the Indian, I have
-not the temerity to criticise the Almighty because he puts his impress
-white upon some, and red upon others; neither shall I sit in judgment
-and say there are no good Indians--except dead ones. The Indian question
-proper is of too great a magnitude to analyze and treat with intelligence
-in this little book; but in the abstract, and before we enter upon the
-active campaign against them, let us look at it and see if the blame
-does not to a great extent rest more with the government than it does
-with these people. The Indians came from we know not where--legends have
-been written and tradition mentions them as among the earliest known
-possessors of this great western world. The biologist speculates, and
-it is a matter of grave doubt as to their origin. Certain it is, that
-as far back as the time of Columbus they were found here, and we read
-nothing in the early history of the voyages of this wonderful navigator
-to convince us that the Indians were treacherous;--indeed we would
-rather incline to the opposite opinion. The racial war began with the
-conquest of the Spaniards. In their primitive condition, the Indians were
-possessed of a harmless superstition--they knew no one but of their kind;
-knew nothing of another world; knew nothing of any other continent in
-this world. When they discovered the white men and the ships with their
-sails spread, they looked upon the former as supernatural beings and the
-ships as great monsters with wings. Civilization and the Indian nature
-are incompatible and evidences of this were soon apparent. The ways of
-the Europeans were of course unknown to them. They were innocent of the
-white man's avaricious propensities and the practice of "give and take"
-(and generally more take than give) was early inaugurated by the sailors
-of Columbus and the nefarious practice has been played by a certain class
-of Americans ever since. Soon their suspicions were aroused and friendly
-intercourse gave place to wars of extermination. The Indian began to
-look upon the white man as his natural enemy; fighting ensued; tribes
-became extinct; territory was ceded, and abandoned. Soon after American
-Independence had been declared, the Indians became the wards of the
-nation. The government, instead of treating them as wards and children,
-has uniformly allowed them to settle their own disputes in their own
-peculiar and savage way, and has looked upon the bloody feuds among
-the different tribes much as Plug Uglies and Thugs do a disreputable
-slugging match or dog-fight. A writer says:
-
-"If they are wards of the nation, why not take them under the strong arm
-of the law and deal with them as with others who break the law? Make an
-effort to civilize, and if civilization exterminates them it will be an
-honorable death,--to the nation at least. Send missionaries among them
-instead of thieving traders; implements of peace, rather than weapons
-of war; Bibles instead of scalping knives; religious tracts instead of
-war paint; make an effort to Christianize instead of encouraging them in
-their savagery and laziness; such a course would receive the commendation
-and acquiescence of the Christian world."
-
-There is not a sensible, unprejudiced man in America to-day, who gives
-the matter thought, but knows that the broken treaties and dishonest
-dealing with the Indians are a disgrace to this nation; and the impress
-of injustice is deeply and justly engraven upon the savage mind. The
-lesson taught by observation was that lying was no disgrace, adultery
-no sin, and theft no crime. This they learned from educated white men
-who had been sent to them as the representatives of the government; and
-these educated gentlemen (?) looked upon the Indian as common property,
-and to filch him of his money by dishonest practices, a pleasant pastime.
-The Indian woman did not escape his lecherous eye and if his base
-proposals were rejected, he had other means to resort to to enable him to
-accomplish his base desire. These wards were only Indians and why respect
-their feelings? "Sow the wind and reap the whirlwind." The whirlwind came
-and oh, the sad results!
-
-The Indians were circumscribed in their hunting grounds by the onward
-march of civilization which crowded them on every side and their only
-possible hope from starvation, was in the fidelity with which a great
-nation kept its pledges. 'Tis true, money was appropriated by the
-government for this purpose, but it is equally true that gamblers and
-thieving traders set up fictitious claims and the Indians came out in
-debt and their poor families were left to starve. Hungry, exasperated and
-utterly powerless to help themselves, they resolved on savage vengeance
-when the propitious time arrived.
-
-"The villainy you teach me I will execute," became a living, bloody
-issue. This did not apply alone to the Sioux nation, but to the Chippewas
-as well. These people have always been friends of the whites, and have
-uniformly counselled peace; but broken pledges and impositions filled the
-friendly ones with sorrow, and the others with anger. The commissioners,
-no doubt, rectified the wrong as soon as it was brought to their notice,
-but the Indians were plucked all the same and had sense enough to know
-it. Our country is cursed with politicians--the statesmen seem to have
-disappeared; but, the politician grows like rank weeds and the desire for
-"boodle" permeates our municipal, state and national affairs. Our Indian
-system has presented a fat field so long as these wards of the nation
-submitted to being fleeced by unprincipled agents and their gambling
-friends, but at last, the poor Indian is aroused to the enormity of the
-imposition and the innocent whites had to suffer. In some instances the
-vengeance of God followed the unscrupulous agent and the scalping knife
-in the hand of the injured Indian was made the instrument whereby this
-retribution came.
-
-There has been a great deal said of Indian warriors--we have read of them
-in poetry and in prose and of the beautiful Indian maiden as well. The
-Sioux warriors are tall, athletic, fine looking men, and those who have
-not been degraded by the earlier and rougher frontier white man, or had
-their intellects destroyed by the white man's fire-water, possess minds
-of a high order and can reason with a correctness that would astonish
-our best scholars and put to blush many of our so-called statesmen, and
-entirely put to rout a majority of the men who, by the grace of men's
-votes hold down Congressional chairs. Yet they are called savages and are
-associated in our minds with tomahawks and scalping knives. Few regard
-them as reasoning creatures and some even think they are not endowed by
-their Creator with souls. Good men are sending Bibles to all parts of
-the world, sermons are preached in behalf of our fellow-creatures who
-are perishing in regions known only to us by name; yet here within easy
-reach, but a few miles from civilization, surrounded by churches and
-schools and all the moral influences abounding in Christian society;
-here, in a country endowed with every advantage that God can bestow,
-are perishing, body and soul, our countrymen--perishing from disease,
-starvation and intemperance and all the evils incident to their unhappy
-condition. I have no apology to make for the savage atrocities of any
-people, be they heathen or Christian, or pretended Christian; and we can
-point to pages of history where the outrages perpetrated by the soldiers
-of so-called Christian nations, under the sanction of their governments,
-would cause the angels to weep. Look at bleeding Armenia, the victim of
-the lecherous Turk, who has satiated his brutal, bestial nature in the
-blood and innocency of tens of thousands of men, women and children; and
-yet, the Christian nations of the world look on with indifference at
-these atrocities and pray: "Oh, Lord, pour out Thy blessings on us and
-protect us while we are unmindful of the appeals of mothers and daughters
-in poor Armenia!"
-
-This royal, lecherous, murderous Turk, instead of being dethroned and
-held to a strict accountability for the horrible butcheries, and worse
-than butcheries, going on within his kingdom and for which he, and he
-alone, is responsible, is held in place by Christian and civilized
-nations for fear that some one shall, in the partition of his unholy
-empire, get a bigger slice than is its equitable share.
-
-The "sick man" has been allowed for the last half century to commit the
-most outrageous crimes against an inoffensive, honest, progressive, and
-law-abiding people, and no vigorous protest has gone out against it.
-Shall we, then, mercilessly condemn the poor Indians because, driven
-from pillar to post, with the government pushing in front and hostile
-tribes and starvation in their rear, they have in vain striven for a
-bare existence? Whole families have starved while the fathers were away
-on their hunt for game. Through hunger and disease powerful tribes have
-become but a mere band of vagabonds.
-
-America, as she listens to the dying wail of the red man, driven from the
-forests of his childhood and the graves of his fathers, cannot afford
-to throw stones; but rather let her redeem her broken pledges to these
-helpless, benighted, savage children, and grant them the protection they
-have the right to expect, nay, demand.
-
-"I will wash my hands in innocency" will not suffice. Let the government
-make amends, and in the future mete out to the dishonest agent such
-a measure of punishment as will strike terror to him and restore the
-confidence of the Indians who think they have been unjustly dealt with.
-But to my theme.
-
-The year of which I write was a time in St. Paul when the Indian was
-almost one's next door neighbor,--a time when trading between St. Paul
-and Winnipeg was carried on principally by half-breeds, and the mode
-of transportation the crude Red river cart, which is made entirely of
-wood,--not a scrap of iron in its whole make-up. The team they used was
-one ox to a cart, and the creak of this long half-breed train, as it
-wended its way over the trackless country, could be heard twice a year as
-it came down to the settlements laden with furs to exchange for supplies
-for families, and hunting purposes. It was at a time when the hostile
-bands of Sioux met bands of Chippewas, and in the immediate vicinity
-engaged in deadly conflict, while little attention was paid to their
-feuds by the whites or the government at Washington.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII.
-
-LITTLE CROW AT DEVIL'S LAKE.
-
-
-It was in August, 1861, on the western border of Devil's Lake, Dakota,
-there sat an old Indian chief in the shade of his wigwam, preparing a
-fresh supply of kinnikinnick.
-
-The mantle of evening was veiling the sky as this old chief worked and
-the events of the past were crowding his memory. He muses alone at the
-close of the day, while the wild bird skims away on its homeward course
-and the gathering gloom of eventide causes a sigh to escape his breast,
-as many sweet pictures of past happy years "come flitting again with
-their hopes and their fears." The embers of the fire have gone out and he
-and his dog alone are resting on the banks of the lake after the day's
-hunt; and, as he muses, he wanders back to the time when in legend lore
-the Indian owned the Western world; the hills and the valleys, the vast
-plains and their abundance, the rivers, the lakes and the mountains were
-his; great herds of buffalo wended their way undisturbed by the white
-hunter; on every hand abundance met his gaze, and the proud Red Man with
-untainted blood, and an eye filled with fire, looked out toward the four
-points of the compass, and, with beating heart, thanked the Great Spirit
-for this goodly heritage. To disturb his dream the white man came, and
-as the years rolled on, step by step, pressed him back;--civilization
-brought its cunning and greed for money-getting. A generous government,
-perhaps too confiding, allowed unprincipled men to rob and crowd, and
-crowd and rob, until the Mississippi is reached and the farther West
-is portioned out to him for his future residence. The influx of whites
-from Europe and the rapidly increasing population demand more room, and
-another move is planned by the government for the Indians, until they are
-crowding upon the borders of unfriendly tribes.
-
-[Illustration: Designed by A. P. Connolly.
-
-Little Crow Sitting Meditating on the Banks of Devil's Lake, Dakota,
-August, 1862.]
-
-This old chief of whom we speak awoke from his meditative dream, and
-in imagination we see him with shaded eyes looking afar off toward the
-mountain. He beholds a cloud no bigger than a man's hand; he strains
-his eye, and eagerly looks, for he sees within the pent-up environments
-of this cloud all the hatred and revenge with which his savage race is
-endowed. The cloud that is gathering is not an imaginative one, but it
-will burst in time upon the heads of guilty and innocent alike; and the
-old chief chuckles as he thinks of the scalps he will take from the
-hated whites, and the great renown, and wonderful power yet in store for
-him. His runners go out visiting other bands and tell what the old chief
-expects. They give their assent to it, and as they talk and speculate,
-they too, become imbued with a spirit of revenge and a desire to gain
-back the rich heritage their fathers once held in possession for them,
-but which has passed from their control. They are not educated, it is
-true, but nature has endowed them with intelligence enough to understand
-that their fathers had bartered away an empire, and in exchange had
-taken a limited country, illy adapted to their wants and crude,
-uncivilized habits. This old chief's mind is made up, and we will meet
-him again--aye! on fields of blood and carnage.
-
-The government had acted in good faith, and had supplied the Indians
-with material for building small brick houses, furnishing, in addition
-to money payments and clothing, farming implements and all things
-necessary to enable them to support themselves on their fertile farms;
-and missionaries, also, were among them, and competent teachers, ready to
-give the young people, as they grew up, an education, to enable them to
-better their condition and take on the habits and language of the white
-settlers.
-
-But the devil among the Indians, as among the whites, finds "some
-mischief still for idle hands to do;" gamblers and other unprincipled
-men followed the agents, hob-nobbed with them, and laid their plans
-to "hold-up and bunko" the Indians, who, filled with fire-water and a
-passion for gambling, soon found themselves stripped of money, ponies
-and blankets, with nothing in view but a long, cold, dreary winter and
-starvation. A gambler could kill an Indian and all he had to fear was
-an Indian's vengeance (for the civil law never took cognizance of the
-crime); but if an Indian, filled with rum, remorse and revenge, killed
-a gambler, he was punished to the full extent of the law. In this one
-thing the injustice was so apparent that even an Indian could see it;
-and he made up his mind that when the time came he would even up the
-account. The savage Indians were intelligent enough to know that in these
-transactions it was the old story of the handle on the jug--all on one
-side.
-
-Those of the "friendlies" who were Christianized and civilized were
-anxious to bury forever all remains of savagery and become citizens of
-the nation, and if the government had placed honorable men over them to
-administer the law, their influence would have been felt, and in time the
-leaven of law and order, would have leavened the whole Sioux nation. The
-various treaties that had been made with them by the government did not
-seem to satisfy the majority, and whether there was any just cause for
-this dissatisfaction I do not propose to discuss; but, that a hostile
-feeling did exist was apparent, as subsequent events proved.
-
-The provisions of the treaties for periodical money payments, although
-carried out with substantial honesty, failed to fulfill the exaggerated
-expectations of the Indians; and these matters of irritation added
-fuel to the fire of hostility, which always has, and always will exist
-between a civilized and a barbarous nation, when brought into immediate
-contact; and especially has this been the case where the savages were
-proud, brave and lordly warriors, who looked with supreme contempt upon
-all civilized methods of obtaining a living, and who felt amply able
-to defend themselves and avenge their wrongs. Nothing special has been
-discovered to have taken place other than the general dissatisfaction
-referred to, to which the outbreak of 1862 can be immediately attributed.
-This outbreak was charged to emissaries from the Confederates of the
-South, but there was no foundation for these allegations. The main reason
-was that the Indians were hungry and angry; they had become restless, and
-busy-bodies among them had instilled within them the idea that the great
-war in the South was drawing off able-bodied men and leaving the women
-and children at home helpless. Some of the ambitious chiefs thought it a
-good opportunity to regain their lost country and exalt themselves in
-the eyes of their people. The most ambitious of the lot was Little Crow,
-the old chief we saw sitting in the shade of his wigwam on Devil's Lake.
-He was a wily old fox and knew how to enlist the braves on his side.
-After the battles of Birch Coolie and Wood Lake, Minnesota, in September,
-1862, he deserted his warriors, and was discovered one day down in the
-settlements picking berries upon which to subsist. Refusing to surrender,
-he was shot, and in his death the whites were relieved of an implacable
-foe, and the Indians deprived of an intrepid and daring leader.
-
-There was nothing about the agencies up to August 18, 1862, to indicate
-that the Indians intended, or even thought, of an attack. Everything had
-an appearance of quiet and security. On the 17th of August, however, a
-small party of Indians appeared at Acton, Minnesota, and murdered several
-settlers, but it was not generally thought that they left the agency
-with this in mind; this killing was an afterthought, a diversion; but,
-on the news of these murders reaching the Indians at the Upper Agency
-on the 18th, open hostilities were at once commenced and the whites and
-traders indiscriminately murdered. George Spencer was the only white man
-in the stores who escaped with his life. He was twice wounded, however,
-and running upstairs in the loft hid himself away and remained concealed
-until the Indians, thinking no more white people remained, left the
-place, when an old squaw took Spencer to her home and kept him until his
-fast friend, Chaska, came and took him under his protection. The picture
-of Spencer is taken from an old-time photograph.
-
-[Illustration: George Spencer,
-
-Who was Saved by Chaska, August, 1862.]
-
-The missionaries residing a short distance above the Yellow Medicine,
-and their people, with a few others, were notified by friendly disposed
-Indians, and to the number of about forty made their escape to
-Hutchinson, Minnesota. Similar events occurred at the Lower Agency on the
-same day, when nearly all the traders were butchered, and several who got
-away before the general massacre commenced were killed before reaching
-Fort Ridgely, thirteen miles below, or the other places of safety to
-which they were fleeing. All the buildings at both agencies were
-destroyed, but such property as was valuable to the Indians was carried
-off.
-
-The news of the outbreak reached Fort Ridgely about 8 o'clock a. m. on
-the 18th of August through the arrival of a team from the Lower Agency,
-which brought a citizen badly wounded, but no details. Captain John F.
-Marsh, of the Fifth Minnesota, with eighty-five men, was holding the
-fort, and upon the news reaching him he transferred his command of the
-fort to Lieutenant Gere and with forty-five men started for the scene
-of hostilities. He had a full supply of ammunition, and with a six-mule
-team left the fort at 9 a. m. on the 18th of August, full of courage and
-anxious to get to the relief of the panic-stricken people. On the march
-up, evidences of the Indians' bloody work soon appeared, for bodies were
-found by the roadside of those who had recently been murdered, one of
-whom was Dr. Humphrey, surgeon at the agency. On reaching the vicinity of
-the ferry no Indians were in sight except one on the opposite side of the
-river, who endeavored to induce the soldiers to cross. A dense chaparral
-bordered the river on the agency side and tall grass covered the bottom
-land on the side where the troops were stationed. From various signs,
-suspicions were aroused of the presence of Indians, and the suspicions
-proved correct, for without a moment's notice, Indians in great numbers
-sprang up on all sides of the troops and opened a deadly fire. About
-half of the men were instantly killed. Finding themselves surrounded,
-desperate hand-to-hand encounters occurred, with varying results, and the
-remnant of the command made a point down the river about two miles from
-the ferry, Captain Marsh being among the number. They evidently attempted
-to cross, but Captain Marsh was drowned in the effort, and only thirteen
-of his command escaped and reached the fort alive. Captain Marsh, in
-his excitement, may have erred in judgment and deemed it more his duty
-to attack than retreat; but the great odds of five hundred Indians to
-forty-five soldiers was too great and the captain and his brave men paid
-the penalty. He was young, brave and ambitious and knew but little of
-the Indians' tactics in war; but he no doubt believed he was doing his
-duty in advancing rather than retreating, and his countrymen will hold
-his memory and the memory of those who gave up their lives with him in
-warmer esteem than they would had he adopted the more prudent course of
-retracing his steps.
-
-At a later date, in 1876, it will be remembered, the brave Custer was
-led into a similar trap, and of the five companies of the Seventh United
-States cavalry and their intrepid commanders only one was left to tell
-the tale.
-
-After having massacred the people at the agencies, the Indians at once
-sent out marauding parties in all directions and covered the country from
-the northeast as far as Glencoe, Hutchinson and St. Peter, Minnesota,
-and as far south as Spirit Lake, Iowa. In their trail was to be found
-their deadly work of murder and devastation, for at least one thousand
-men, women and children were found brutally butchered, houses burned,
-and beautiful farms laid waste. The settlers, being accustomed to the
-friendly visits of these Indians, were taken completely unawares and were
-given no opportunity for defense.
-
-Major Thomas Galbraith, the Sioux agent, had raised a company known
-as the Renville Rangers, and was expecting to report at Fort Snelling
-for muster and orders to proceed south to join one of the Minnesota
-commands; but upon his arrival at St. Peter, on the evening of August
-18, he learned the news of the outbreak at the agencies, and immediately
-retraced his steps, returning to Fort Ridgely, where he arrived on
-the 19th. On the same day Lieutenant Sheehan, of the Fifth Minnesota
-Infantry, with fifty men, arrived also, in obedience to a dispatch
-received from Captain Marsh, who commanded the post at Fort Ridgely.
-Lieutenant Sheehan, in enthusiasm and appearance, resembled General
-Sheridan. He was young and ambitious, and entered into this important
-work with such vim as to inspire his men to deeds of heroic valor. Upon
-receipt of Captain Marsh's dispatch ordering him to return at once, as
-"The Indians are raising hell at the Lower Agency!" he so inspired his
-men so as to make the forced march of forty-two miles in nine hours and
-a half, and he did not arrive a minute too soon. After Captain Marsh's
-death he became the ranking officer at Fort Ridgely, and the mantle
-of authority could not fall on more deserving shoulders. His command
-consisted of Companies B and C of the Fifth Minnesota, 100 men; Renville
-Rangers, 50 men; with several men of other organizations, including
-Sergeant John Jones (afterwards captain of artillery), and quite a number
-of citizen refugees, and a party that had been sent up by the Indian
-agent with the money to pay the Indians at the agency.
-
-[Illustration: Designed by A. P. Connolly.
-
-Siege of Fort Ridgely, August 20, 21 and 22.
-
-Indians fired the Fort with burning arrows, but were finally defeated by
-General Sibley's Column.]
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX.
-
-FORT RIDGELY BESIEGED.
-
-
-Fort Ridgely was a fort in name only. It was not built for defense,
-but was simply a collection of buildings built around a square facing
-inwards. The commandant's quarters, and those of the officers, also, were
-two-story structures of wood, while the men's barracks of two stories
-and the commissary storehouse were stone, and into these the families of
-the officers and soldiers and the refugee families were placed during
-the siege. On the 20th of August, 1862, about 3 p. m., an attack was
-made upon the fort by a large body of Indians, who stealthily came down
-the ravines and surrounded it. The first intimation the people and the
-garrison had of their proximity was a volley from the hostile muskets
-pouring between the openings of the buildings. The sudden onslaught
-caused great consternation, but order was soon restored.
-
-Sergeant Jones, of the battery, who had seen service in the British army,
-as well as in our own regular army, in attempting to turn his guns on the
-Indians found to his utter astonishment that the pieces had been tampered
-with by some of the half-breeds belonging to the Renville Rangers who had
-deserted to the enemy. They had spiked the guns by ramming old rags into
-them. The sergeant soon made them serviceable, however, and brought his
-pieces to bear upon the Indians in such an effective way as to teach them
-a lesson in artillery practice they did not forget. The "rotten balls,"
-as they termed the shells, fell thick and fast among them, and the havoc
-was so great that they withdrew out of range to hold a council of war
-and recover from their surprise. The fight lasted, however, for three
-hours, with a loss to the garrison of three killed and eighteen wounded.
-On the morning of Thursday, the 21st of August, the attack was renewed
-by the Indians, and they made a second attack in the afternoon, but with
-less force and earnestness and but little damage to the garrison. The
-soldiers were on the alert and the night was an anxious one, for the
-signs from the hostiles indicated that they were making preparations
-for a further attempt to capture the fort. During the night barricades
-were placed at all open spaces between the buildings, and the little
-garrison band instructed, each man's duty specified, and directions
-given to the women and children, who were placed in the stone barracks,
-to lie low so as not to be harmed by bullets coming in at the windows.
-On Friday, the 22d, Little Crow, the then Sioux commander in chief, had
-the fort surrounded by 650 warriors whom he had brought down from the
-agency. He had them concealed in the ravines which surrounded the fort,
-and endeavored by sending a few of the warriors out on the open prairie
-to draw the garrison out from the fort, but fortunately there were men
-there who had previously had experience in Indian warfare, and the
-scheme of this wily old Indian fox did not work. Little Crow, finding it
-useless to further maneuver in this way, ordered an attack. The showers
-of bullets continued for seven long hours, or until about 7 p. m., but
-the attack was courageously and bitterly opposed by the infantry, and
-this, together with the skillfully handled artillery by Sergeant Jones,
-saved the garrison for another day. The Indians sought shelter behind
-and in the outlying wooden buildings, but well directed shells from the
-battery fired these buildings and routed the Indians, who in turn made
-various attempts by means of fire arrows to ignite the wooden buildings
-of the fort proper. But for the daring and vigilance of the troops the
-enemy would have succeeded in their purpose. The Indians lost heavily in
-this engagement, while the loss to the troops was one killed and seven
-wounded. Lieutenant Sheehan, the commander of the post, was a man of
-true grit, and he was ably assisted by Lieutenant Gorman of the Renville
-Rangers, and Sergeants Jones and McGrau of the battery. Every man was
-a hero and did his whole duty. Surrounded as they were by hundreds of
-bloodthirsty savages, this little band was all that stood between the
-hundreds of women and children refugees and certain death, or worse
-than death! Besides, the government storehouses were filled with army
-supplies, and about $75,000 in gold, with which they intended making an
-annuity payment to these same Indians.
-
-The water supply being cut off, the soldiers and all the people,
-especially the wounded, suffered severely, but Post Surgeon Mueller and
-his noble wife heroically responded to the urgent calls of the wounded
-sufferers irrespective of danger. Mrs. Mueller was a lovely woman of the
-heroic type. During the siege, in addition to caring for the wounded, she
-made coffee, and in the night frequently visited all the men who were on
-guard and plentifully supplied them with this exhilarating beverage. An
-incident in relation to her also is, that during the siege the Indians
-had sheltered themselves behind a haystack and from it were doing deadly
-work. Sergeant Jones could not bring his twenty-four pounder to bear on
-them without exposing his men too much, unless he fired directly through
-a building that stood in the way. This house was built as they are on the
-plantations in the South, with a broad hall running from the front porch
-clear through to the rear. In the rear of this hall were rough double
-doors, closed principally in winter time to keep the snow from driving
-through. The sergeant had them closed and then brought his piece around
-in front, and the Indians away back of the house could not see what the
-maneuvering was. He crept up and attached a rope to the handle of the
-door, and looking through the cracks got the range and then sighted his
-gun. Mrs. Mueller, sheltered and out of harm's way, held the end of
-the attached rope. The signal for her to pull open the doors was given
-by Sergeant Jones, and this signal was the dropping of a handkerchief.
-When the signal came, with good nerve, she pulled the rope and open flew
-the doors. Immediately the gunner pulled the lanyard and the shell with
-lighted fuse landed in the haystacks, which were at once set fire to and
-the Indians dislodged. This lady died at her post, beloved by all who
-knew her, and a grateful government has erected an expensive monument
-over her remains, which lie buried in the soldiers' cemetery at Fort
-Ridgely, where, with hundreds of others whose pathway to the grave was
-smoothed by her motherly hands, they will remain until the great reveille
-on the resurrection dawn.
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration: LITTLE CROW.]
-
-CHAPTER X.
-
-SIEGE OF NEW ULM.
-
-
-Little Crow, finding himself baffled in his attempt to capture the fort,
-and learning from his scouts that Colonel Sibley was on his way with
-two regiments to relieve the garrison, concentrated all his forces and
-proceeded to New Ulm, about thirteen miles distant, which he intended to
-wipe out the next morning. Here, again, he was disappointed. The hero of
-New Ulm was Hon. Charles E. Flandreau, who deserves more than a passing
-notice. By profession he is a lawyer, and at this time was a judge on
-the bench, and is now enjoying a lucrative practice in St. Paul. By
-nature he is an organizer and a leader, and to his intrepid bravery and
-wise judgment New Ulm and her inhabitants owe their salvation from the
-savagery of Little Crow and his bloodthirsty followers. He had received
-the news of the outbreak at his home near St. Peter in the early morning
-of August 19, and at once decided what should be done to save the people.
-
-His duty to wife and children was apparent, and to place them in safety
-was his first thought, which he did by taking them to St. Peter. He
-then issued a call for volunteers, and in response to this soon found
-himself surrounded by men who needed no second bidding, for the very air
-was freighted with the terror of the situation. Armed with guns of any
-and all descriptions, with bottles of powder, boxes of caps and pockets
-filled with bullets, one hundred and twenty men, determined on revenge,
-pressed forward to meet this terrible foe.
-
-Where should they go? Rumors came from all directions, and one was that
-Fort Ridgely was being besieged and had probably already fallen. Their
-eyes also turned toward New Ulm, which was but thirteen miles distant and
-in an absolutely unprotected condition. Its affrighted people were at the
-mercy of this relentless enemy. The work Judge Flandreau performed in
-perfecting an organization was masterful, for the men who flocked in and
-offered their services he could not control in a military sense, because
-they were not enlisted. The emergency was very great and it was necessary
-to do the right thing and at the right time and to strike hard and deadly
-blows, and trusted men were sent forward to scout and report. Hon. Henry
-A. Swift, afterwards governor of Minnesota, rendered good service in
-company with William G. Hayden as they scouted the country in a buggy.
-It was a novel way to scout, but horses were too scarce to allow a horse
-to each. An advance guard was sent forward about noon, and an hour later
-the balance of the command was in motion, eagerly pushing forward and
-anxious to meet the enemy wherever he might be found. The advance guard
-which Flandreau sent out to determine whether Fort Ridgely or New Ulm
-should be the objective point had not yet been heard from, and, that no
-time might be lost, he determined that he would push forward to New Ulm,
-and if that village was safe he would turn his attention to Ridgely. He
-found his guard at New Ulm, and they had been largely reinforced by other
-men who came in to help protect the place. They arrived just in time
-to assist in repelling an attack of about two hundred Indians, who had
-suddenly surrounded the little village. Before the arrival of Flandreau
-and his command they could see the burning houses in the distance, and
-by this they knew that the work of devastation had commenced, and the
-forced march was kept up. The rain was pouring in torrents, and yet they
-had made thirty-two miles in seven hours and reached the place about 8
-o'clock in the evening.
-
-The next day reinforcements continued to come in from various points
-until the little army of occupation numbered three hundred effective
-and determined men. A council of war was called and a line of defense
-determined upon by throwing up barricades in nearly all the streets.
-
-The situation was a very grave one and it was soon apparent that a
-one-man power was necessary--that a guiding mind must control the actions
-of this hastily gathered army of raw material; and to this end, Judge
-Flandreau was declared generalissimo, and subsequent events proved that
-the selection was a most judicious one. In a few days subsequent to this
-he received a commission as colonel from Governor Ramsey and was placed
-in command of all irregular troops. There were fifty companies reported
-to him all told; some were mounted and others were not. His district
-extended from New Ulm, Minnesota, to Sioux City, Iowa. It was a most
-important command, and Colonel Flandreau proved himself a hero as well
-as a competent organizer. He is so modest about it even to-day that he
-rarely refers to it.
-
-A provost guard was at once established, order inaugurated, defenses
-strengthened and confidence partially restored. Nothing serious
-transpired until Saturday morning at about 9 o'clock, when 650 Indians,
-who had been so handsomely repulsed at Fort Ridgely, thirteen miles
-above, made a determined assault upon the town, driving in the pickets.
-The lines faltered for a time, but soon rallied and steadily held the
-enemy at bay. The Indians had surrounded the town and commenced firing
-the buildings, and the conflagration was soon raging on both sides of
-the main street in the lower part of the town, and the total destruction
-of the place seemed inevitable. It was necessary to dislodge the enemy
-in some way, so a squad of fifty men was ordered out to charge down the
-burning street, and the Indians were driven out. The soldiers then
-burned everything and the battle was won. The desperate character of
-the fighting may be judged when we find the casualties to be ten men
-killed and fifty wounded in about an hour and a half, and this out of a
-much depleted force, for out of the little army of three hundred men,
-seventy-five who had been sent under Lieutenant Huey to guard the ferry
-were cut off and forced to retreat towards St. Peter. Before reaching
-this place, however, they met reinforcements and returned to the attack.
-The Indians now, in turn, seeing quite a reinforcement coming, thought it
-wise to retreat, and drew off to the northward, in the direction of the
-fort, and disappeared.
-
-The little town of New Ulm at this time contained from 1,200 to 1,500
-non-combatants, consisting of women and children, refugees and unarmed
-citizens, every individual of whom would have been massacred if it
-had not been for this brave band of men under the command of Colonel
-Flandreau. Not knowing what the retreat of the Indians indicated, the
-uncertainty and scarcity of provisions, the pestilence to be feared from
-stench and exposure, all combined to bring about the decision to evacuate
-the town and try to reach Mankato. In order to do this a train was made
-up, into which were loaded the women and children and about eighty
-wounded men. It was a sad sight to witness this enforced breaking up of
-home ties, homes burned and farms and gardens laid waste, loved ones dead
-and wounded, and this one of the inevitable results of an unnecessary
-and unprovoked war. The march to Mankato was without special incident.
-Especially fortunate was this little train of escaping people in not
-meeting any wandering party of hostile Indians.
-
-The first day about half the distance from Mankato to St. Peter was
-covered; the main column was pushed on to its final destination, it
-being the intention of Colonel Flandreau to return with a portion of his
-command to New Ulm, or remain where they were, so as to keep a force
-between the Indians and the settlements. But the men of his command,
-not having heard a word from their families for over a week, felt
-apprehensive and refused to return or remain, holding that the protection
-of their families was paramount to all other considerations. It must be
-remembered that these men were not soldiers, but had demonstrated their
-willingness to fight when necessary, and they did fight, and left many
-of their comrades dead and wounded on the battlefield. The train that
-had been sent forward arrived in Mankato on the 25th of August, and the
-balance of the command reached the town on the day following, when the
-men sought their homes.
-
-The stubborn resistance the Indians met with at Fort Ridgely and New Ulm
-caused them to withdraw to their own country, and this temporary lull
-in hostilities enabled the whites to more thoroughly organize, and the
-troops to prepare for a campaign up into the Yellow Medicine country,
-where it was known a large number of captives were held.
-
-[Illustration: Colonel Charles E. Flandreau,
-
-Who was in command at New Ulm, Minn., during the Siege from August 20th
-to 25th, 1862.]
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI.
-
-COL. FLANDREAU IN COMMAND.
-
-
-While the exciting events narrated in the previous chapters were
-taking place other portions of the state were preparing for defense.
-At Forest City, Hutchinson, Glencoe, and even as far south as St. Paul
-and Minneapolis, men were rapidly organizing for home protection. In
-addition to the Sioux, the Chippewas and Winnebagoes were becoming
-affected and seemed anxious for a pretext to don the paint and take the
-warpath. Colonel Flandreau having received his commission as colonel
-from Governor Ramsey, with authority to take command of the Blue Earth
-country extending from New Ulm to the Iowa line, embracing the western
-and southwestern frontier of the state, proceeded at once to properly
-organize troops, commission officers, and do everything in his power
-as a military officer to give protection to the citizens. The Colonel
-established his headquarters at South Bend and the home guards came
-pouring in, reporting for duty, and squads that had been raised and
-mustered into the volunteer service, but had not yet joined their
-commands, were organized into companies, and the Colonel soon found
-himself surrounded by quite an army of good men, well officered, and with
-a determination to do their whole duty. This was done by establishing
-a cordon of military posts so as to inspire confidence and prevent an
-exodus of the people. Any one who has not been through the ordeal of an
-Indian insurrection can form no idea of the terrible apprehension that
-takes possession of a defenseless and non-combatant people under such
-circumstances.
-
-The mystery and suspense attending an Indian's movements, and the
-certainty of the cruelty to his captives, strikes terror to the heart,
-and upon the first crack of his rifle a thousand are put to flight.
-While cruelty is one of the natural characteristics of the Indians, yet
-there are many among them who have humane feelings and are susceptible
-of Christian influences. As friends, they are of the truest; but the
-thoughtless cry out as did the enemies of our Savior: "Crucify him!
-Crucify him!" Other Day, Standing Buffalo, Chaska and Old Betz were as
-true and as good people as ever lived, and yet they are held responsible
-for the atrocities of their savage brethren. At the risk of their own
-lives they warned hundreds of people and guided them by night, and hid
-them by day, until finally they reached a place of safety. At the hostile
-camp, where they had over four hundred women and children, it was only
-through the influence of these and other sturdy friendly chiefs that any
-lives were saved. They had to even throw barricades around their tepees
-and watch day and night until the soldiers came, giving notice that
-whoever raised hand to harm these defenseless people would do it at their
-peril. When we know of these kind acts, let us pause a moment before we
-say there are no good Indians.
-
-It was a study to look at some of these old dusky heroes, who said
-nothing but thought much, and who had determined that, come what would,
-harm should not come to the captives. There were statesmen, too, among
-them; men wise in council, who had respect for their Great Father at
-Washington, who were cognizant of the fact that much dissatisfaction was
-engendered among their people by occurrences taking place at the time of
-the negotiation for the treaties. They counselled their people, and no
-doubt tried hard to induce them to forsake their desire for vengeance
-on the whites, and thus retard the progress they were making for their
-offspring toward civilization and a better manner of living.
-
-You might properly ask here: "What became of the friendly Indians while
-the hostiles were on the warpath?" Some of them forgot their friendly
-feelings and, like the whisky victim, when they got a taste of blood,
-they wanted more! They were all forced by the hostiles to don their war
-paint and breech-cloth, and go with them against the whites, and they
-were wise enough to know that it was folly to resist. Their main object
-was to prevent the wholesale murder of the captives, for when hostilities
-opened, they knew if they did not go, every woman and child in the
-captive camp would be murdered; and the friendlies would be blamed as
-much as the hostiles themselves.
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration: MRS. EASTLICK AND CHILDREN.]
-
-CHAPTER XII.
-
-MRS. EASTLICK AND FAMILY.
-
-
-The note of alarm sounded throughout the neighborhood and without a
-moment's warning hurried preparations were made for the exodus. Women
-and children and a few household goods were loaded into wagons and a
-start made for a place of safety. Indians suddenly appeared and commenced
-an indiscriminate fire upon the terror-stricken refugees.
-
-The individual cases of woman's heroism, daring, bravery, cunning and
-strong-willed self-sacrifice, could be recounted by the score, and in
-some instances are past belief. Their achievements would be considered
-as pure fiction but for our own personal knowledge. Many of the real
-occurrences would seem like legends, when the father had been murdered
-and the mother left with two, three and even five and six children to
-care for, and if possible save them from the ferocity of the painted red
-devils, whose thirst for blood could seemingly not be satiated. One noted
-case was the Eastlick family, and this was only one of a hundred. Eleven
-men of the party had already been killed, and Mr. Eastlick among the
-number. The women with their children were scattered in all directions in
-the brush, to escape if possible the inevitable fate in store for them if
-caught. The Indians shouted to them to come out from their hiding places
-and surrender and they should be spared. The remaining men, thinking
-perhaps their lives might be saved if they surrendered, urged their wives
-to do so, and the men would, if possible, escape and give the alarm.
-Thus, without a word or a look lest they should betray the remaining
-husbands, were these women driven from their natural protectors and
-obliged to submit to the tender mercies of their hated red captors. The
-supposed dead husbands watched the receding forms of their devoted wives,
-whom in all likelihood they never would see again. Burton Eastlick, the
-fifteen-year-old boy, could not endure the thought of leaving his mother
-to this uncertain fate, and he followed her, but she persuaded him, for
-the sake of his fifteen-months-old baby brother, to leave her and try and
-make his escape, carrying the little one with him. And how well did he
-execute his mission.
-
-The Indians fired upon the little group and Mrs. Eastlick fell, wounded
-in three places, and the boy ran away, supposing his mother dead; but she
-revived, and crawled to where her wounded husband and six-year-old boy
-were, to find both dead. Can you picture such a scene or imagine what the
-feelings of this poor mother must be under these awful circumstances?
-Sublime silence reigning over earth and sky, and she alone with her dead!
-
-What a parting must that have been from husband and child--death and
-desolation complete. Could she look to her God? A heart of faith so
-sorely tried, and yet she said: "I am in His hands; surely I must trust
-Him, for I am yet alive, and two precious children, Burton and little
-baby, are fleeing to a place of safety."
-
-This heroic boy, Burton, seeing his mother shot, and supposed to be dead,
-and watching the life flicker and the spirit of his six-year-old brother
-pass away, placed the dear little body beside that of his father, and
-with a bravery born of an heroic nature he accepted his charge, and with
-the injunction of his precious, dying mother still ringing in his ears,
-made preparations to start. It seemed an herculean effort, but the brave
-boy said: "We may yet be saved!" So, pressing his baby brother close to
-his heart, he took a last look upon the faces of his dear father, mother
-and six-year-old brother and started.
-
-Ninety miles, thick with dangers, lay before our young hero; but he
-faltered not. When tired carrying his little brother in his arms he
-took him on his back. The first day he made sixteen miles, and in ten
-consecutive days covered sixty miles. He lived on corn and such food as
-he could find in deserted houses. At night his bed was the earth, his
-pillow a stone, and the sky his only covering, the bright stars acting
-as nightly sentinels over him, as weary, he and his little baby charge
-slept. If angels have a duty to perform, surely troops of them must have
-hovered around. He fed the little brother as best he could to appease
-his hunger and covered him as with angel wings to protect the little
-trembling body from the chilly night air. Brave boy! The pages of history
-furnish nothing more noble than this deed, and if you yet live, what a
-consolation, what a proud reflection, to know that there never before was
-witnessed a deed more deserving of immortal fame.
-
-"Thou shalt not be afraid for the terror by night, nor for the arrow that
-flyeth by day." The resolute mother, badly wounded and left for dead,
-revived. She looked upon the face of her dead husband and little boy,
-and with sublime courage started for a place of safety. At the risk of
-being discovered and murdered--hungry, tired, with wounds undressed and a
-heavy, aching heart and deathly sick, she was obliged to lie by for some
-time, after which she again started, and for ten days and nights this
-poor sorrow-stricken woman traveled on her weary way.
-
-Providence led her in the path of a mail carrier on a route from Sioux
-Falls City, in Dakota, to New Ulm, Minnesota. He had formerly known her,
-but in her emaciated, jaded, pitiful condition the change was so great he
-did not recognize her.
-
-At New Ulm she found her children, where they were being kindly cared
-for, having been found in the tall grass nearly dead from exposure and
-starvation. Thus the remaining portion of the family were reunited on
-earth, and it is proper to here draw the curtain and allow them a few
-moments for communion, that the fountain of the heart which had been
-dried up by the awful occurrences of the previous few days might unbidden
-flow. The mother's heart was nearly crushed with the thought of husband
-and child--victims of the ferocious Indians, killed and yet unburied on
-the prairie nearly one hundred miles away; but, mother-like, she rejoiced
-in finding the two children who had wandered so far and through a kind
-Providence escaped so many dangers.
-
-[Illustration: ESCAPE OF THE MISSIONARIES.]
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII.
-
-THE MISSIONARIES--THEIR ESCAPE.
-
-
-A few miles above the Yellow Medicine were the churches and schools of
-the Rev. S. R. Riggs and Dr. Williamson. Both of these gentlemen had long
-been missionaries among the Indians and had gained their confidence; and
-in return had placed the most implicit confidence in them. But these
-good men had been warned to flee for their lives, and they reluctantly
-gathered together a few household treasures, and placing themselves and
-families under the guidance of Providence, started for a place of safety.
-Fort Ridgely was their objective point, but they learned that the place
-was being besieged and that it would be unsafe to proceed further in this
-direction, so turned their weary steps toward Henderson, Minnesota.
-
-With courage braced up, weary in body and anxious in mind, they went
-into camp until the morning. "The pillar of cloud by day, and the pillar
-of fire by night," guided this anxious band through a most trying and
-perilous journey, but they gained the settlement at last and were
-among friends. In leaving their little homes, where they had found so
-much pleasure in the work of the Master, in pointing the Indians to a
-better way of living, they were sorrowful; but, like Abraham of old,
-faithful in their allegiance to God, not daring to question His ways in
-compelling them to turn their backs upon their chosen work--His work.
-The missionaries and teachers formed strong attachments among this dusky
-race. In their communion with them they found them ready and eager to
-converse about the Great Spirit and to learn of the wonderful things
-taught in the Bible. They loved to sing, and the melody of sacred song
-found a responsive chord in their souls as they were gradually emerging
-from their barbarous condition, and coming into the full light of a
-Christian salvation. In conversation with the writer, Mr. Riggs once said
-that as he was passing one of their happy little homes he could hear the
-squaw mother, in her peculiar plaintive tones, singing to her little
-children:
-
- "Jesus Christ, nitowashte kin
- Woptecashni mayaqu"--
- Jesus Christ, Thy Loving Kindness,
- Boundlessly, Thou Givest Me.
-
-She had become a Christian mother through the teachings of the
-missionaries. Her maternal affection was as deep and abiding as in the
-breast of her more favored white sister, and her eye of faith looked
-beyond the stars to the happy hunting ground, where the Greater Spirit
-abides, and with the assurance that some day she and all her race would
-stand with the redeemed in the presence of the Judge of all the worlds.
-The Christian missionary felt for these people as no one else could; and,
-while not trying nor desiring to excuse them for their unholy war against
-the whites, yet they could not persuade themselves to believe that they
-had been justly dealt with by civilized America.
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration: LITTLE PAUL.]
-
-CHAPTER XIV.
-
-THE INDIAN POW-WOW.
-
-
-The Indians of the various tribes of the Upper and Lower Sioux--the
-Sissitons, the Tetons, the Yanktons and the Yanktonnais and other tribes
-held a pow-wow to try and force a conclusion of the war, and some of
-their ablest men, their statesmen, were present, and their views you
-have here verbatim. More decorum prevailed among them, and they were
-more deliberate than is observed in the average white man's convention.
-Little Crow had his supporters present, and a very fluent Yanktonnais
-Sioux traced on the ground a map of the country, showing the course of
-the Missouri River and the locality of the different forts. He marked
-out the mountains, seas and oceans, and stated that an army, great
-in numbers, was coming from across the country to assist them. This
-gave rise to the unfounded rumor referred to in another chapter, that
-emissaries from the South were among them to incite them to war.
-
-John Paul, or Little Paul, was friendly to the whites, and in a speech to
-the Indians at this pow-wow said:
-
-"I am friendly to the whites, and will deliver these women and children
-at Fort Ridgely. I am opposed to the war on the whites. You say you are
-brave men, and can whip the whites. That is a lie--persons who cut women
-and children's throats are not brave. You are squaws and cowards. Fight
-the whites if you want to, but do it like brave men. I am ashamed of the
-way you have acted towards the captives; and, if any of you have the
-feelings of men, you will give them up. You may look fierce at me, but I
-am not afraid of you."
-
-Red Iron, one of the chiefs of the Upper Indians, was not friendly.
-He was one of the principal chiefs of the Sissitons, and at one time
-was so outspoken against the whites that Governor Ramsey, who was then
-Superintendent of Indian Affairs, and was at the agency, had occasion to
-rebuke him in a substantial way--he reduced him to the ranks. In other
-words, he broke him of his chieftianship. This was in December, 1852.
-
-Red Iron was a handsome Indian, an athlete, six feet in his moccasins,
-with a large, well-developed head, aquiline nose, thin lips, but with
-intelligence and resolution beaming all over his countenance.
-
-[Illustration: RED IRON.]
-
-When brought into the presence of Governor Ramsey he walked with a firm,
-lordly tread, and was clad in half military and half Indian costume.
-When he came in he seated himself in silence, which was not broken until
-through an interpreter the Governor asked him what excuse he had to offer
-for not coming to the council when sent for.
-
-Red Iron, when he arose to his feet to reply, did so with a
-Chesterfieldian grace, allowing his blanket to fall from his shoulders,
-and, intentionally dropping his pipe of peace. He stood before the
-Governor for a moment in silence, with his arms folded, his bearing
-betraying perfect self-composure, a defiant smile playing upon his lips.
-In a firm voice he said:
-
-Red Iron--"I started to come, but your braves drove me back."
-
-Governor--"What excuse have you for not coming the second time I sent for
-you?"
-
-Red Iron--"No other excuse than I have already given you."
-
-When the Governor, as Commissioner of Indian Affairs, informed this
-proud chief that, by virtue of his office, he would break him of his
-chieftianship it appealed to his pride, and he said:
-
-"You break me? I was elected chief by my tribe. You can't break me."
-
-The chief, while surrendering to the powers that be, never felt friendly
-to the whites, and during this war of which we write he continued
-stubborn and sullen to the end.
-
-Standing Buffalo, hereditary chief of the Sissitons, was a different
-type, and counselled living in peace, but desired fair treatment and
-honest dealings with his people. He was a handsome Indian, and a man
-of rare ability. General Sibley was anxious to know how he felt on
-the important question agitating the Sioux Nation, and desired his
-co-operation in liberating the captives and compassing the capture of
-Little Crow and his followers. At this Indian convention this noted chief
-said:
-
-[Illustration: STANDING BUFFALO.]
-
-"I am a young man, but I have always felt friendly toward the whites,
-because they were kind to my father. You have brought me into great
-danger without my knowledge of it beforehand. By killing the whites, it
-is just as if you had waited for me in ambush and shot me down. You Lower
-Indians feel bad because we have all got into this trouble; but I feel
-worse, because I know that neither I nor my people have killed any of the
-whites, and that yet we have to suffer with the guilty. I was out buffalo
-hunting when I heard of the outbreak, and I felt as if I was dead, and I
-feel so now. You all know that the Indians cannot live without the aid of
-the white man, and, therefore, I have made up my mind that Paul is right,
-and my Indians will stand by him. We claim this reservation. What are
-you doing here? If you want to fight the whites, go back and fight them.
-Leave my village at Big Stone Lake. You sent word to my young men to come
-down, and that you had plenty of oxen, horses, goods, powder and lead,
-and now we see nothing. We are going back to Big Stone Lake and leave you
-to fight the whites. Those who make peace can say that Standing Buffalo
-and his people will give themselves up in the spring."
-
-They kept their word, and would have nothing to do with Little Crow.
-
-Standing Buffalo was killed in 1863 by an accident.
-
-Other Day, a civilized Indian, in addressing the council at this time,
-said:
-
-"You can, of course, easily kill a few unarmed whites, but it would be a
-cowardly thing to do, because we have gained their confidence, and the
-innocent will suffer with the guilty, and the great Father at Washington
-will send his soldiers to punish you, and we will all suffer. I will not
-join you in this, but will help defend these white people who have always
-been our friends."
-
-Other Day was a true friend of the whites; he looked it. He was a
-full-blood Indian, it is true, and the Indians respected and feared him,
-but his desire to forsake the barbarous teachings of his father inclined
-him towards the unsuspecting settlers.
-
-In 1863 he was General Sibley's most trusted and confidential scout. In
-the early outbreak Other Day manifested his loyalty to his white friends
-by risking his life in their defense, piloting sixty people through the
-river bottoms during the nights to a place of safety. He traveled with
-his charge in the night, and hid them in underbrush during the daytime.
-He was a true-hearted, kind man, with a red skin, who has gone to his
-reward in a land where there are no reds, no blacks, but where all are
-white.
-
-Little Crow, who is one of the principal characters in this narrative,
-was an Indian of no mean ability. He was the commander-in-chief of the
-hostile tribes, and wielded a powerful influence among all the tribes
-of this great Sioux Nation. He was a powerful man, and felt his lordly
-position; was confident of final success, and very defiant at the outset.
-He had a penchant for notoriety in more ways than one. In dress he was
-peculiar, and could nearly always be found with some parts of a white
-man's clothing. He was particularly conspicuous in the style of collar he
-wore; happy in the possession of one of the old-style standing collars,
-such as Daniel Webster and other old-time gentlemen bedecked themselves
-with. He also possessed a black silk neckerchief and a black frock coat,
-and on grand occasions wore both.
-
-He had strongly marked features, and in studying the lineaments of his
-face one would not adjudge him a particularly bad Indian. As we had
-hundreds of these men in our custody, a good opportunity was offered
-while guarding them to try one's gift as a reader of character as stamped
-in the face, but Little Crow proved an enigma. It was like a novice
-trying to separate good money from bad, an unprofitable and unsuccessful
-task. Little Crow said:
-
-"It is impossible to make peace if we so desired. Did we ever do the most
-trifling thing, the whites would hang us. Now, we have been killing them
-by the hundreds in Dakota, Minnesota and Iowa, and I know if they get us
-into their hands they will hang every one of us. As for me, I will kill
-as many of them as I can, and fight them till I die. Do not think you
-will escape. There is not a band of Indians from the Redwood Agency to
-Big Stone Lake that has not had some of its members embroiled in this
-war. I tell you we must fight and perish together. A man is a fool and
-coward who thinks otherwise, and who will desert his nation at such a
-time. Disgrace not yourselves by a surrender to those who will hang you
-up like dogs; but die, if die you must, with arms in your hands, like
-warriors and braves of the Dakotas."
-
-In one of our battles we took some fine-looking bucks prisoners, and the
-soldiers were for scalping them at once, but we had a little "pow-wow"
-with them, and found them intelligent and well educated; they were
-students home on a vacation from Bishop Whipple's school at Faribault,
-Minnesota, and said they were forced, much against their will, to go on
-the warpath; that they had not fired a bullet at the whites; that they
-fired blank cartridges because they felt friendly to the whites, and
-had no desire to kill them. There were three of them; we told them they
-could take their choice--be shot or enlist; they chose the latter, and
-went South with us, staying until the close of the Rebellion, and they
-displayed the courage of the born soldier.
-
-[Illustration: Brevet Major General H. H. Sibley,
-
-Commander in the field in 1862 and 1863 against the Sioux Indians.]
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV.
-
-GOV. SIBLEY APPOINTED COMMANDER.
-
-
-While these scenes which I have related were being enacted in the
-upper country excitement ran high at St. Paul, and for a time the
-great struggle then going on in the South was forgotten. The news of
-the outbreak soon reached St. Paul, and couriers, with horses covered
-with foam, kept coming in one after another, until the officers at Fort
-Snelling were ordered by Governor Ramsey to be in readiness with their
-men to move at a moment's notice, and we did not have long to wait.
-
-The Sixth Minnesota, of which I was a member, had just organized, and
-was assigned to Hancock corps, Army of the Potomac, but the events
-transpiring in the Indian country made it necessary for all available
-troops to go there. When I say that the whole country was seething with
-excitement it is no exaggeration. The towns, big and little, were filled
-with frightened refugees; the rumors that came in were of the most
-frightful nature, and the whole state was clamorous for protection.
-
-Governor Ramsey, in his desire to protect the panic-stricken people and
-liberate the captives, cast about for a suitable commander for this
-important work. Of all the men in and about St. Paul who seemed eminently
-qualified for this position, Governor Henry H. Sibley, who at that time
-was living in quietude in his home in Mendota, just across the river from
-the fort, was his choice.
-
-Governor Henry Hastings Sibley, the hero of these Indian campaigns, was
-born in the city of Detroit February 20, 1811. His sire was Chief Justice
-Solomon Sibley, of Detroit, and his mother was Sarah Whipple Sproat,
-whose father, Colonel Ebenezer Sproat, was an accomplished officer of the
-Continental army, and the granddaughter of Commodore Abraham Whipple, an
-illustrious commander in the Continental navy. He came from a long line
-of illustrious ancestry on both sides, of good Puritan stock, and dating
-his lineage back to the Sibleys of William the Conqueror of England in
-the fifteenth century.
-
-He was not a fighter; his heart was too tender for that, but he felt
-the weighty responsibility he had assumed when he consented to lead
-the soldiers and save the lives of the captives. For delaying he
-was denounced on all hands. The press denounced him for not falling
-immediately upon the Indians; but he knew the enemy better than his
-censors. If he had heeded the behests of the clamorous people not a
-captive would have been spared; but to-day hundreds live to bless him for
-his cautious, conservative movements. Until his death, which occurred
-but a few months since, he lived in his beautiful home in St. Paul; and,
-although a half century of winters in the far Northwest had whitened
-his head, and a great deal more than a half century of time had made
-his limbs tremble, neither time nor frost had sapped the citadel of his
-mind. He was a member of Aker Post, No. 21, Department of Minnesota, and
-the comrades, in deference to his declining years, went in a body to his
-beautiful home where he was mustered in. He lived in peace and plenty,
-surrounded by his family and friends, who esteemed him for his worth.
-He passed away respected and regretted by a host of friends throughout
-the land, who knew him as a citizen and a soldier. I knew him personally
-and intimately since 1857; and in his death, with others great in our
-nation's history, we are reminded that in war the bullet is no respecter
-of rank; the commander and the soldier fall together.
-
-Governor Sibley was commissioned by Governor Ramsey as Colonel of
-Volunteers, and assigned to the command of the expedition. He was
-selected because he had spent many years of his life among the Indians
-as a trader, he spoke their language, he knew them personally, and knew
-their characteristics. He was a man of large experience, education and
-ability, and possessed, withal, a cool head. He knew the Indians, and
-they knew him and respected him. He consented to lead the forces against
-the Indians when appealed to by Governor Ramsey, upon conditions that he
-should not be interfered with by His Excellency, or any one else, and
-that he should have adequate supplies of men, stores and transportation.
-Colonel Sibley, afterwards Brigadier and Brevet Major-General of
-Volunteers, with his staff and Companies A, B, and E, of the Sixth
-Minnesota Infantry, embarked on a small steamer then at anchor near the
-fort, and steamed up the Minnesota river to Shakopee, distant about forty
-miles by water. We started in a furious rain, and after a slow trip up
-the narrow and winding Minnesota, arrived at Shakopee, where we found the
-frightened citizens ready to receive us with open arms, although all the
-firearms we had were worthless and condemned Austrian rifles, without
-ammunition to fit them. All serviceable material of war had been shipped
-to the South. Our first guard duty was on picket in the suburbs of
-Shakopee, and our instructions were to press all teams into the service.
-We felt the gravity of the situation, and obeyed orders to the letter as
-nearly as we, raw recruits, could. While here the news was spread that
-Indians were in the vicinity, and the women and children began to flock
-to the vicinity of the soldiers; the alarm was without foundation. As
-we were stationed on the various roads leading to and from the town,
-the citizens who had been so badly scared seemed to feel comparatively
-safe. The news from the upper country, however, was discouraging, and
-appeals for protection very urgent. We could not move at once from lack
-of transportation, and had no adequate supplies, either of food, arms or
-ammunition, for we had been so hurriedly dispatched from Fort Snelling
-that only about half of one company had been supplied with even the
-worthless muskets spoken of, and the whole command with but two days'
-rations. It was necessary, however, to make some quick demonstration to
-appease the panic-stricken people. After a delay of one day, by various
-routes by land and water, the regiment concentrated at St. Peter, under
-command of Colonel William Crooks, where it was inspected and remained
-four or five days, awaiting the receipt of suitable arms and ammunition
-and also reinforcements.
-
-Our guns were so absolutely worthless that it was necessary to delay
-a little, as the Indians, in large numbers, were then besieging Fort
-Ridgely, and were well armed with Springfield rifles, while our own arms
-were condemned Austrian muskets.
-
-We embarked on a boat at Shakopee and sailed up to Carver, forty miles
-above, and there pressed in teams to carry us through what was known as
-the "Big Woods." It had been raining for days, and the town of Carver
-was literally packed with refugees. There was not an empty building in
-it, even the warehouses were filled, and the muddy streets were a sight
-to behold. The mud was ankle deep, and you may imagine in what condition
-everything was. I cannot describe it.
-
-The frightened people, who had flocked in from all the country round,
-told most woeful tales of Indian atrocities. In some cases they were
-overdrawn, but later on we saw evidences enough to warrant them fleeing
-to a place of safety. There was no safety, however, in coming to these
-small towns, for they were without protection.
-
-After loading up the teams, we started through the "Big Woods," and the
-roads were in such a horrible condition that we made but slow progress.
-However, we had to make Glencoe, twenty-five miles distant, before night
-or camp down in the woods in the mud. It became pitchy dark, but we kept
-on the move, and in time got through the woods and could see the lights
-of Glencoe afar off. This was only a small place, but the twinkling
-lights from the houses were a pleasant sight, and when we arrived there
-the people were glad to see us. We remained over night, and the next day
-started for St. Peter. We could see evidences of Indian devastation in
-every direction, among which were the burning buildings and grain stacks
-on the beautiful neighboring farms.
-
-On the route to St. Peter, which we reached early in the evening, we
-discovered a few dead settlers, and took some families along with us.
-Upon our arrival we went into camp with the rest of the command, and were
-soon placed under strict military discipline, and in a brief time our
-commander, Colonel William Crooks, a West Pointer, brought order out of
-chaos.
-
-Of the preparation and forward march to relieve Fort Ridgely I will
-reserve for another chapter.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI.
-
-MARCH TO FORT RIDGELY.
-
-
-In the interval the companies were drilled and the command otherwise
-prepared to act effectively against the formidable body of hostile
-warriors, who were well armed and plentifully supplied with powder and
-ball. Colonel Sibley, having looked the ground over with a critical
-eye, uninfluenced by the public clamor and fault-finding of the press,
-remained firm in the determination not to take the field until assured
-of success in his operations. He knew the Indians well, and knew it was
-necessary to fight or failure, there would be no adequate barrier to the
-descent of the savages upon St. Paul and Minneapolis, and the desolation
-of the state generally. The Chippewas on the north were known to be in
-secret communication with Little Crow, the head of the Sioux hordes, and
-ready to them cautiously if he would succeed, for, in case of defeat
-co-operate with him if victorious, while the Winnebagoes were also in
-active sympathy with him, for two or three of their warriors were found
-among the dead after the battle of Wood Lake, which occurred later on.
-Arms, ammunition and supplies arriving, we took up the line of march for
-Fort Ridgely, which was then in a state of siege. Our advent at the Fort
-was hailed with delight, for the little garrison was pretty well tired
-out with the fighting and watching that they had had on their hands for
-the eight days previous. Barricades had been erected at all weak points,
-but the Indians so far outnumbered the soldiers that they approached near
-enough to fire the wooden buildings of the fort proper in many places.
-
-Our march to Fort Ridgely was the first we had made as an entire
-organization, and under an able commanding officer we profited by it. On
-the way we found the dead body of a colored man from St. Paul by the name
-of Taylor. He was a barber by trade, but also quite a noted gambler, and
-had been up to the agency to get his share of the money when the Indians
-got their pay.
-
-He played one game too many, and lost--his life.
-
-Before we reached the Fort the Indians took alarm and sullenly retreated
-upon our approach, after having done all possible damage to men and
-property. As we entered, the brave little garrison accompanied by the
-women and children turned out to greet us, and a right joyous time we
-had. A detachment of thirty men of the Fifth Minnesota, under Captain
-Marsh, the commander of the fort, upon receipt of news of the outbreak,
-had marched in the direction of the Lower Sioux Agency, distant a few
-miles. The Indians, perceiving the advance of this small detachment,
-placed themselves in ambush in the long grass at the crossing of the
-Minnesota River and awaited the oncoming of their unsuspecting victims,
-and, when in the toils, they opened a terrific fire upon them, which
-destroyed almost the entire party.
-
-Colonel Sibley hurried forward supplies and ammunition for an extensive
-campaign, for, from his knowledge of the Indians, he knew it was no boy's
-play. The moving spirit among the hostiles was Little Crow, a wily old
-chief, without principle, but active and influential. He had harangued
-his people into the belief that the fight going on among the whites in
-the South had drawn off all the able-bodied men, leaving none but old
-men, women and children. "Now," he said, "is the time to strike for
-Minnesota. These fertile fields, stolen from us, are ours; the buffalo
-are gone; we have no food, and our women and children are starving. Let
-the warriors assemble in war paint and drive the pale-faces from the
-face of the earth!" He told his people they could pitch their wigwams
-the coming winter in St. Paul and hold high carnival in the legislative
-halls. So widespread had the alarm became that it reached St. Paul and
-Minneapolis, and "minute men" were on duty on the bluffs adjacent for
-several days. In addition to the Sioux, the Chippewas and Winnebagoes
-were becoming very restless, and this caused additional uneasiness in the
-two cities.
-
-Colonel Sibley, upon his arrival of the fort, sent out scouts to
-ascertain the whereabouts of the Indians. The news they brought was that
-a large camp of hostiles was located above the Yellow Medicine, where
-they held as captives about four hundred white women and children, and
-one white man. They also reported that the Indians were preparing to make
-a raid on the small towns below the fort.
-
-It was also known that a large number of citizens who had been killed
-near the agency were yet unburied, and the fate of Captain Marsh and his
-men was in doubt. To this end a small command was organized, as narrated
-in another chapter, to go out to bury the dead and relieve Captain Marsh
-and his men if they were found alive.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII.
-
-BURIAL OF CAPT. MARSH AND MEN.
-
-
-Company "A," of the Sixth Minnesota, together with two men each from
-the other companies, were detailed to accompany a burial party, with
-instructions to properly bury all bodies found, and, if possible,
-ascertain the fate of Captain Marsh and his thirty men, who had gone out
-to intercept the Indians at the Redwood Crossing. In addition to this
-detail we had a small detachment of citizen cavalry, under Captain Joe
-Anderson, to act as scouts.
-
-Our little command numbered, all told, 153--infantry, cavalry and
-teamsters--and ninety-six horses, including twenty teams taken along
-to carry camp and garrison equipage, rations and ammunition, and to
-transport our wounded, either soldiers or citizens. The expedition was
-under the immediate command of Captain H. P. Grant, of Company A. Major
-Joseph R. Brown, better known as "Old Joe Brown," was in charge of the
-scouts. He had a cool head, but no fighting qualities; had been an Indian
-trader for many years, raised an Indian family, and knew a great deal
-about Indian signs and customs. In this particular case, however, the
-Indians fooled Joe. The first day out we found and buried about fifty
-citizens, and at night went into camp in the river bottom near Redwood
-Crossing. The night was dark and dismal, and particularly sad to us who
-had been gathering up the dead all day long. The instructions to the
-guard by Captain Anderson were of a very solemn nature, in view of the
-surroundings and the probable fighting ahead. This, together with the
-stillness of the night and the impression that a lurking foe was near,
-made the boys feel rather uncomfortable.
-
-[Illustration: DR. WILLIAMSON'S HOUSE.]
-
-Deep sleep settled upon the camp, but the sentinels maintained a vigilant
-watch, however, and the night slowly passed without incident. After
-reveille the next morning we found Captain Marsh and his comrades, but
-not one of them answered to "roll-call." We found the captain's body and
-those of a few of his men in the river, and the rest of the bodies in the
-thicket on the river bank, where they had evidently been hemmed in and
-fired upon from all sides. Nearly all had been scalped, and were minus
-guns and ammunition, for these had been confiscated by the redskins. We
-buried the soldiers side by side, with their captain at their head, and
-marked the place by a huge cross, so that the bodies might be easily
-found and removed, which was subsequently done, when they were finally
-buried in the Soldiers' cemetery at Fort Ridgely. After this last service
-to our dead comrades, we took up the line of march, leaving the bottom
-lands for the prairie above, and it was when passing over the bluff that
-a large body of Indians, who were on their way to capture Saint Peter and
-Mankato, espied us. What was our subsequent loss was the gain of the two
-towns mentioned. Our scouts had crossed the river, making a detour to the
-south, and thus missed making the acquaintance of our enemies, who had
-their eyes on us.
-
-We went into camp the second night near Birch Coolie, and sixteen miles
-distant from Fort Ridgely, about 5 p. m., well tired out with our day's
-march. Birch Coolie is a deep gorge running north and south in Redwood
-county, Minnesota. What was then a bleak prairie is now a beautiful
-farming community, and Birch Coolie a thriving village.
-
-From information gathered by the scouts we felt comparatively safe.
-
-[Illustration: "Chickens for Supper."]
-
-Old Joe said: "Boys, go to sleep now and rest; you are as safe as you
-would be in your mother's house; there is not an Indian within fifty
-miles of you." At that very moment five hundred Indians were in the
-immediate vicinity watching us and impatient for the ball to open, as
-they intended it should at the proper time, which, with the Indian, is
-about four o'clock in the morning.
-
-After our supper on chicken stew, song-singing and story-telling, we
-turned in, well tired out and in a condition to enjoy a good night's
-sleep and dreams of home.
-
-The night was warm, the sky clear, with the stars shining brightly, and
-a full moon in all her glory. It was a beautiful night--too beautiful
-to witness the scene that was so soon to follow. The guard had been
-stationed and cautioned to be on the alert for strange sounds; "tattoo,"
-"roll-call," "taps," sounded, and the little camp was silent. The low hum
-of voices became less and less as slumber came to the weary soldiers, and
-all that could be heard was the occasional challenge of the guard: "Halt!
-who comes there!" as he was being approached by the officer of the guard.
-
-Soon the soldiers slept, little dreaming that the lurking enemy and death
-were so near. The awakening to some was in eternity.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII.
-
-BATTLE OF BIRCH COOLIE.
-
-
-The battle of Birch Coolie was fought September 2 and 3, 1862. It has
-never taken its proper place in history, but with the exception of the
-massacre at the Little Big Horn, in 1876, it was the hottest and the
-most desperate battle fought during the war of the Rebellion or any of
-our Indian wars. In comparison to the number of men and horses engaged,
-I know of no conflict, the one above referred to excepted, where the
-casualties were as great as they were here.
-
-The Indian custom is to make an attack about four o'clock in the morning,
-so this relief had been especially cautioned, and soon after the guard
-was placed one of them thought he saw something moving in the grass. It
-proved to be an Indian, and they were slowly moving in upon us, their
-intention being to shoot the pickets with arrows, and as noiselessly as
-possible rush in and destroy us in our confusion. The sentinel fired at
-the moving object, and instantly our camp was encircled by fire and smoke
-from the guns of five hundred Indians, who had hemmed us in. The guard
-who fired escaped the bullet intended for him. He said he thought the
-moving object in the grass might be a hog or it might be an Indian, and,
-hog or Indian, he intended to kill it if he could. The fire was returned
-by the pickets as they retreated to the camp, and although there
-necessarily was confusion, there was no panic. Quicker than I can write
-we were out, musket in hand, but the captain's command to "fall down"
-was mistaken for "fall in," which makes a vast difference under such
-circumstances. We soon broke for the wagons, however, which were formed
-in a circle about our tents, and this afforded us some little shelter.
-
-As this was our baptismal fire, and a most important engagement, I devote
-more space to it than I otherwise would. What an experience it was to
-inexperienced, peaceable, unsuspecting men! Think of being awakened out
-of a blissful sleep by the fire from five hundred Indian rifles--it is a
-wonder that we were not all destroyed amid the confusion that naturally
-would follow; but we had cool heads among us, and none were cooler than
-Old Joe Brown and Captain H. P. Grant, of Company A, who was in immediate
-command. I will here refer to two others. First, Mr. William H. Grant, a
-lawyer of St. Paul, who still lives in Minnesota. He went out to see the
-fun. Well, he saw it, and the "trial" was a severe one. He "objected" and
-"took exceptions" to everything the Indians did.
-
-He wore a black plug hat, and this was a good mark for the redskins;
-they shot it off his head twice, and it was finally lost altogether.
-"Bill" was cool; he did not lose his temper, but laid down very flat on
-the ground and gave directions to those about him how to shoot to kill.
-We afterward voted him in as a brevet private, and were always ready
-to divide grub and "shake." Postmaster Ed. Patch, of St. Anthony, was
-another of our citizen escorts. He was a jolly good fellow and "cool as
-a cucumber," with a bay window on him like an overgrown bass drum. He
-found this excess of stomach very much in the way, in his great desire to
-hug mother earth and get out of range of the Indian bullets, and looked
-as if he wished he had never been born, or that he had been a disciple of
-anti-fat.
-
-One of our little thin fellows was lying down alongside of "Ed," and I'll
-never forget the expression of his face when he said: "God, bub, I wish I
-was as little as you be."
-
-The camp was miserably located, being commanded by the deep ravine on
-one side and by a mound on the other, so that the savages were well
-sheltered from our fire. Had the instructions given by Colonel Sibley
-been followed, which were always to encamp in open and level prairie,
-there would have been no such destruction of valuable lives, but the
-spot was chosen for our camp because it was near wood and water, and the
-Indians were supposed to be fifty miles away. It was a mistake, which we
-discovered after it was too late. A brisk fire was opened by the boys,
-and soon the cartridge boxes were being depleted. Ammunition was called
-for, and upon opening a box, to our dismay we found it to be of too large
-a calibre. Other boxes were opened with a like result. In loading up
-our ammunition a mistake had been made, and we found ourselves in this
-unfortunate dilemma; but no time was to be lost, as we had not more than
-an average of twenty rounds to the man, and a hoard of savages about us
-who seemed well supplied with powder and ball.
-
-We went to work cutting the large bullets down with our knives, but this
-was a slow and unsatisfactory process. We used the powder from these
-large cartridges to load our guns with, putting in an extra amount, so
-that when we fired these blanks they made a great noise, and thus kept
-up a successful "bluff," though doing no damage. A dead silence would
-ensue, and occasionally some of our best shots picked off a more daring
-redskin simply to remind them that we were awake. We had but one shovel
-and one pick; there were others in some of the wagons, or they had been
-thrown out in the grass and could not be found. The captain offered $5
-apiece for them, but the bullets were too thick to admit of a search, so
-we used jack-knives, spoons and bayonets to dig our intrenchments with.
-In time we had very good pits dug, and with the assistance of the dead
-bodies of our horses had ourselves tolerably well protected.
-
-With the wounded horses rearing and plunging, the men groaning and
-calling for help, the hurried commands, and the unearthly yells of the
-five hundred red devils about us, this baptismal fire was trying to the
-souls of raw recruits, as most of us were. We were encircled by fire and
-smoke, the bullets were doing their deadly work, and it really seemed as
-though no man could escape death. Our orders were: "Load and fire, but
-steady, boys, and give them hail Columbia!"
-
-Upon the first fire of the Indians two men fled from the camp, one a
-citizen, who was with us, and the other a soldier. The citizen we found
-afterward on the prairie, dead. He was the last of his family, for we
-had buried his wife and two children just the previous day, before going
-into camp. The soldier, a Swede, returned, but he was so paralyzed with
-fear that he was like a dead man during all this memorable thirty-six
-hours, and the poor fellow afterward succumbed to sickness. Everything
-was improvised for a barricade--camp kettles, knapsacks, wagon-seats,
-etc., and it was done in a hurry, for hot work was on our hands. The
-word soon went the rounds: "College is dead, Irvine is dead, Baxter,
-Coulter, Benecke, King and a score of others are dead, and nearly all are
-wounded." It was only a few minutes after the first fire when we realized
-all this, and it verily looked as though the little command would be
-wiped out of existence. If a head was shown fifty Indians leveled at
-it. During all this terrible fire Old Joe Brown walked about seemingly
-unconcerned, until a bullet went through the back of his neck. He came to
-the ground as quick as if shot through the heart, for it was a bad wound,
-but with it all he continued to give instructions. Nearly all the damage
-was done before ten o'clock, for up to that time we found ourselves with
-sixty killed and wounded, out of 155, and ninety-five horses dead, out of
-ninety-six. The horses saved our little encampment. As soon as they fell
-their bodies formed a good barricade for us, and this and the overturned
-wagons were our only protection. The Indians, occupying higher ground
-than we did, had us at a disadvantage. The day wore on, and all we could
-do was to assist Surgeon J. W. Daniels with the wounded and keep the
-Indians at bay. Dr. Daniels proved himself a cool-headed, brave man,
-never flinching for a moment. Where duty called he was found, and he
-immortalized himself with the boys. The great fear of the wounded seemed
-to be that we would be obliged to abandon them to their fate, for the sun
-was extremely hot and the camp had become very offensive from the smell
-of decomposing bodies of horses; besides, we had no means of transporting
-the wounded, and their fears were not without foundation, for it looked
-as though we would be driven by necessity from the camp. We assured and
-reassured them that if we went they would go, too. If we died it would be
-in defending them as well as ourselves.
-
-The one thing, aside from cowardice on the part of the Indians, that
-saved us from assault was the fact of our having several half-breed
-scouts with us, who talked back and forth.
-
-The Indians said: "Come out from the pale-faces; we do not want to kill
-you, but we want all their scalps."
-
-Private James Auge of our company was the spokesman. He was a Canadian
-Frenchman, but had lived among the Indians, knew them well, and spoke
-their language, and as he went so would all the other Indians and
-half-breeds who were with us.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX.
-
-BIRCH COOLIE CONTINUED.
-
-
-On the second day, at about sunrise, we discovered a large body of
-Indians closing up nearer to us, when one of their number, probably
-Little Crow's brother, came within twenty rods of us. He was on a white
-horse, and carried a flag of truce. He held a conversation with Auge, our
-interpreter, and tried to persuade him to leave us and bring the other
-half-breeds with him. When the conversation was interpreted to Captain
-Grant, he said: "Well, Auge, what do you fellows intend to do, go with
-the Indians or stay with us?" Auge replied:
-
-"Captain Grant, we want nothing to do with these Indians; we will stand
-by you and fight as long as there is a man left, and I will now tell them
-so." He did call to them, and said:
-
-"We won't come over to you; we will stay with the soldiers, and if you
-come we will kill you if we can. You are cowards to kill poor women and
-children, and if we catch you we will treat you as you treated them."
-
-We felt relieved to know that our half-breeds were loyal. Auge, after
-this, was Corporal Auge, and he went all through the South with us,
-making a splendid soldier. I shall have occasion to refer to him in
-another place in this chapter.
-
-[Illustration: Designed by A. P. Connolly.
-
-Battle of Birch Coolie. Minn.
-
-Fought September 2nd and 3d, 1862. Ninety-five horses lay dead within the
-camp; 60 men killed and wounded; 500 Indians were under cover in the tall
-grass, and concentrated their fire on the camp.]
-
-Captain Grant told Auge to say to them that we had two hundred fighting
-men and plenty of ammunition, and that Little Crow and all his dirty
-Indians could not take us, and for him to get out with his flag of truce.
-
-It was a game of bluff, for at that time we only had about sixty-five
-effective men, and were nearly out of ammunition.
-
-We did not know whether we could trust the half-breeds or not, and were
-instructed to fire on them to kill if they made the slightest move to
-desert us. Our firing had been heard at Fort Ridgely, sixteen miles away,
-and the Colonel dispatched two hundred and fifty men, with one howitzer,
-to our relief.
-
-Just at sunset the second day we saw two horsemen come to the edge of
-the woods across the Coolie, but the Indians also saw them, and chased
-them back. They returned to their command and reported a large body
-of Indians, and said they saw a small camp with the stars and stripes
-flying, but as they had no field glass, could not make it out. Colonel
-McPhail, who was in command of this relief, ordered the howitzer to
-be fired to give us courage, if the little camp proved to be ours. A
-shout went up at this welcome sound just as the sun went down. Old Joe
-Brown, who had been disabled early in the day, called out from his tent:
-"Captain Grant, instruct the men to be watchful; we are in a bad fix;
-the Indians will hate to lose our scalps, now that they are so near
-their grasp; give them a few shots occasionally, assure the wounded men
-that we will not leave them, and keep the pick and shovel busy." We
-disposed of ourselves for the night as best we could. Every man was on
-guard, and nearly all had two rifles fully charged and bayonets fixed.
-We clasped our rifles, looked up into the starry heavens, and, asking
-God's protection, swore not to yield an inch. We made this demonstration
-to encourage the wounded men, who seemed fearful that something more
-terrible was in store for them. The prayers and groans of the wounded
-and the awful silence of the dead inspired us to do our whole duty. The
-watch-word, "wide-awake," went the rounds every few minutes, and there
-was "no sleep to the eye nor slumber to the eye-lids," during all that
-live-long night.
-
-Out of our ninety-six horses we had but one left. This was a splendid
-animal, and had thus far escaped without a scratch. He was feeding about
-the camp, unmindful of the fate of his fellows.
-
-The picture of Birch Coolie is an exact reproduction of the situation.
-The ninety-five dead horses were all within the enclosure, and the one
-who escaped for the time is grazing among them.
-
-Just before midnight the clouds began to gather, and we felt cheered to
-think we would soon have rain. We were sorely in need of water, for we
-had not tasted a drop since the night before, and the wounded men were
-nearly famished with thirst and burning with fever. As the sky darkened
-Captain Grant called for a volunteer to go to Fort Ridgely for relief.
-Corporal James Auge volunteered to go, and by this act proved himself
-a truly brave man, and if it had been successfully carried out would
-have gained for him a commission at no very distant day. The fact of its
-not being carried out was no fault of his, and, in the abandonment of
-the trial, he was declared not the less brave by all his comrades, who
-trembled for him while he was preparing to make the perilous journey.
-The night was cloudy, and he being conversant with Indian methods and
-well posted in the topography of the country, could be successful in
-getting through the Indian's lines, if anybody could; but the chances
-were ten to one against the success of the undertaking.
-
-The horse was saddled and the Corporal had his instructions. He had his
-foot in the stirrup when the clouds rolled back from the full moon like
-the rolling back of a scroll, and it was almost as light as noon-day. The
-Indians, ever on the alert, saw the preparations and opened fire anew
-upon us, and, long before they ceased, our good horse was pierced by six
-bullets, and the project was abandoned--we could only wait anxiously for
-results. The enemy did not allow us to wait long, for at four o'clock
-they opened a terrific fire, which they kept up for an hour. The only
-response they got from us was blank cartridges, but we made a great noise
-with them, and it answered the purpose very well. We had ourselves so
-well protected that in this fusillade they killed but one man and wounded
-another.
-
-The early morning dawn and heavy, dewy atmosphere found our eyes heavy
-from loss of sleep, so we divided up and some slept while others watched.
-We heard nothing of the detachment, and as the day advanced the Indians
-became bolder. They had driven the relief back and were closing in upon
-us, and we, having so little ammunition, could do them but little harm.
-They were puzzled at our silence. Some of the chiefs said it was a trick,
-others said we were all killed. At any rate, with them "discretion was
-the better part of valor," and we didn't object.
-
-About one o'clock the same day we descried the glimmer of the polished
-rifle in the distance. We had no glass, but anxious eyes strained to see
-what it was, and the dark outline of a moving mass told us reinforcements
-were coming. The chiefs, by waving their blankets and shouts, called off
-their warriors. "There's a mile of whites coming," they said. They waved
-their tomahawks, shouted, fired, and finally galloped off on the prairie.
-
-A few warriors more daring than the others remained behind for a time
-to get a scalp, and some of them came so close we could readily discern
-their war paint. Before the main body of the Indians left, however, they
-rode very close, and gave us several parting volleys. The wounding of a
-few of our men was all the damage they did at this time.
-
-Right joyful were we when the reinforcements arrived. Our camp had been
-formed by driving twenty teams in a circle, and it can readily be seen
-that it was not large. It was about as large as an ordinary circus
-tent, and inside of this we had our horses, men and tents. After the
-battle the sight was a sickening one, for with sixty dead and wounded
-men and ninety-five horses in such a small space, and all the confusion
-arising out of such a siege it was enough to appall the stoutest heart.
-Strong men, when they beheld the sight, wept like children. It was our
-baptismal fire, and the horror seemed greater to us. Our men, whose
-nerves had been on a tension so long and bodies exhausted for want of
-food, water and sleep, when the relief came, fell down and slept. Colonel
-Sibley was the first to arrive, and when he rode up to our barricade,
-and saw the terrible loss of life he looked as though he had lost his
-best friends. His heart bled at the sight, and the tears he shed spoke
-volumes. A detail was at once made to bury the dead side by side in a
-temporary grave, dinner was cooked for the remainder of the command
-and the wounded were put in ambulances, tents were "struck," and we
-took up the line of march for Fort Ridgely, which we reached sometime
-during the night. Our tents had been so completely riddled with bullets
-that they were condemned as useless, and were finally sent down to Fort
-Snelling and placed on exhibition for a long time. One of them had 375
-bullet holes in it, and when the people looked at them they wondered
-that any man escaped. The narrow escapes were almost miraculous, and
-congratulations were frequently in order. It was not every man for
-himself, but a strong fellow-feeling sprang up among us that forever
-afterwards cemented our hearts. We shared our shelter and encouraged one
-another, and no man shrank from duty. We had determined to die together,
-and if ever soldiers stood shoulder to shoulder we did on this bloody
-spot, where our nerves and courage were taxed to the utmost. Company A,
-so nearly wiped out, was ever afterwards considered the "Old Ironsides"
-of the regiment.
-
-Before we left, Colonel Sibley addressed a note to Little Crow, and
-placing it on a stick stuck it in the ground so he might find it when he
-would visit the battle ground, as he surely would do as soon as we were
-out of the way. The note was as follows:
-
- "If Little Crow has any proposition to make let him send a half-breed
- to me and he shall be protected in and out of my camp.
-
- H. H. Sibley,
- Colonel Commanding Military Expedition."
-
-To specify the remarkable escapes would unduly lengthen this chapter,
-but, as near as my recollection serves me, no man entirely escaped. I'll
-specify two--one an escape and the other an incident. Lieutenant Swan,
-of the Third Minnesota, now a lawyer of Sioux City, Iowa, was with us on
-this picnic. He was not ordered to go, neither was he detailed, but he
-simply went, and he had a very narrow escape. During the sharp firing,
-and after we had some shallow pits dug, this officer was in one as far as
-his long legs would admit. He had a fine gold watch in his fob pocket,
-and one of the boys asked him the time of day. He undoubled as well as
-he could and got out his watch, but in returning it put it in his vest
-pocket instead of the fob. It was no sooner in his pocket than an Indian
-bullet struck it squarely in the center. The concussion knocked the
-lieutenant over, but the watch saved his life. He keeps it as a valued
-souvenir of the occasion.
-
-The incident relates to Private James Leyde, of Company A, of the Sixth.
-He was a little fellow who could march longer and eat oftener than any
-youngster of his size I ever saw. Jimmy was a splendid soldier, always
-ready for drill or guard, and never forgot his manners when he met a
-"shoulder-straps." He was a pious little fellow, too, and carried a Bible
-his mother gave him.
-
-Well, "after the battle" Jimmy was looking over the wreck with his
-comrade, Billy Caine, and in taking up his Bible found a bullet embedded
-in it. "Hello, Billy, my Bible got struck!" The ball had gone through
-Genesis, Exodus and Leviticus, until it stopped half way through
-Deuteronomy. Jimmy says: "God, Billy, it didn't get through Deuteronomy
-anyway!"
-
-There were many close calls, and it really seemed remarkable that so many
-could escape. I could specify scores, but it is not necessary.
-
-Among the incidents on the march before we arrived at Birch Coolie I
-might mention the finding of a wounded woman by the roadside. She had
-been without food or water for twelve days, and was the only one of a
-large party supposed to have been murdered. She did not escape uninjured,
-however, for the surgeon took fourteen buckshot from her back. During
-our thirty-six hours' siege this poor woman remained in the wagon where
-she had been placed the first day, and spent her time in praying for
-our deliverance. She sustained a broken wrist in addition to her other
-wounds, but after we got to the fort she was among her own people and
-soon fully recovered to tell the tale of her twelve days' wanderings and
-her marvelous escape.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX.
-
-BATTLE OF WOOD LAKE.
-
-
-At this juncture the press and people were clamoring for Colonel Sibley's
-removal because of his delay and, as they claimed--lack of energy and
-judgment. He lacked in neither, for he knew the foe he had to deal with,
-and if he had heeded the behests of the press and people, so far away,
-not a woman or child of the captives would have escaped. However, he
-dispatched Col. William Crooks to St. Paul to explain the situation in
-detail to Governor Ramsey and satisfy the clamorous press that they knew
-but little of the situation as it existed at the seat of the Sioux war.
-
-After our return to Fort Ridgely and a few more days of preparation, the
-command was put in splendid marching condition, and "forward" was the
-word for the rescuing of the captives and if possible the capture of the
-renegades. We met the Indians next at Wood Lake and had a sharp battle
-with them early in the morning. They had come down in force to annihilate
-us, but we were glad to meet them in broad day light on the open prairie
-and receive them with "open arms to hospitable graves." We were just
-up from a good night's sleep and had partaken of a generous supply of
-Old Java and "hard tack," and felt abundantly able to defend ourselves.
-Besides we were veterans now, for we had profited by our baptismal fire
-and had an old score to settle with "Mr. Injun," and we settled to our
-entire satisfaction.
-
-[Illustration: Designed by A. P. Connolly.
-
-Battle of Wood Lake, Minn.
-
-Fought September 23d, in which the Indians were defeated.]
-
-Our sappers had gone out to repair a bridge that had been burned, and the
-temptation was too great for some of the younger warriors. The plan of
-the Indians was to surprise us as we were crossing the river--to divide
-our attention by having a small body in the rear and one in front, and
-then the main body to spring from their ambush, and in our confusion to
-destroy us; but the young bucks, when they saw a few of our men, wanted
-their scalps so bad they opened fire. The "long roll" was sounded, and
-we stood to arms. Little Crow knew that Colonel Sibley was aware of his
-tactics, and was determined to remove him if he could by detailing about
-eighty of his best warriors to do the work, and at this battle of Wood
-Lake they tried hard to reach him, but he was too watchful to be caught
-napping. A detachment of the Third Minnesota, under Major Welch, and
-the Renville Rangers charged upon the Indians in one direction, and the
-Seventh Minnesota, in command of Col. William R. Marshall, in another,
-while the battery, under command of Captain Mark Hendricks, did effective
-work also. The Sixth Minnesota, under command of Colonel William Crooks,
-routed the Indians from a deep ravine on the right flank of our camp and
-probably saved Colonel Sibley from being captured by the picked men sent
-out for that purpose by Little Crow.
-
-The conflict lasted more than two hours and was decisive. The Indians
-offered to surrender if Colonel Sibley would promise them immunity from
-punishment, but this was sternly refused. They fled in dismay, not being
-permitted to take their dead and wounded from the field. So confident
-were they of success that they had brought their women and teams to take
-back the pillage after the Indians had loaded themselves with glory and
-scalps--but presto, change; they got no glory and lost their scalps.
-
-The soldiers had not forgotten Birch Coolie quite so soon and took great
-pleasure in procuring Indian scalps for trophies.
-
-"Other Day," who guided a large party in escaping the massacre, seemed
-to have a charmed life, and a little incident here, in which he is the
-chief figure, will not be amiss. "Other Day," the same as other scouts,
-wore United States clothing. The day before the Wood Lake battle he was
-out scouting, and coming to a house turned his pony out to graze and lay
-down to take a noon-day nap. An Indian espied the pony and wanted it.
-He stealthily came up to the sleeping "Other Day," and putting up some
-kind of a sign so he might know a brother Indian had his pony, he rode
-off with the animal. "Other Day," considerably crestfallen, came back to
-headquarters and reported his loss and the manner of it. The Colonel and
-his staff had a hearty laugh at his expense, which rather offended his
-Indian sensitiveness. "Never mind," says he, "me get two for one."
-
-Early next morning "Other Day" put on his Indian toggery, paint, feathers
-and all, and as the Indians hove in sight the morning of the Wood Lake
-battle, he started out on his pony hunt. Our men espied him across the
-ravine, and thinking him a hostile opened fire on him. His blanket was
-perforated with bullets, even the feathers in his hair were shot off, and
-yet no harm came to him. After the battle he came in with two ponies,
-and reporting to the Colonel, laughingly said: "Me got two for one."
-His wonderful escape was the talk of the camp, and the Colonel had an
-order issued prohibiting any one attached to the command, in the future,
-wearing anything but the United States regulation uniform.
-
-The battle was a very decisive one and very discouraging to the Indians,
-who suffered a loss of 175 in killed and wounded, while our loss was
-fifty-seven killed and wounded. The engagement lasted two hours, and
-after the dead were gathered up and buried and the wounded cared for
-the column was again ready to move. This battle developed the fact that
-the Indian forces resisting our advance were composed in part of the
-Medawakantons and Wahpekutas of the Lower and Wahpetons and Sissetons
-of the Upper Sioux and Winnebagoes, half-breeds and deserters from the
-Renville Rangers.
-
-The utmost solicitude was expressed for the safety of the white
-prisoners, who knew that the Indians had gone down to fight the soldiers.
-They knew the temper of the squaws especially and feared the results of
-the battle. They heard the firing of the howitzer away in the distance,
-and by noon squaws began to arrive and in a most unhappy mood.
-
-It was immediately after the battle of Wood Lake that General Pope wrote
-to General Halleck as follows;
-
-"You do not seem to be aware of the extent of the Indian outbreak. The
-Sioux, 2,600 warriors, are assembled at the Upper Agency to give battle
-to Colonel Sibley, who is advancing with 1,600 men and five pieces of
-artillery. Three hundred and over of women and children are captives in
-their hands. Cannot the paroled officers and men of the rifle regiment
-(dragoons) now in Michigan be sent here?"
-
-The stay-at-homes, who were loudest in their complaints, were raising the
-cry, "On to Richmond," on the one hand, and then again, "On to Little
-Crow" on the other. Colonel Sibley stood like a man of iron against these
-impatient behests. The "howlers" were not heeded, and in the liberation
-of the captives he gained the gratitude of the nation and a merited
-promotion.
-
-The friendly chiefs who had determined at all hazards to protect the
-defenseless women and children redoubled their vigilance during the
-night; because they, too, knew the temper of a vanquished Sioux warrior.
-The position of these poor creatures was truly pitiable.
-
-No less than four different councils were convoked, the Upper Indians
-arrayed, in a measure, against the Lower, and a quarrel ensued. Little
-Paul, Red Iron, Standing Buffalo, Chaska and a hundred Sissetons
-determined to fight Little Crow himself should any attempt be made to
-massacre the captives or place them in front at the coming battle. The
-hostiles began to fear that judgment was near, and it compelled Little
-Crow to assume a spirit of bravado not at all in consonance with his
-feelings.
-
-[Illustration: INDIAN CAMP TAKEN BY COLONEL SIBLEY.]
-
-Colonel Sibley, when he came in sight of the hostile camp, did not do
-as the majority of the soldiers thought he ought; viz., march up and
-at once surround the camp. This is where his coolness and knowledge of
-the Indians served him so good a purpose. He knew if he attempted such
-a course that the renegade Indians in the camp would at once take the
-alarm and run away, and that probably before they did go they would
-attempt to take the prisoners with them, and failing in this would kill
-them outright. He was informed of this by one of the scouts and at once
-concluded to adopt but one course, to go into camp and pay no attention
-to them and thus disarm them of any fear as to his real intention. While
-the Colonel did this, and apparently intended to leave them alone, he
-was informing himself of the condition of affairs in the Indian camp. He
-learned that several of the worst bands had gone farther up north, and he
-sent word to them to return and they should not be harmed. Several bands
-did come back, but there were those who did not, and after the scouts had
-located them, companies of soldiers were sent out to make their capture.
-In this way they all came back or were captured and compelled to come,
-excepting Little Crow and his immediate followers.
-
-At Camp Release we attended to guard mount, company and battalion drill,
-and all other duties incident to a soldier's life. It became necessary to
-make a concerted move against the Indian camp in our immediate vicinity
-and relieve the white prisoners, and the orders were received one night
-for all the infantry to turn out at twelve midnight. It was to be done
-noiselessly, and the instructions were so given. The whole command
-marched out in single file until the Indian camp was surrounded, and then
-we were ordered to close in. After this was done we received orders to
-lie down and to remain until daylight, when, at the sound of reveille, we
-were to rise up. The Indians, hearing the early bugle call so near them,
-flocked out to see what it was and found themselves prisoners.
-
-Negotiations at once commenced for the unconditional surrender of
-the white prisoners, and the object about which General Sibley was
-so solicitous was accomplished. He knew that he could not attack the
-hostiles in the friendly camp without endangering the lives of the
-captives, and that the best policy was to appear indifferent about their
-presence and thus disarm them of fear. The plan worked admirably, and the
-game was successfully bagged.
-
-[Illustration: OTHER DAY.]
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXI.
-
-CAMP RELEASE.
-
-
-Among the attractive and cultivated women found among the prisoners was
-a Miss Mattie Williams, of Painesville, Ohio, who at the time of the
-outbreak was living with an uncle on the Yellow Medicine River. They
-had been surprised by the Indians without a moment's warning, and of
-course, in their hurry, had no time to plan for an escape; but each
-sought safety as best they could and became separated. Miss Williams, in
-her wanderings, was picked up by a Mr. Patwell, who was escaping with a
-German girl, who also was fleeing. They were overtaken by the Indians,
-Mr. Patwell was killed, the German girl so wounded that she died, and
-Miss Williams herself, wounded in the shoulder, was alone with her Indian
-captors, who imposed upon her all the indignities born of their hellish
-desires. For forty days she suffered as no human mind can imagine, forty
-anxious days and sleepless nights in a dirty, smoke-begrimed, leaky tent,
-clad in Indian costume and obliged to submit to savage passion. But the
-angels listened and the day of deliverance drew near. The women of this
-camp were all of one mind--in accord they prayed that deliverance should
-come, and that the guiding hand should be directed by a clear head. As
-Moses was preserved in the bulrushes and found by Pharaoh's daughter and
-educated for a purpose--to lead the children of Israel from out the land
-of bondage and through the Red Sea to the wilderness and the promised
-land--so, too, was Colonel Sibley raised up to frustrate the designs of
-the Indians and liberate these women and children.
-
-On the night of September 25th our heroine, wrapped in her Indian
-blanket, laid herself down, not to pleasant dreams, but to blissful
-waking visions of release. Nor was she alone in her night vigils; other
-hearts, burdened and borne down with unutterable anguish, petitioned God
-to so direct the soldiers who were on the way, that their release might
-be sure. The soldiers are coming, and are these weary, anxious, fearful
-days and nights to end? At the first dawning of the day, September 26th,
-the Indian camp was astir and preparations made to receive distinguished
-guests. And who were these guests? Colonel Sibley, the big white chief,
-and his staff. Extra paint, paint of every hue, and beads, together with
-eagle feathers and white flags, were conspicuous throughout this excited
-Indian tepee village.
-
-The bright gleam of muskets away in the distance, banners fluttering in
-the breeze and the sound of martial music as it struck the glad expectant
-ear, was an answer to all their prayers: "Deliverance had come!" Hearts
-made glad because the terrible nightmare of weeks had been dissipated,
-the anxious days and sleepless nights were at an end, prayers had been
-answered, and it was now a time for thanksgiving. Was it ended, this
-horrible dream? Yes. But with it all, strong attachments sprang up
-between the captive and the captor. They would have been less than human
-if it were not so. These sturdy and determined Indian women and men who
-protected them had jeopardized their lives, and what greater love can we
-show one for the other than that we lay down our lives?
-
-[Illustration: CAMP RELEASE.]
-
-The little children, from one year up to four or five, who had become
-orphaned, were adopted by the Indian mother, and these mothers, who
-became so under such sorrowful circumstances, and having all the maternal
-instincts of her more favored white sister, cared for them as tenderly as
-she did her own. The little things were there with their dirty, chubby
-faces, just the same as their Indian mates, their faces were painted,
-their hair braided and garnished with eagle feathers, and they really
-seemed happy and contented amid their changed and strange environments.
-When the time came for them to go to our camps they cried and wanted
-to stay with their newly found Indian mothers, and the mothers in turn
-hugged them and cried over them and hated to give them up. There is
-nothing passes a mother's love, even an Indian mother's love.
-
-It was a proud day for Colonel Sibley, and as he looked into the happy
-faces of the captives and received their blessings and reverent homage,
-his heart was touched and tears coursed down his cheeks. He was yet a
-colonel, so far as we knew, and one of his staff officers, in addressing
-him said:
-
-"Colonel Sibley, I would rather have the glory of your achievement to-day
-than the proudest victory ever won in battle."
-
-The military camp at this point was designated Camp Release, so named
-from the nature of our mission in releasing the people from their Indian
-captivity. The manner in which they were rescued and the Indians captured
-reflects greatly to the credit and sagacity of Colonel Sibley and his
-advisers. The impetuous and indignant soldiers, after what their eyes had
-beheld in the region where the whites had been murdered, were determined
-to annihilate the camp, and it was almost impossible to restrain them,
-especially Company A, of the Sixth Minnesota, which had suffered so
-severely at Birch Coolie; but wiser counsels prevailed.
-
-After the Indians had been secured, and the captives released, we went
-among them and listened to the recital of experiences that would make the
-blood of any ordinary mortal boil with indignation, and it was a miracle
-that the soldiers did not take the matter in hand and then and there
-forever settle the Indian question. The orders were very strict about
-guarding the Indians, but on the sly many acts of cruelty were indulged
-in by the soldiers that would hardly be warranted, for we should not for
-a moment forget the fact that they were our prisoners and we were not
-savages and should not indulge in savage propensities.
-
-Colonel Henry Hastings Sibley at Camp Release received a notification of
-his deserved promotion, and we shall hereafter speak of him as General
-Sibley.
-
-During our stay at Camp Release we were daily drilling by company and
-battalion, and perfecting ourselves in all things pertaining to soldier
-life. We had a splendid camping place on the broad prairie near the river
-bank, but the cold nights reminded us that winter quarters would soon
-be more comfortable than the open prairie, and the rations were getting
-rather scarce. "Fall in for grub" ordinarily is quite as welcome to the
-hungry soldier as is the gong at a fashionable hotel to the fashionable
-guest. How we jumped for the haversack containing, not solid silver, but
-tin cup, tin plate, knife, fork and spoon, and fell in line according to
-our agility to get there, and not according to size, so as to give the
-ponies an equal chance with the tall men, whose place is on the right
-when in parade. Each received his ration of coffee, hard tack, pork and
-beans, irrespective of size, weight or previous condition.
-
-Commissary stores at Camp Release were getting very low and the supply
-train was not yet due by several days' march, so it became necessary
-to count out the crackers--five crackers to each man for a day, and no
-pie or strawberries and cream for dessert. From five we were reduced to
-three, and then there was nothing left but the bottom of the barrels.
-There was some ear corn, but a guard was placed over that to keep it safe
-for the horses and mules. Every mule was honored with a guard during his
-meal hour to prevent the "boys in blue" from appropriating the precious
-ear for his own use. No coffee, no meal, no hardtack, but there was a
-load of potatoes remaining, and when the call to grub sounded, again we
-scrambled into line to receive our ration for the day, which was--one
-potato. Just after we received this potato ration the commissary train
-hove in sight under strong guard with three days' rations, which were
-issued to the hungry soldiers, and the indications were that the command
-would soon move.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXII.
-
-THE INDIAN PRISONERS--THE TRIAL.
-
-
-After liberating the captives it became necessary to at once proceed
-against the Indians, and to this end the General appointed a commission
-consisting of Colonel William Crooks, president; Lieutenant-Colonel
-William R. Marshall, Captains H. P. Grant, H. S. Bailey and Rollin C.
-Olin and Lieutenant I. V. D. Heard as recorder. The Indians were properly
-represented, and through an interpreter understood the nature of the
-charges brought against them.
-
-The rescued white captives, as soon as possible, were sent under suitable
-escort to Fort Ridgely and then forwarded to their friends. As before
-narrated, some of them had formed quite strong attachments for their
-dusky protectors.
-
-And it is not to be wondered at. Because a man's skin is red or black it
-does not follow that his heart is black. The blackest hearts the world's
-history ever recorded beat beneath the whitest breasts.
-
-These friendly Indians were in a very small minority, succeeded in saving
-the lives of the captives. It was a watch by day and by night, and
-through a bold determination, that the few friendly ones succeeded in
-saving, as they did, these captives, and they would be less than human if
-they did not form strong attachments for their dusky friends.
-
-[Illustration: THE COURT-HOUSE OF THE MILITARY COMMISSION.]
-
-After the departure of the white captives, the Indian trial proceeded,
-but for good reasons the General concluded to move the camp down to the
-Lower Agency on the Red Wood River. The Indian camp, mostly made up of
-women and children, had been moved from Yellow Medicine to this place,
-where the trial still progressed.
-
-It was really amusing to sit by and listen to the testimony given in by
-the Indians through their interpreter. They were nearly all like the
-white criminals of to-day--innocent. I will only record a few. Cut-Nose,
-for instance, will be a fair example of others, who were as guilty
-wretches as ever escaped the immediate vengeance of an outraged people.
-
-The bloody old chief tried to play the innocent by saying he was not in
-the battles to hurt anyone. He was most always there, but he was engaged
-in some innocent pastime, such as feasting on roast beef and green corn,
-while his comrades of the paint and feathers were killing people by the
-score. If he fired at all it was at random and nobody was hurt. He would
-steal, but that was for the benefit of his wife; she insisted upon his
-doing something towards the support of herself and their Indian kids; but
-as for killing anyone, oh! no, he could not think of that for a minute.
-
-We have his picture here, and his looks are a "dead giveaway;" and,
-besides, twenty-seven murders were traced directly to him, and his
-protestation of "me good Injun" all went for nought. He was a notoriously
-bad Indian; he was so adjudged by the commission, who condemned him to
-death, and he finally dangled at one end of a hempen cord.
-
-[Illustration: CUT-NOSE.
-
-Who killed twenty-seven persons, and was hanged.]
-
-Another one, prematurely gray, thought this ought to be evidence in his
-favor, and others protested that they were too weak to face fire; others,
-that their lives were threatened and they were compelled to go on the war
-path; others, that they slept while their more wakeful companions fought;
-and one old man who said he was fifty years old a great many years ago,
-thought he might be excused, but a boy swore straight against him and
-said, "I saw that man kill my mother," which solemn words settled the
-prisoner's fate.
-
-This Indian was "Round Wind," but it was afterwards shown that he was not
-there and he was reprieved just before the day set for the execution.
-
-Among the Indian prisoners were some who had been enlisted in the
-"Renville Rangers," and had deserted to their friends--our enemies. These
-rangers were all Indians and half-breeds, and it was largely from this
-fact that the Indians conceived the idea that all the white men had left
-the state and that the time was propitious for the Indians to strike to
-regain their territory.
-
-It was proven conclusively that these men had been in all the battles,
-and at Wood Lake one of them had taken the first scalp, and this from an
-old man and a former comrade in his company. For this he received one
-of the two belts of wampum which had been promised by Little Crow as a
-reward for killing the first white man. These men all offered excuses,
-but the evidence was so overwhelmingly against them that they also were
-condemned to death.
-
-It was necessary to make an indiscriminate capture of the Indians and
-then investigate their several cases to find out the guilty ones,
-because, there were many among them who no doubt had been compelled to
-participate in the fights we had with them at Birch Coolie and Wood Lake,
-and only kept with the hostiles from policy and to save the lives of the
-white people. To these and a good old squaw, well known in St. Paul and
-other parts of the Union as "Old Betz," over 400 persons owe their lives.
-
-"Old Betz" has gone to her reward in the happy hunting grounds, having
-lived over seventy-five years. She was a good woman and a good friend to
-the early settlers of Minnesota. Others who were friendly to the whites
-and loyal to their great father at Washington were liberated, and the
-guilty placed under strong guard.
-
-[Illustration: OLD BETZ.]
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIII.
-
-CAPTURE OF RENEGADE BANDS--MIDNIGHT MARCH.
-
-
-General Sibley was apprised by his scouts that there were several lodges
-of Indians up around Goose Nest Lake, and also near the mouth of the
-Lac-qui-Parle River, and he dispatched Lieutenant-Colonel Marshall with
-two hundred and fifty men (having six days' rations) to bring them in.
-The little expedition started at midnight. They did not find Indians at
-the point designated, but struck across the country, and by a forced
-march of forty-five miles, found two lodges. They took the young men
-prisoners, but the women and children were placed in charge of the old
-men and sent away with instructions to report at Camp Release, which they
-did in due time. Colonel Marshall heard of twenty-seven lodges at a place
-described as Two Wood Lake, but upon arriving there, found the place
-deserted, the enemy leaving behind for the benefit of other Indians, a
-sign indicating that they had left two days before. In order to catch
-them, the infantry were instructed to follow, while the cavalry, with a
-howitzer, pushed on as fast as possible, and about midnight on the 16th
-the detachment came up to the Indians, who, unsuspecting, were enjoying
-their sleep. The barking of the dogs awoke them, and they realized that
-something unusual was about to occur. Peering out through the opening
-of their tepees, they saw horsemen and at once suspected they were
-soldiers. The half-breed scouts called upon them to surrender and they
-would not be harmed. Some of the younger men started to run away, but
-they were overtaken and all made prisoners. In their conversation with
-the interpreter they said they would have given themselves up, but were
-afraid to do so. They said they knew that starvation stared them in the
-face, because a cold winter was at hand, their provisions were all gone,
-and that for the sake of their families they were glad to be caught. They
-said also that Little Crow and some of his immediate followers had gone
-farther north, near Devil's Lake.
-
-The game having been successfully bagged, Colonel Marshall hastened with
-the prisoners back to Camp Release, where everything was in readiness for
-a move down to Red Wood.
-
-Among the Indians was a negro by the name of Godfrey. He had never known
-any other people and was totally ignorant concerning his parentage; but
-he was among them, taking part in all their battles, and a very active
-part, too, for the charge against him was "murder," in that with his
-own hand he had killed seven white men, women and children. He said he
-was not guilty. It is often thus--guilty men are innocent in their own
-estimation. Mr. O-ta-kle (Godfrey), was in his own opinion one of this
-sort. Certain it was, he had been enthusiastic over the prospect of
-the excitement that would follow a general uprising, for he put on a
-breech-clout and decorated his black face and legs in all the gorgeous
-hues of Indian war paint. He could "whoop" as loud and yell as fiercely
-as the best of them, and when the Indians returned from one of their
-raids he was accounted one of the bravest of their warriors. He admitted
-that he had killed seven; this he did, however, to his Indian comrades,
-when it would, if a fact, add feathers to his coronet and renown to his
-cruel record; but, when confronted by the men who could pass judgment
-against him if found guilty, he was the most innocent creature in all
-the world. In his hesitating, broken way of speaking, he gave a minute
-account of his whereabouts. There was no direct evidence against him,
-excepting his own confession to his comrades that he was with the Indians
-in all their raids and that he had killed seven people. In his earnest
-denial of the fact, he had such an honest look, and spoke with such a
-truthful tone, that the court, although prejudiced against him, were
-inclined to listen to his story with a reasonable degree of favor; yet
-he was finally found guilty and sentenced to be hanged, the verdict
-being accompanied with a recommendation that his punishment be commuted
-to imprisonment for ten years. He did not go to prison, but was sent to
-a reservation and compelled to stay there. Who he was, or where he came
-from, no one seemed to know, and he could remember nothing beyond his
-life among the Indians.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIV.
-
-HOMEWARD BOUND.
-
-
-"We start for home to-morrow morning," were the gladsome words passed
-around the camp-fire on the evening of the 22d of October. The nights
-were getting chilly, and the shortening days indicated that the autumn
-was fast passing away, and that warmer quarters than our tents would
-soon be an absolute necessity. The contemplation of the homeward march
-was a pleasure, for there were ties of friendship there that forbade
-procrastination. A sad thought came over us as we remembered the poor
-fellows who had given up their lives--their waiting ones at home would
-wait in vain.
-
-[Illustration: "Reveille."]
-
-Reveille sounded early one morning, and after a hurried breakfast of
-coffee and hard tack, the headquarters bugle sounded "strike tents," and
-the city of canvas was soon razed to the ground. With the captives and
-prisoners we took up our line of march for Yellow Medicine, where the
-commission appointed by the General tried and condemned 305 Indians to
-hang.
-
-The morning we left Camp Release the sun shone brightly, the sky was
-clear, but there was frost in the air; and, as we were on very short
-rations and only one blanket each, we were in high glee as we marched out
-to the music of the band. I think our steps were more than the regulation
-twenty-eight inches, for we were headed towards God's country--home.
-About four p. m. the fierce fall wind veered around in our faces, and
-coming as it did off the burnt prairie, our faces soon presented the
-appearance of men from the interior of Africa. We were black in the
-face. At five o'clock we went into camp. It was pitch dark, with the
-wind blowing a hurricane, and in the darkness, infantry, cavalry, and
-artillery were one interminable mass of troops and order was impossible.
-So the orders were: "By company, left wheel, halt;" "stack arms;" "break
-ranks," with orders to pitch tents and get under cover. To make fires and
-cook supper was impossible, so we supped on raw salt pork, hard tack,
-and cold water. The Sibley tents blew down as fast as put up, and in
-this condition we crawled under them to get the best protection possible
-from the fierce northern blast. Some of the men had found potato cellars
-that had been dug in the hillside by the Indians, and taking possession
-of them were thus afforded good, warm quarters and plenty of potatoes to
-eat. In this respect they were much more fortunate than the rest of us
-who were on the outside and had all we could do to keep from freezing to
-death. The storm abated somewhat by morning, so we could make our fires,
-which we did, and availed ourselves of the Indian potatoes, and with salt
-pork, hard tack and coffee made a hearty breakfast and were soon on the
-march again.
-
-The exposure of that night gave many of us the rheumatism, and it took
-several hours' march to get ourselves limbered up, but the day was bright
-and we were homeward bound. We made a good day's march, and pitched our
-tents in the valley of the Red Wood.
-
-The Indian camp, consisting principally of women and children, had
-been previously removed to this place from Yellow Medicine, where the
-quartermaster had erected a large board prison to hold the captive red
-men, who had all been condemned by the Commission. The papers had been
-sent on to President Lincoln for his final decision, and we were here
-awaiting developments.
-
-The condemned Indians were sent under strong guard to Camp Sibley, on the
-banks of the Red Wood River. They were chained together and kept in a
-structure built for the purpose, and their squaws, who were camped on the
-outside, were allowed to cook for them under the supervision of a guard,
-to prevent them from smuggling knives or a weapon of any kind on the
-inside of the enclosure.
-
-[Illustration: CAMP LINCOLN.]
-
-After a week or ten days we again took up the line of march to a
-destination known only to the General and his Staff, but which proved
-to be that the Seventh Minnesota, under Colonel William R. Marshall,
-should proceed with the prisoners to Mankato, and the Sixth Minnesota,
-under Colonel Crooks, should report at Fort Snelling for further orders.
-The two regiments marched together until we reached a point some way
-below New Ulm. Nothing of importance took place until we reached this
-place. The General having heard that the citizens had determined to kill
-every redskin regardless of consequences if they could possibly get
-hold of them, took precaution against it. It was said that every house
-was supplied with hot water, hot soft soap and anything and everything
-that ingenuity could invent to inflict sudden and sure punishment, and
-death if possible, to those that had brought such woe to them. For this
-reason the General changed his course somewhat, and making a detour to
-the right, escaped the necessity or perhaps bloodshed, in trying to save
-his captives from the hands of this justly furious people. Men and women
-turned out en masse and hurling imprecations, flourishing butcher knives,
-table knives, and even scissors, axes, pitchforks--in fact, every sort of
-weapon--seemed determined to get at them, and abused soldiers and Indians
-alike because they were held at bay. They followed us for two or three
-miles before they became convinced that the General was determined at all
-hazards to uphold the supremacy of the government in protecting these
-blood-stained captives from the furies of a people who had suffered so
-much at the hands of some of their tribes in the murder of their innocent
-women and children.
-
-At a point below New Ulm the command was divided, a portion taking all
-the condemned men to Mankato, and the balance of the command proceeding
-to Fort Snelling.
-
-At Mankato, as the days wore away and there was some doubt as to what the
-final decision of President Lincoln would be, great fear was entertained
-that there would be a general uprising of the people, and an attempt
-made to override military and civil law by wresting the Indians from
-the soldiers and instituting a general massacre of them, irrespective of
-their guilt or innocence, but Colonel Stephen Miller, the post commander,
-having determined that law and not lawlessness should prevail, used the
-utmost vigilance to defeat any such undertaking.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXV.
-
-PROTESTS--PRESIDENT LINCOLN'S ORDER FOR THE EXECUTION.
-
-
-The Indians did not seem to feel cast down; some in fact appeared
-rather to enjoy the situation; others, again, were more serious, and
-were probably speculating as to the probable outcome of the unfortunate
-condition of affairs. The soldiers did not relish the idea of guarding
-them, and one night a conspiracy, which I overheard, was formed to create
-a false alarm in the camp and in the excitement fall on the Indians
-and murder them. The plot leaked out and the plan miscarried, as it
-should, for it would have been rank murder to have executed it. Among
-the prisoners there were many who really were not guilty, but had been
-caught in bad company. The prisoners were arraigned upon written charges
-specifying the criminating acts, and these charges were signed by General
-Sibley, and with but few exceptions were based on information furnished
-by Rev. S. R. Riggs, who had long been a missionary among them. The
-majority of the prisoners were condemned to death, and the news reaching
-the East, far away from the scene of the outrages, petitions went in from
-many New England cities, imploring the President to exercise clemency
-toward this unfortunate people. He yielded to the clamor in so far as
-only to include the very worst characters among them.
-
-Bishop Whipple said: "There are times when the Christian laborer has
-a right to ask for the sympathy, the prayers and the co-operation
-of our fellow-citizens, and to make a strong appeal in behalf of
-this most wretched race of heathen men on the face of the earth. The
-responsibility," he says, "is great, the fearful issues are upon us, and
-as we are to settle them justly or unjustly we shall receive the blessing
-or curse of Almighty God. Many of these victims of savage ferocity were
-my friends. They had mingled their voices with mine in prayer; they had
-given to me such hospitality as can only be found in the log cabin of
-the frontier; and it fills my heart with grief, and blinds my eyes with
-tears, when I think of their nameless graves. It is because I love them
-and would save others from their fate that I ask that the people shall
-lay the blame of this great crime where it belongs, and rise up with one
-voice to demand the reform of the atrocious Indian system, which has
-always garnered for us the same fruit of anguish and blood."
-
-Thousands of miles away from the scene of the outrages perpetrated
-against the inoffensive white settlers, protests were sent in to the
-President from all sorts of humanitarians, imploring him to stay the
-sentence that condemned to death so many human beings. The provocation
-to indiscriminately condemn and hang was very great, for thousands of
-innocents had been ruthlessly murdered; no moments of warning were given
-them; no former kindnesses seemed to be remembered by the Indians, and
-their hands were steeped in their friends' blood, and there seemed no
-palliating circumstances. The enormity of the outbreak and the fiendish
-cruelty of the redskins were appalling; the people were paralyzed
-with astonishment and fear, and the witnesses, no doubt mistaken and
-prejudiced, gave such positive testimony that the commission felt
-satisfied in pronouncing them guilty of murder in the first degree; but
-would this have been the case if these prisoners had been white instead
-of red?
-
-[Illustration: INTERIOR OF INDIAN JAIL.]
-
-No doubt General Sibley himself was surprised when he learned of the
-indiscriminate condemnation of these prisoners, and was glad not to be
-held responsible for their hanging.
-
-It is a fact that there were Indians found with arms in their hands in
-nearly all the battles, but their object was to protect the women and
-children prisoners, and they said they must make a show of fighting
-whether they did or not in order to accomplish this. It would have
-been a great stain on the fair name of our country if this wholesale
-hanging had occurred, and President Lincoln acted wisely in overruling
-the recommendation of the commission, which he did to such an extent
-as to sanction the execution of thirty-nine of the condemned men, and
-the balance to be further held as prisoners until he should designate
-a reservation to which they should be sent. During the time the
-preparations were being made to carry out the President's order the
-people were clamorous. They were not satisfied with the modification of
-the President's order, and grave rumors were abroad that there would be
-a vigorous effort made to take the Indians from the soldiers and have a
-wholesale execution, but the military authorities prevented it.
-
-The President acted wisely in this matter. In fact, the state of the
-public mind was such and the pressure within our lines was exercised
-to such a degree that the President could do nothing less. If all the
-condemned Indians had been executed the impression would have gone
-abroad that the great government of the United States was putting to
-death its prisoners of war, and this would have done much toward bringing
-about a recognition of the Southern Confederacy.
-
-The President's order was as follows:
-
- "Executive Mansion,
- Washington, December 6, 1862.
-
- Brigadier-General H. H. Sibley, St. Paul, Minn.:
-
- Ordered, that the Indians and half-breeds sentenced to be
- hanged by the military commission, composed of Colonel Crooks,
- Lieutenant-Colonel Marshall, Captain Grant, Captain Bailey and
- Lieutenant Olin, and lately sitting in Minnesota, you cause to be
- executed on Friday, the 19th day of December, instant.
-
- The other condemned prisoners you will hold subject to further
- orders, taking care that they neither escape nor are subjected to any
- unlawful violence.
-
- Abraham Lincoln,
- President of United States."
-
-The execution was carried out on the 26th of December, 1862. Thirty-eight
-were hanged.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVI.
-
-THE EXECUTION--THE NIGHT BEFORE.
-
-
-The date of the execution was fixed for December 26, 1862. On the 22d
-instant the condemned prisoners were separated from the others, and
-on the same day Colonel Stephen Miller (afterwards Governor), who was
-in command, through the interpreter, Rev. Mr. Riggs, called upon the
-condemned and announced the decision of the Great Father at Washington.
-He said:
-
- Tell these thirty-nine condemned men that the commanding officer of
- this place has called to speak to them on a serious subject this
- afternoon. Their Great Father at Washington, after carefully reading
- what the witnesses testified to in their several trials, has come
- to the conclusion that they have been guilty of murdering his white
- children; and, for this reason, has directed that each be hanged by
- the neck until dead next Friday at ten a. m.
-
- That good ministers, both Catholic and Protestant, are here, and can
- commune with them for the remaining four days they have to live.
-
- That I will now cause to be read the letter from their Great Father
- at Washington, first in English and then in their own language.
-
- Say to them, now, that they have so sinned against their fellow-men,
- that there is no hope for clemency except in the mercy of God,
- through the merits of the blessed Redeemer; and that I earnestly
- exhort them to apply to that, as their only remaining source of
- comfort and consolation.
-
-Rev. Mr. Riggs, the interpreter, had been a missionary among them for
-twenty-five years, and he had known them intimately, and it pained him
-sorely to be obliged to convey to them as an interpreter the words that
-were to condemn them to death. In so doing he said:
-
- I have known you for many years; I have pointed you to the cross;
- endeavored to prayerfully convince you that allegiance to God, and
- the Great Father at Washington, was your duty. I have with a broken
- heart witnessed your cruelty to inoffensive men, women and children;
- cruelty to your best friends. You have stained your hands in innocent
- blood, and now the law holds you to strict accountability. It pains
- me to inform you that your Great Father in Washington says you must
- die for your cruelty and murders, and I am directed to inform you
- that on the 26th day of February you will be hanged by the neck until
- you are dead, and may God have mercy on your souls.
-
-The prisoners received the sentence rather coolly; some smoking their
-pipes composedly during its reading, one of them knocking the ashes out
-of his pipe, and another putting in his a fresh supply of kinnikinnick.
-On Tuesday evening they held a death dance, accompanied by wild Indian
-songs, and there were some fears that the excitement might cause an
-attempt to make an escape or create a panic; so, precautionary measures
-were taken. The Indians' friends and families were permitted to visit
-them and take a last farewell. It was a solemn time even to the white
-soldiers, for it was plainly evident that while there was a lack of
-such demonstration as would be witnessed among the whites under similar
-circumstances, yet to the observant eye only, it was plain to be seen
-that deep, deep grief had taken possession of their hearts. There
-were few tears; no hysterics, but profound sorrow was depicted on the
-countenances as the parting word was said, and messages sent to children
-and friends. Some were completely overcome; others in bravado laughed and
-joked as if it were an every-day occurrence. One said: "Yes, tell our
-friends that we are being removed from this world over the same path they
-must shortly travel. We go first."
-
-Many spoke in a mournful tone; in fact, the majority of them desired to
-say something, and with one or two exceptions they seemed to be penitent.
-Why should they not? Their white brethren under like circumstances are
-accorded religious privileges. They repent and accept the invitation,
-"Come unto Me all ye who are weary and heavy laden and I will give you
-rest." The thief on the cross repented. Could not an ignorant, misguided
-Indian under religious instruction receive light and repent?
-
-The night before the execution Colonel Miller received a stay for one of
-the condemned, as strong doubt existed as to his participation in the
-murders, and he was finally pardoned.
-
-It has been said that in the excitement of the preparations for the
-execution that the wrong man was pardoned. He was guilty, but the
-innocent man suffered in his stead. The last night was spent by the
-prisoners in quite a jolly camp-fire, chatting merrily and smoking to
-their hearts' content.
-
-Father Ravoux, a Catholic priest from St. Paul, remained with them all
-night administering consolation and communion, and the more serious of
-them listened attentively to his words of comfort. In the morning, as
-the hour for the execution approached, and while Father Ravoux was
-speaking to the Indians, the provost marshal entered and whispered
-something to the good priest, who in turn spoke in French to one of the
-half-breeds, and he repeated it in Dakota to the Indians, who were all
-lying down around the prison. The information he gave was that the hour
-had arrived when they were to march to the gallows. In a moment every
-Indian stood erect, and as the provost marshal opened the door they fell
-in behind him with the greatest alacrity. Indeed, a notice of release,
-pardon or reprieve could not have induced them to leave their cells with
-more apparent willingness than this call to death. At the foot of the
-steps there was no delay. Captain Redfield mounted the drop, at the head,
-and the Indians crowded after him, as if it were a race to see who would
-get there first. They actually crowded on each other's heels, and as they
-got to the top, each took his position, without any assistance from those
-who were detailed for that purpose. They still kept up a mournful wail,
-and occasionally there would be a piercing scream. The ropes were soon
-arranged around their necks without the least opposition being offered.
-The white caps, which had been placed on the tops of their heads, were
-now drawn down over their faces, shutting out forever the light of day
-from their eyes. Then ensued a scene that can hardly be described and can
-never be forgotten. All joined in shouting and singing, as it appeared
-to those who were ignorant of the language. The tones seemed somewhat
-discordant, and yet there was harmony in it. It was not their voices
-alone, but their bodies swayed to and fro, and their every limb seemed to
-be keeping time. The drop trembled and shook as if all were dancing. The
-most touching scene on the drop was their attempt to grasp each other's
-hands, fettered as they were. They were very close to each other, and
-many succeeded. Three or four in a row were hand in hand, and all hands
-swaying up and down with the rise and fall of their voices. One old man
-reached out on each side, but could not grasp a hand; his struggles were
-piteous and affected many beholders.
-
-Those who understood their manners and language said that their singing
-and shouting was necessary to sustain each other. Each one shouted his
-own name and called on the name of his friend, saying in substance: "I am
-here! I am here!"
-
-The supreme moment arrived, and amid an immense concourse of citizens and
-soldiers the drop fell, and thirty-eight human beings, whose hands were
-steeped in innocent blood and who had spread such desolation and sorrow
-to thousands of happy homes, were ushered into the presence of their
-Maker.
-
-The arrangements were under the immediate supervision of Captain Burt, of
-the Seventh Regiment, and they were so complete that there was not the
-slightest hitch.
-
-"Positions of honor were given to the most interested. For instance, the
-cutting of the rope was assigned to William J. Daly, of Lake Shetek, who
-had three children killed and his wife and two children captured, and who
-were at this time in the hands of Little Crow, on the Missouri, and were
-afterward ransomed by Major Galpin at Fort Pierre."
-
-The quotation I make here is from a book in the public library, and I
-found penciled on the margin by one of those persons who take advantage
-of the courtesies extended by public libraries, the following:
-
-"So should every remaining Indian be 'elevated'!" Nay! Nay! scribbler.
-We cannot tell why one man's face is black and another red, while yours
-and mine are white. Would you mete out the same measure to the whites?
-Innocency among the Indians, per capita, is not more rare than among
-their more favored white brethren, and we are brethren of a different
-hue. Punish the guilty, be he white or black, but protect the innocent.
-
-After the bodies had hung for about half an hour, the physicians of
-the several regiments present examined them and reported that life was
-extinct. The bodies were carried away in United States mule teams and
-dumped in one common grave, dug in the sand bar in front of the city, the
-half-breeds in one corner of the hole so they might be found by their
-friends if they so desired. There may be times and circumstances when a
-Christian people can afford to act as we expect the benighted to do; but
-it has not arrived yet. No matter what the crime, the penalty has been
-paid, and after the spirit has gone to God to be adjudged, it is part
-of our civilization to be decent in our conduct toward all that remains
-mortal. It is not necessary to make a great display, but that we perform
-our duty according to our law. We have taken a life in accordance with a
-human law, and in justification of it we quote, "An eye for an eye and a
-tooth for a tooth." No matter how atrocious the deed, after the penalty
-has been paid we cannot as a Christian people, apologize for our acts of
-barbarism to the inanimate clay.
-
-After the mandate of the President had been executed the telegraph
-flashed to Washington the following:
-
- "St. Paul, Minn., December 27, 1862.
-
- "To the President of the United States:
-
- "I have the honor to inform you that the thirty-eight Indians and
- half-breeds, ordered by you for execution, were hung on yesterday
- at Mankato, at ten a. m. Everything went off quietly, and the other
- prisoners are well secured.
-
- "Henry H. Sibley,
- "Brigadier-General."
-
-With this the curtain drops on this bloody drama, and thus ended the
-great Indian campaign of 1862.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVII.
-
-SQUAWS TAKE LEAVE OF THEIR HUSBANDS.
-
-
-The condemned men, and the others who were to be deported after the
-execution took place, were called upon to bid good-bye to their wives
-and children, who were to be taken down to Fort Snelling. The wives were
-allowed a few at a time to go inside the jail and with the children have
-words of conversation with the husband and father. After a reasonable
-time they took leave of them. There were no hysterics, no sobs, no tears,
-but the heart-beats and the thoughts were there. Love? Yes. How deep, no
-white on-looker could tell. It was a supreme moment to the poor Indian
-and his dusky wife. Their roads were very divergent from this time, and
-in low tones they answered in their own tongue. Some of the soldiers made
-slighting remarks, but there are those among educated whites who have no
-serious moments, no serious thoughts; they have not time to be serious,
-and no inclination; but this was a serious time for those poor creatures;
-they knew the hour had arrived when they must say good-bye forever on
-earth to their red-skinned partners in life's joys and sorrows. No hand
-shake; no embrace; no crying; but a sorrowful, affectionate look, and
-they turn their back on them forever.
-
-The women and children are taken down to Fort Snelling, and in a camp
-prepared for them they are put for the winter, and a strong guard placed
-about them to prevent any outrages being committed. The night the news
-was carried to them of the execution the wails of the poor creatures
-could be heard for a long distance away: "Rachael mourning for her
-children and would not be comforted, because they were not."
-
-Much sorrow was expressed for them because we could but feel that they
-were unfortunate creatures, endowed with all the attributes of human
-beings.
-
-The mortality among them was very great and hundreds died before the
-winter of suspense had passed away.
-
-In April, 1863, the camp was broken up and the remaining ones were placed
-in a steamer for St. Louis, from whence they were to be sent up the
-Missouri River to the Crow Creek agency. Some died on the way, and as
-they left their homes and looked for the last time on their native hills,
-a dark cloud was crushing out their hearts. Soon after landing at Crow
-Creek every tepee had its sick and anxious hearts--mothers and children
-far away from their dead.
-
-The deported ones joined their families in time, and as the years glide
-on they have had time for reflection, and the events, as they undoubtedly
-come trooping back to them, furnish food for thought.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVIII.
-
-CAPTURE AND RELEASE OF JOE BROWN'S INDIAN FAMILY.
-
-
-We knew Major Brown well. He was known to nearly all early settlers,
-because he came to Minnesota when the white people were very few. He felt
-that it was not well for man to live alone, a white man especially, and
-so he took unto himself a dusky bride. He was in government employ and a
-big white chief among his new found wife's people and to whom he was a
-friend.
-
-As he grew in years his family grew also, and the dusky mother's
-household cares increased. Yes, they lived in a fine stone house,
-elegantly furnished, down on the Yellow Medicine below the agency,
-but which came in the way of his red brother's vengeance, and it was
-destroyed. The Brown family lived happily in their rather modern home.
-The Major attended to his official duties, and the wife and boys
-cultivated the land; but in common with all the others during these sad
-days, their only safety was in flight. Their home, including books and
-furniture, was totally destroyed. The father was a fugitive and his
-family prisoners. They did not suffer as some others did, because the
-wife and mother was a full blood and was related to the Sisseton tribe
-and had powerful friends among them. Their capture, captivity, and final
-release, as related by Samuel Brown, the fifteen-year-old boy, is an
-interesting recital. He says:
-
-On Monday, the 18th day of August, I went to Yellow Medicine with my
-sister Ellen upon an errand. We met on the way an Indian named Little
-Dog, who told us that the Indians had killed a family at Beaver Creek,
-and were going to kill the whites as far as St. Paul, and that we must
-not tell any one about it, or they would kill us. He said he warned us
-at the risk of his own life. This was about noon. Soon after our arrival
-at Yellow Medicine an old squaw told us that we had better be getting
-away, as there would be trouble. We asked many of the other Indians
-about it, but they said they had heard of nothing of the kind. Another
-squaw afterward told us that she thought it must be the Yanktonais
-who were coming down to take the agency. We left them about half-past
-three o'clock. George Gleason had just left with Mrs. Wakefield and her
-children for below. When we reached home we told mother what we heard.
-She was very much scared and did not sleep any that night. About four
-o'clock next morning I heard some one outside calling in a loud voice
-a number of times for my mother, and then I heard Charles Blair, my
-brother-in-law (a white man), ask what was the matter, and the man, who
-was a half-breed named Royer, said that four hundred Yanktonais had
-arrived at the upper agency and were killing everybody. We then became
-very much alarmed, and had our oxen yoked at once to the wagon, put
-everything in we could, and started for Fort Ridgely. We had all the
-neighbors warned, and they went with us. They had three wagons, with
-ox teams. Four or five white men overtook us on the road, among them
-Garvey's cook (Garvey was the trader wounded at the agency, and who
-afterward died at Hutchinson.)
-
-When we had gone about five miles we saw some men two miles ahead, near
-the bank of the river, but supposed they were farmers. The Yanktonais,
-whom we were afraid of, lived above us. We thought nothing about the men
-until we saw an Indian on a hill ahead of us. He beckoned to others, and
-before we knew it we were surrounded. De-wa-nea, of Crow's band, and
-Cut-Nose and Shakopee, three of the worst among the Lower Indians, came
-to us first. We were in the head wagon. Mother told them who we were,
-and they said we must follow them, and that we were all as good as dead.
-De-wa-nea said that the whites had taken him prisoner a good many times
-and that it was now his turn. He wanted the rest of the Indians to kill
-us all. There was an Indian in the party, John Moore's brother-in-law,
-who took our part, and he and his friends saved us from the others. This
-Indian had once come to our house when he was freezing and my mother took
-him in and warmed him. He told the other Indians that he remembered this,
-and that we should live. They insisted that my brother Angus should shoot
-one of the white men, but he refused to do so. Each of the Indians had
-one of the whites picked out to shoot as they came up. My mother said
-they were poor men and it would do no good to kill them. John Moore's
-brother-in-law said they should live if she wanted them to. The Indians
-made a great fuss about it, and said she ought to be satisfied with what
-she had got, but afterwards consented and told the men to start off.
-The women stayed with us. After the men had got off a little, Leopold
-Wohler, who had a lime-kiln at the agency, came back to the wagon after
-his boots, and an Indian told him if he didn't go away he would kill him.
-He started off with one boot, and came back again for the other, and
-the Indian drove him away again with the same threat. He went a short
-distance and came back again to kiss his wife. The Indians then became
-very much enraged, and acted so fiercely that he was glad to escape
-without further difficulty. There were ten Indians close to us, and
-twenty-five or thirty near, running into the houses. They made Angus and
-Charles Blair, who were riding horses, give them up. De-wa-nea put on my
-sister's bonnet and began singing a war song. He was very merry. He said
-the Indians were now going to have a good time, and if they got killed it
-was all right; that the whites wanted to kill them off, and were delaying
-the payment in order to do it by starvation, and that he preferred to be
-shot. We saw three men and a woman on the road terribly hacked up. This
-party had committed the murders. The men had been mowing together; their
-scythes and pitchforks were lying near by. Cut-nose showed us his thumb,
-from which a piece had been bitten near the nail, and he said it was done
-by one of these men while he was working the knife around in his breast;
-that he was very hard to kill, and he thought he would never die.
-
-Cut-nose afterward went to a wagon and told a Scotch girl who was in
-it that he wanted her for his wife, and to get out and follow him. She
-refused, and he then drew his knife and flourished it over her, and she
-got out and went away with him. That was the last I saw of him until we
-got to camp. He was called Cut-nose because one of his nostrils had been
-bitten out. This was done by Other Day in a quarrel.
-
-When we reached the camp of the Red Creek Indians, four miles above the
-Redwood River, they told us that the Agency Indians had sent word for all
-to come down there, and that those who did not come would be taken care
-of by the "Soldiers' Lodge." They were then about starting, and an Indian
-made Augus and myself hitch up a mule team which he said he had taken
-from Captain Marsh's men the day before. He said they had just heard a
-cannon at the fort and they wanted to go down and whip the whites there.
-This was about noon. We then went down to John Moore's house (this was
-where Other Day's horse was stolen), and they put us upstairs, where they
-had two or three women captives. We were there about an hour, when three
-Indians told us to come up to their camp on the hill, where we were to
-stop with John Moore's mother, or grandmother. We followed them, and when
-we got halfway up suddenly missed them. We supposed they hid from us, and
-we wandered on. We met a German woman who had seven or eight children
-with her, all under eight years of age,--two on her back, one under each
-arm and two following behind. They came along with us. We went to Moore's
-relative, but she said she knew nothing about us and couldn't take us,
-and that we had better go down to Crow's Village. We started, not knowing
-where to go, when a squaw, who was crying about the troubles, met us,
-and took us home with her. The Indians sent our team back to camp. They
-gave Augus and I blankets and moccasins, and we put them on and went down
-to see Little Crow. He told us to bring our folks down there, and no
-one should hurt us. This was Tuesday evening, about seven o'clock. He
-was in his own house, and the camp was pitched around it. We went back
-and brought our folks down. Little Crow put us up in the top room of the
-house, and gave us buffalo robes and everything to make us comfortable.
-He brought us a candle as soon as it was dark; he was very kind to us; he
-said he would take as good care of us as he could, but he didn't believe
-he could keep Charley Blair alive until morning. He gave him a breech
-clout and leggings, which he put on.
-
-During the night an Indian or a half-breed came in the room downstairs
-where Crow was, and told him that we ought to be killed. We overheard
-what they said. The man was very ugly, and said no prisoners ought to be
-taken, and that we were related to the Sissetons, and had no claim on the
-Lower Indians, and there was no reason why we should be spared. He said
-he wanted Crow to call a council about it immediately. Crow told him that
-he saved us because we were his friends, and that he would protect us;
-that it was too late to hold a council that night, and he compelled him
-to leave.
-
-He gave us plenty to eat, and came up several times during the night to
-see how we were getting along. We begged him to let Charley Blair go. He
-said he couldn't; that the Indians knew he was there, and would kill him
-(Crow) if he allowed it. We coaxed him for a couple of hours, when he
-consented, and brought an Indian, who took Charley down to the river and
-left him in the brush. He made his escape from there to the fort. Crow
-told us not to say anything about it, for the Indians would kill him, and
-that he did it because he had known our folks so long. He said the young
-men started the massacre, and he could not stop them. A week after that
-Akipu, an Upper Indian, came down from the Yellow Medicine Agency and
-took us up with him. From that time until our deliverance we remained
-with our relatives, and were well treated by them.
-
-The foregoing recital is just as the boy gave it, and in subsequent
-conversations with the father it was substantially verified.
-
-Major Brown, after recovering his family, lived for a few years, and
-did much toward assisting the Government in adjusting the many claims
-brought against it by persons who had suffered so much at the hands of
-the Indians. He died a number of years ago, but the members of his family
-live and are much respected in the community in which they live.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIX.
-
-GOVERNOR RAMSEY AND HOLE-IN-THE-DAY.
-
-
-Alexander Ramsey, of Minnesota, is the last of the famous coterie of war
-governors; a band that will be immortal. Curtin, of Pennsylvania; Dix, of
-New York; Dennison, of Ohio; Morton, of Indiana; Randall, of Wisconsin;
-Yates, of Illinois; Blair, of Michigan; Andrew, of Massachusetts; and
-Kirkwood, of Iowa;--a notable group, stalwart, rugged patriots with
-hearts beating as one. Comprehending the danger that menaced the nation,
-confronted with no easy task, these grand old stalwarts pledged their
-states to uphold, with men and money, the general government. They
-have passed away honored by a grateful country and beloved by the men
-who responded to their call. Governor Ramsey alone remains, and in the
-National Grand Army encampment held in St. Paul in 1896 he was a central
-figure. Passed, as he has, beyond the allotted time of man, measure full
-and running over, he saw the salvation of his country, proud of the
-part Minnesota's sons took in its restoration, and proud to meet them
-after the smoke of battle had cleared away. Governor Ramsey, being in
-Washington at the time of the first call for troops, promptly responded
-in person to the President, and tendered a regiment from Minnesota, and
-it was accepted; and it was the first to be accepted. He immediately
-telegraphed to Adjutant General William Henry Acker to at once issue a
-call for one regiment of three months men.
-
-[Illustration: HOLE-IN-THE-DAY.]
-
-The companies were soon filled up, and Adjutant-General Acker was
-commissioned as captain of Company "C." He was afterwards commissioned as
-captain in the Sixteenth U. S. Infantry, and was killed at Shiloh.
-
-Governor Ramsey was elected United States Senator from Minnesota, and
-served his state faithfully and well, and was at one time Secretary
-of War. At this writing he is hale and hearty, honored by men of all
-political faith.
-
-Governor Ramsey's part in the Indian trouble was more than commissioning
-officers and sending men to the frontier.
-
-The Chippewas were in a turbulent state of mind, and Hole-in-the-Day,
-their chief, did not seem inclined to soften their feelings to the
-Government, but rather encouraged them in their desire to break their
-compact. He said to his people that "we had all we could manage, with our
-brethren in the South, and if they pleased to combine with the Sioux,
-their power could not be resisted."
-
-This surely was cause for alarm,--alarm for the safety of the state, and
-it required strong measures to curb this uprising among these Indians.
-Commissioner Dole lost hope of successfully meeting the demands of the
-Indians, and dispatched a messenger to Governor Ramsey asking him to
-hasten to his relief. The Governor lost no time, and with two or three
-others were soon on the way. He did not go with an army carrying banners,
-but quietly and unostentatiously met the Chippewa chiefs, and soon
-adjusted all difficulties.
-
-When it became known to Hole-in-the-Day that General Sibley had an
-overwhelming force, he was then desirous to befriend the state and assist
-in making a treaty of perpetual friendship with the whites, and assist
-them in fighting Little Crow. And after the battle of Wood Lake the
-Winnebagoes, who were inclined to go to war against the "pale faces,"
-concluded it best to court his favor and proclaim war against the Sioux.
-Prior to this, all the tribes in Wisconsin had sent their "wampums" to
-the Winnebago chief, and a council of war had been fixed for the 28th
-of September. There seemed to be indications that an unfriendly white
-element was stirring up strife among all our Indian neighbors, and hence
-the impression that it was emissaries from the South who were doing it.
-It came from high authority that evidence existed to show that "the
-Western tribes are going to join the South." It was a critical moment
-for this country. Slavery existed yet, and God's hand was laying heavily
-upon us. Federal reverses and Confederate successes cast a gloom over the
-North, and loyal men trembled, while the copper-head came forth and, with
-an exultant hiss, impeded the progress of the Government in its efforts
-to bring about an honorable peace. Under these depressing conditions
-Governor Ramsey, to whom all looked with so much solicitude, nerved
-himself to bring about an amicable settlement with the Chippewas.
-
-In three days from the time of departure, Governor Ramsey returned,
-having effected a settlement of all misunderstandings on September 15th,
-1862.
-
-The public mind was relieved, for nearly every chief of the Nation being
-present to sign this treaty of peace, all hostile demonstrations ceased,
-and they evinced their further friendship by coming to St. Paul to return
-Governor Ramsey's visit, and tender their services to General Pope to
-operate against the Sioux.
-
-The Governor assured them he was pleased to know they had not stained
-their hands in innocent blood, as the Sioux had done;--that he would
-communicate their desire to join the white soldiers to the big chief,
-General Pope, and he would send for them. The talk they had with the
-Governor so pleased them that they became confidential and talkative.
-Their responses thus far had been grunts and "ho, hos," but Chief Berry
-Hunter said the words they listened to "went right into his ears, and
-they were good," and although he was an old man he had not lost his
-reason. That they had come down to show their white brothers they felt
-very friendly, and never desired to have any other feeling towards them.
-
-Big Dog, another of their noted chiefs, whose hands were very red, said
-he had painted them purposely, so that if he should kill an enemy and
-blood got on his hands it would not stain them.
-
-Governor Ramsey extended them an invitation to ride in the "fire wagon"
-to St. Anthony (now East Minneapolis).
-
-This meant that he would take them on the train. Railroading in Minnesota
-at this time was new to the white people, and the beautiful engines
-were objects of delight and admiration to them, and more so to the
-Indians, who were much interested in everything they saw in and about the
-locomotive, and they expressed great wonder at the steam whistle, and
-invariably ducked their heads as its shrill notes broke upon their ears.
-They did not wish to appear as cowards, but, like white soldiers dodging
-bullets after they had passed, so they inadvertently would "duck" when
-the whistle blew, and afterward have a hearty laugh over it.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXX.
-
-CHASKA--GEORGE SPENCER--CHASKA'S DEATH--THE "MOSCOW" EXPEDITION.
-
-
-Chaska and George Spencer were great friends, and there was reason
-for it, as you will see. It was in George Spencer's store where the
-first shot was fired, and he was the victim. He ran upstairs, but the
-Indians surrounded the place and threatened to burn the store, which
-they probably would have done but for the fact they wanted the goods.
-They could not muster courage to go upstairs to kill him, because they
-naturally thought: "What would he be doing while we are trying to kill
-him?"
-
-An old squaw got him out the back way and secreted him in her tepee, and
-the Indians finally burnt the building, and supposed he had perished in
-the flames. The squaw turned him over to his Indian friend Chaska, and
-when the other Indians, who supposed he was dead already, saw him quite
-alive, they were much puzzled, for they had no inkling of his escape.
-
-[Illustration: HOUSE OF CHASKA, A CIVILIZED INDIAN.]
-
-He was the only white man at the agency who did escape, and can attribute
-it to the friendly ministration of those two native Americans, Chaska
-and the squaw. It was no miraculous escape, but a plain case of genuine
-friendship toward a white man by an Indian. An Indian will avenge a
-wrong--that is his nature. It is born in him, and it cannot be blotted
-out; so, too, will he remember a kindness with an equal degree of
-fidelity, and, under any and all circumstances, will "stick closer than
-a brother." Friend Spencer in this case found that the investment he
-had made in kindness to this red man was a paying one--it came in good
-time--his life was surely in jeopardy, and no miracle, but a faithful
-Indian, saved him, and this Indian was Chaska, a chief whom Little Crow
-had depended upon to help carry on the war. His friendship for Spencer
-was great, and when his friend's life was threatened, he with a double
-shooter in his hands would cry out: "Shoot if you like, kill him if you
-will, but two of you will come out of your saddles if you do."
-
-Chaska dressed his friend in Indian garb and painted his face. It became
-necessary to kite him about, first in one friendly tepee and then in
-another, so that the spies could not keep track of him. I remember well
-the day I spoke with him. He had been wounded and was suffering from
-this, and the long days and nights of anxiety had told on him, but now
-that he could throw all this off he said he would soon be on the speedy
-round to complete recovery. Chaska was faithful to his friend of former
-years. He was desirous of becoming a white man so far as he could, by
-adopting their manners and customs. He came to see General Sibley one
-morning in his Indian garb, and the General said to him: "I am not
-pleased to see you in your blanket."
-
-"Then I will wear it no more," was his reply. He washed off the paint
-from his face, trimmed his hair, and dressed as a citizen. He desired
-to live in a house rather than a tepee and to have his children attend
-school. This was the wish of all the friendly Indians. They instituted
-reforms in the social fabric, and in marrying, the rite was performed
-by an ordained minister, the same as among their white brethren. Poor
-Chaska, I remember well the night he died, for at the time a strong
-suspicion pointed toward a member of my own regiment, who was a clerk in
-the hospital department, and there never was a doubt but Chaska's death
-was by poison administered by this man. George Spencer, his white friend,
-said of him: "On the second day of our return from the Missouri, we
-rode along talking pleasantly of the future, he telling me how he would
-like to be situated on a small farm of land near me, and congratulating
-himself that his trouble was over, and that he would soon be restored to
-the bosom of his family. Alas, for my friend! He now sleeps tranquilly
-near the turbid waters of the Missouri, under the shadow of our
-intrenchments. Savage though he was, he was a noble man!"
-
-The night he died he had gone around to his white friend's tent, where
-he was always welcome, and supped with him and arranged for carrying in
-the commissary wagon, a pack of furs he had captured. He went to his
-quarters after taking a dose of medicine and was soon taken ill. He sent
-for his white comrade, who went immediately to his bedside, to find him
-senseless, dying. In his delirium he predicted a thunderstorm that would
-shake the earth and blind the people the day he was put in the ground,
-and the prediction came true. He did not once recognize his friend, who
-remained with him, closing his eyes with a sorrowful heart. He died at
-the age of thirty-two, leaving a wife and two interesting children. He
-was faithful among the faithless.
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration: The Sentinel.]
-
-CHAPTER XXXI.
-
-THE "MOSCOW" EXPEDITION.
-
-
-This expedition, well named "Moscow," will be remembered by the
-participants so long as they live. The government had decided to remove
-all the Indians to Fort Thompson, a military post on the Missouri, and
-after it had been done, it was found a little later that they were
-in a starving condition. General Pope communicated this fact to the
-authorities at Washington, and that the Indian agent had applied to
-him to furnish an escort for a supply train, that would be sent from
-Minnesota rather than from Sioux City, Iowa. Three companies were
-designated to undertake this perilous journey, and placed in command of
-Captain J. C. Whitney, of the Sixth Minnesota. It was impossible to hire
-teamsters to go, so an offer of twenty-five cents per day was made to the
-soldiers in addition to their $13 per month; but the undertaking was too
-hazardous and the offer was refused. The bid was raised until it reached
-$1.25 per day extra, when a few soldiers agreed to accept. On the 6th
-day of November a partial start was made, but one delay after another
-occurred until the case became desperate, and the teamsters finally got
-two dollars a day extra.
-
-The fact was, the soldiers rebelled, and in order to frustrate the plans
-of the contractors the wagons were so disabled that it was impossible
-to move. Colonel Crooks, of the Sixth Minnesota, took matters in hand
-so vigorously that the soldiers knew that the expedition would have to
-move at all hazards, and it was foolish and dangerous to object and
-waste any more time. Several arrests of mutinous soldiers were made, but
-upon promises of better conduct they were released, and the "Moscow"
-expedition was finally and fully launched on the 20th day of November,
-1863. The undertaking was hazardous, but the men were supplied with the
-best of Sibley tents and blankets in plenty. Under the most favorable
-circumstances it was not a picnic, but barring the stinging cold days and
-colder nights, with a few frozen noses, no serious mishap overtook the
-brave soldier boys of this celebrated "Moscow" expedition.
-
-The return march was by way of Sioux City, Iowa, and the first post in
-Minnesota was reached on December 29th, 1863. During the trip the command
-encountered severe storms and the thermometer at times fell to 40 degrees
-below zero--but thirteen dollars a month in depreciated currency was a
-fair compensation.
-
-[Illustration: Designed by A. P. Connolly.
-
-Camp Pope.
-
-Where the troops assembled for the campaign of 1863.]
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXII.
-
-CAMPAIGN OF 1863--CAMP POPE.
-
-
-In October, 1862, General John Pope had informed General Halleck that
-five Minnesota regiments could be sent south by November 1, but local
-influences were at work to prevent the transfer of troops, as it seemed
-very likely that hostilities would be renewed by the Indians again in the
-spring, and the demand that the State should be fully protected against
-these roving bands was acceded to, and orders were forthwith issued to
-the various companies to proceed at once to points designated on the
-frontier and go into winter quarters. Rumors were afloat at all times,
-but there really was no danger, and the soldiers had little to do but
-attend to a light guard duty and while away the tedious hours as best
-they could. The campaign of 1863 was planned by General John Pope, and
-General H. H. Sibley, who was in command of the district of Minnesota,
-with headquarters at St. Paul, was selected to command the Minnesota
-column, and General Alfred Sully to command the column that was to
-proceed up the west bank of the Missouri.
-
-These two columns were to co-operate for the final extinction of the
-Indians; but the low water of the Missouri prevented the plan from being
-carried out.
-
-The rendezvous of the Sibley column was at a point near the mouth of the
-Red Wood River, and twenty-five miles above Fort Ridgely. The forces
-comprising the expedition organizing at this point were the Sixth, the
-Seventh and the Tenth Regiments of Minnesota Infantry, under Colonels
-William Crooks, William R. Marshall and James H. Baker; eight pieces of
-artillery, under command of Captain John Jones; the Mounted Rangers,
-under Colonel McPhail; Indian scouts and other small detachments, which
-brought the force up to 3,052 infantry, 800 cavalry and 146 artillerymen.
-
-The camp, named in honor of General John Pope, then in command of the
-Department of the Northwest, was situated at the mouth of Red Wood
-River, in the vicinity of the place where the outbreak was inaugurated.
-The various regiments, composed of infantry, cavalry and artillery,
-rendezvoused here. Colonel William Crooks, of the Sixth Minnesota, was
-in temporary command, and soon after the troops began to assemble, guard
-mount, company and regimental drills were the order of the day.
-
-The land upon which we were encamped was a perfect level, and in order
-to attain better discipline, and instruct the men in works of defense,
-a complete system of sod breastworks and bastions were erected about
-the camp, of sufficient width to admit of the sentinels being placed on
-the top of them. It was really a magnificent piece of engineering and
-reflected credit on the officer in command. The sentinels were instructed
-to "walk the beat" all in the same direction, turn about at the same time
-and retrace their steps, so that an enemy could not creep in between
-them. This was done to instruct the men in guard duty and keep them out
-of mischief, for there really was no danger.
-
-On the 9th day of June, 1863, the monotony of the camp was relieved
-by the arrival of General Sibley and his staff. This official family
-consisted of Captain R. C. Olin, A. A. G.; Captain Forbes, brigade
-commissary; Captain Atchinson, ordnance officer; Captain Edward L.
-Corning, brigade commissary; Captain Kimball, A. Q. M.; First Lieutenants
-Douglas Pope, F. J. H. Beaver, Joseph R. Putnam and Charles H. Flandreau,
-aides-de-camp, and Rev. S. R. Riggs, brigade chaplain.
-
-The cannon, placed across the river on the high bluff, boomed forth the
-intelligence that the cavalcade of brilliantly uniformed officers was
-approaching, and the General doffed his hat in salute as he rode down
-the long line of soldiers who stood at "present arms." General Henry H.
-Sibley, who had gained the confidence and universal respect and love of
-the soldiers, was again with us.
-
-Soon after his arrival he received the sad intelligence of a beloved
-daughter's death. But the responsibilities resting upon him would not
-admit of days of mourning; there was no time for communion with grief;
-the needs of the hour reminded him of his duty.
-
-While lying at Camp Pope, General Sibley heard that a party of Indians
-were on their way down to the settlements, and would cross Red Wood River
-at a certain point the next night. He at once gave orders that my own
-company, the one that had sustained such losses at Birch Coolie, should
-proceed at once to watch for and intercept this band. We received the
-orders at midnight, and with three days' rations, and sixty rounds of
-ammunition, started out on our mission in charge of First Lieutenant
-Harry J. Gillhams. We had no doctor with us; no team; not even an
-ambulance. I never thought our General knew of this, for he was a very
-careful man, and the question with me was: "If we are attacked and meet
-with losses in killed or wounded what shall we do with them in the
-absence of any means of transportation?"
-
-We arrived at the point designated the next day about noon and halted.
-There was no going into camp, for we had no tents. We simply halted and
-waited for night and Indians. I was in hopes that the Indians would
-not come, and I got my wish. There were others hoping they would come,
-and among those most desirous for them to make their appearance were
-our three full blooded Indian soldiers we had captured, and who were
-present at the various battles the year before. One of them, Joe Alord, a
-powerful fellow, claimed to have a grudge against his own people. He said
-they had always treated him badly, and he wanted to fight them, but I was
-a little suspicious of him--did not think him sincere. This Alord formed
-a strong attachment for me, which endured until he was finally mustered
-out. He went south with us and stood the climate, and proved himself a
-faithful soldier. I at one time saved him from death by his own hands. He
-had been punished by the Colonel for an offense of which he said he was
-not guilty. I think myself he had been imposed upon, like "Old Dog Tray,"
-by getting into bad company. The Colonel, as a punishment, ordered him to
-parade up and down the square with a bag of sand on his back. This was
-galling to the Indian, and calling me to one side, he said: "Sergeant, me
-kill me mine self; me kill me mine self!"
-
-I tried to persuade him from his purpose, but he seemed determined to
-carry out his threat, and I watched him closely. I could see he was very
-much aggrieved, for to him the humiliation was galling.
-
-He grabbed a bayonet, and putting it to his breast, attempted to throw
-the weight of his body and thus push it through him. I jumped and kicked
-it from under him just in time and then put him in a cell until he became
-more reconciled. Soon after the close of the war he enlisted in the
-regular cavalry, but one morning he was missing. He had deserted, taking
-his horse and all his equipments with him; and although he was posted as
-a deserter, he was not heard of for many months.
-
-When heard from it was to the effect that he had gone back to the
-Indians, taking the horse and all plunder with him. The old grudge
-against him was rekindled and intensified on account of the course he
-pursued against his people during the Sioux war, and some of the young
-bucks, engaging him in a controversy, it resulted in his death.
-
-The Indian soldier Miller was inclined to be pious. He served until the
-close of the war, and afterwards was caught on the prairie in a severe
-thunder storm, from which he took refuge in a barn, which was struck by
-lightning and he was killed. The third was named Walker. At the outbreak
-he was home on vacation from Bishop Whipple's school at Faribault, Minn.,
-and was taken prisoner. I have referred to these Indian soldiers once
-before. Walker was quite well educated and now lives near St. Paul.
-
-These three Indian boys were with us on this midnight expedition, and I
-felt they would bear watching, because I could not make up my mind to the
-fact that they should want to so suddenly turn against their own people.
-About midnight the second night an incident happened that gave us some
-alarm for a little while. We were all on duty watching and listening
-for Indians. You have heard about the burnt child dreading the fire.
-Well, we had been seriously burnt at Birch Coolie, and did not relish
-another taste of the same sort of fire, and it is not astonishing under
-such circumstances how many Indian sounds there are to the square foot.
-Every minute some of us heard an Indian sound, and all at once Joe Alord
-skipped out in the darkness, and immediately he was followed by Miller.
-I at once thought it was treachery, and the same opinion prevailed among
-nearly all the boys. I was but a sergeant then and of course could not
-assume supreme authority. If I had been in command I should have held
-the remaining one as a hostage. He wanted to go after the other two and
-gained the consent of the lieutenant to do so, and away he went out in
-the darkness. I expected soon to hear the crack of the rifle, for I felt
-satisfied that they had proved false to us. After they were gone half an
-hour and returned to our lines with the news that the noise they heard
-was not Indians we all felt relieved.
-
-But the half hour was an anxious one, and we were rejoiced to have them
-return. The Indians we were sent out to intercept did not appear, and the
-next day our little expedition returned to camp.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIII.
-
-"FORWARD MARCH."
-
-
-On the 16th day of June, 1863, with the thermometer 100 degrees in the
-shade, all things being in readiness, the column took up the line of
-march into the almost unexplored region of Dakota Territory.
-
-This invading army was composed of nearly five thousand men, with a
-pontoon train, and an adequate ammunition and commissary train composed
-of 225 four- and six-mule teams; and these, with the troops, really
-made a formidable army. The big train, five miles long, was necessary,
-because the expedition was headed for an unknown and hostile country,
-and expected to traverse a territory totally devoid of vegetables of any
-sort, and game would probably be very scarce.
-
-The force was well organized, and the appearance of the train alone would
-awe the whole Sioux nation. It was a season of drouth such as was never
-before known in the West. The prairies were literally parched up with the
-heat, the grass was burned up, and the sloughs and little streams were
-dry. The fierce prairie winds were like the hot siroccos of the desert,
-and great clouds of dust, raised by the immense column, could be seen for
-miles and were viewed in wonder. We suffered from the heat, the dust and
-the weight of our knapsacks, gun and equipments, for the first day. The
-second day was as hot and dry, but the knapsacks were much lighter. Any
-one, even at this late date and so far removed from the days of the war,
-who thinks that a soldier's life is an easy one, that war is a picnic, is
-not endowed with common "horse sense." And yet there are those who thus
-express themselves.
-
-The trains were soon being relieved of a part of their load by us drawing
-rations, and we had transportation to carry our individual loads.
-
-I cannot in the few pages allotted me follow the daily march of General
-Sibley and his hosts; but will, after a hard day's march of eighteen
-prairie miles (twenty-five in God's country), with heavy knapsacks, halt,
-stack arms, pitch our tents and direct letters from
-
- CAMP SIBLEY,
-
-for such it was named, in honor of our commander.
-
-The General had decided to observe Sunday as a day of rest, deeming it
-necessary for the welfare of man and beast. There is no doubt but better
-service was rendered for so doing, and General Sibley was honored for
-this proper respect shown the Lord's day.
-
-The several camps were named after the officers in the command,
-the senior officers taking precedence; first, the colonels, then
-lieutenant-colonels, etc., etc. Nothing of an unusual nature other than
-a prairie fire occurred until we reached camp Atchison, where the forces
-were divided, and this will be the subject of a future chapter.
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration: PRAIRIE ON FIRE.]
-
-CHAPTER XXXIV.
-
-BURNING PRAIRIE--FIGHTING FIRE.
-
-
-We started out on an exploring expedition to hunt Indians when we left
-Camp Pope. On the prairies there are enemies of various sorts--Indians,
-dust, heat and fire. The latter is a most formidable weapon with the
-Indian if the grass is plentiful and the weather dry, and they can use it
-to great advantage if the attacking party is not cool headed.
-
-Our sentinels were always instructed to report fire at once, no matter
-how far off it might appear to be. This enemy came in good time--it
-appeared one night when there was a high wind.
-
-The flames spread, becoming one vast sheet, sweeping over the prairies--a
-very roaring cataract of fire, the billows of which reached to the
-clouds. Coming on at this rapid, relentless rate, it would envelop and
-destroy the whole command.
-
-To arms! to arms! we are called, by bugle and by drum, and in face of
-this enemy, at a "double quick," we march out to meet it. In case of fire
-the animals are frenzied, and it was a question at one time whether there
-would not be a stampede.
-
-The only way to conquer this sort of an enemy is to fight fire with
-fire, and this is done by burning away from you; so we started our fire,
-and as it burned away from us, we took possession of the burnt area as
-the fire demon in the rear came roaring on to consume us in his hot
-embrace. The red flames roared on high, the dense smoke obscured the moon
-and the stars, the atmosphere was stifling and thick with coal black
-dust, and the roar, as the fire fiend rolled on towards us, would have
-struck terror to the stoutest heart did we not know that his fury would
-soon be spent.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXV.
-
-DEATH OF LITTLE CROW.
-
-
-We will halt the column for a little and hunt in another direction for
-Little Crow. He had not been captured and would not surrender after the
-battle of Wood Lake in 1862. Carried away with the idea that he would
-receive proper recognition and the confidence of the Indians he started
-away towards the British dominions. Devil's Lake was always a favorite
-"summer resort" for the Indians, and perhaps we can find him there.
-
-In the State of Dakota, nearly five hundred miles west from St. Paul,
-Minn., is the celebrated Minnewakan, or Devil's Lake. It is about
-sixty-five miles in length, and its waters are as salt as are those of
-the ocean. The immediate shores are part timber and part prairie; but a
-mile beyond, the country is one vast rolling prairie, destitute of trees,
-and dotted over with little lakes of salt water. This inland sea is a
-romantic place, and is well filled with fish, and game quite plentifully
-can be found there. Among other things are sea gulls and swan. The shore
-of the lake is covered with petrified wood, and the bones of fishes and
-animals are in abundance.
-
-To this neighborhood Little Crow and his followers, after the defeat
-at Wood Lake, Minn., wended their way and encamped, where they were
-joined by nearly all the Minnesota Sioux who had not surrendered or
-been captured. There were in all about 4,000 souls, and among them were
-Yanktonais. During the winter the chief sent out runners with messages
-and presents to many of the Western tribes, and endeavored to enlist them
-as allies in a general war.
-
-About the first of June Little Crow went to St. Joseph and Fort Garry to
-gain recognition from the British, as well as to obtain ammunition, but
-both were refused him.
-
-When at St. Joseph Little Crow had on a black coat with velvet collar,
-a lady's fine shawl adorned his head, and another was knotted around
-his waist. He had discarded his rifle, and carried a pistol instead,
-which latter was one of his trophies from the last summer's raid. He had
-learned of the deportation of his friends to the Missouri, of which the
-white residents there had as yet received no information. Crow received
-the news in advance from an Indian who had outstripped the regular mail.
-He and sixty of his braves had a war dance, after which he made a speech,
-in which he said that he considered himself as good as dead, but that he
-still had plenty of warriors upon whom he could rely, and would not be
-caught during the summer. He failed to get the recognition he thought
-he was entitled to as commander-in-chief of the Sioux army then in the
-field. It is a little strange that he could not be recognized, when
-cannibal kings from the islands of the sea can get recognition, and the
-devotees of royalty will tumble over each other to pay their respects to
-a lecherous, murderous Turk.
-
-Being disappointed in this, he made up his mind to slip through the
-cordon of posts that had been established for the protection of the
-people, and while General Sibley with his army was hunting for him
-away towards the Missouri, he would, single-handed and alone, go horse
-stealing down in the settlements.
-
-Alas! How are the mighty fallen! From a commander-in-chief, seeking
-recognition of a foreign nation, he at once becomes a vagabond horse
-thief.
-
-His son, Crow, Jr., was his only confidant, and to him he said:
-
-"I am getting old and cannot fight the white men, but will go below,
-steal horses from them for you children, so you may be comfortable, and
-then I can go away where they cannot catch me."
-
-The whole party that went with the fallen chief numbered sixteen men and
-one squaw.
-
-Crow, Jr., whose Indian name was Wa-wi-nap-a (one who appeareth),
-was with his father near Hutchinson, Minn., picking berries to "stay
-their stomachs," when they were discovered by a Mr. Lamson and his son
-Chauncey. This was Friday evening, July 3, 1863, and the skirmish that
-followed between Crow, his son, and the Lamsons prevented the Sioux chief
-from celebrating the Fourth of July in any sort of patriotic manner, for
-two shots from the trusty rifle of Mr. Lamson sent Crow's soul on its
-eternal mission to the happy hunting ground of his fathers. Mr. Lamson
-and his son were out in the country and they saw two Indians picking
-berries in an "opening" in the woods. The Indians did not discover the
-white men, who were taking aim at them. Mr. Lamson had crept cautiously
-forward among the vines and rested his gun against a tree and fired. His
-first shot took effect, but not a deadly one, as evinced by the loud
-yell of his victim, who fell to the ground severely wounded.
-
-With prudence and caution Mr. Lamson retreated a short distance, where he
-could obtain shelter from behind some bushes.
-
-The wounded Indian, not to be foiled, crept after him, and thus they were
-brought face to face. Another shot from the white man and the Indian was
-dead. His companions, his own son and another Indian, mounted a horse and
-fled.
-
-The Indian's shot, however, had not gone amiss, for it lodged in Mr.
-Lamson's shoulder, and he being some distance from his son, was supposed
-by him to be killed. The son returned to town to give the alarm. A quick
-response brought men to the scene of conflict, where they found the dead
-Indian, but Mr. Lamson was missing. A singular thing about it was that
-Crow was laid out, his head resting on his rolled-up coat, and he had a
-new pair of moccasins on. It would appear as though his son returned to
-make sure of his father's death, and finding him dead, he performed this
-last deed.[A]
-
-[Footnote A: Brown's Valley, Minn., Nov. 30.--Nathan Lamson, the man who,
-during the Indian outbreak in Minnesota in 1862, killed Little Crow, the
-famous Sioux chieftain, died to-day on his farm across the line in South
-Dakota, aged 96.--[Chicago Times-Herald, Dec. 1, 1896.]
-
-Mr. Lamson's wound was a severe one, but he made his way back to his
-home, which he reached about two o'clock the next morning. Little Crow's
-body was brought to town, and the coat he had on was recognized as
-belonging to a man who had been found murdered some weeks before.
-
-[Illustration: Designed by A. P. Connolly.
-
-Mr. Lamson Shooting Little Crow near Hutchinson, Minn., in August,
-1863.]
-
-The body of this murderous old chief, after it lay in state on the ground
-for a day or two, was dumped into an unhonored grave, and no tears of
-regret were shed for him. While this was being done down in Minnesota, a
-military train five miles long was in pursuit of him up in Dakota; and
-the news did not reach General Sibley for two weeks. The description
-given of this Indian was so accurate that the General said it was no
-other than Little Crow. This again was corroborated by his son, who was
-some weeks after captured in a starving condition.
-
-Thus ended the ignominious life of Little Crow, the great Sioux chief who
-had influenced his people to believe that the time had come for them to
-reclaim their lost empire.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXVI.
-
-LITTLE CROW, JR.--HIS CAPTURE.
-
-
-After the death of Crow, senior, as narrated in the preceding chapter,
-his son and heir, Wo-wi-nap-a, becomes an important character in this
-chapter, and we will follow him and hear what he has to say about his
-father's death.
-
-When he was satisfied that his father was dead he started off he knew not
-where. He was a fugitive, a miserable creature, bereft of home, country
-and parents--a human being without a country, but with a soul--in a land
-where every hand was raised against him; a fugitive from an enraged white
-people because of the sins of his father. He hid by day and travelled by
-night until beyond the white settlements. He was captured by a company
-of soldiers who were out hunting Indians in the region of Devil's Lake,
-Dakota. When captured he was in a starving condition and glad to get even
-among Uncle Sam's soldiers. He was questioned as to his father and where
-he had been. He said:
-
-"I am the son of Little Crow; my name is Wo-wi-nap-a, and I am sixteen
-years old. Father said he was getting old and wanted me to go with him
-to carry his bundles. He left his wives and other children behind. There
-were sixteen men and one squaw in the party that went below with us. We
-had no horses, but walked all the way down to the settlements. Father and
-I were picking red berries near Scattered Lake at the time he was shot.
-It was near night. He was hit the first time in the side, just above the
-hip. His gun and mine were lying on the ground. He took up my gun and
-fired it first, and then fired his own. He was shot the second time while
-firing his own gun. The ball struck the stock of the gun and then hit him
-in the side near the shoulder. This was the shot that killed him. He told
-me that he was killed and asked me for water, which I gave him. He died
-immediately after. When I heard the first shot fired I laid down and the
-man did not see me before father was killed.
-
-"A short time before father was killed an Indian named Hi-a-ka, who
-married the daughter of my father's second wife, came to him. He had a
-horse with him, also a gray-colored blanket that he had taken from a man
-whom he had killed, to the north of where father was killed. He gave the
-coat to my father, telling him that he would need it when it rained, as
-he had no coat with him. Hi-a-ka said he had a horse now and was going
-north. He further said that the Indians who went down with them had
-separated, and he had not seen them since."
-
-After the death of his father Young Crow took both guns and started for
-Devil's Lake. He had no ammunition, but found a cartridge and cut it into
-slugs. With this he shot a wolf and ate some of it. His strength gave
-out, and twenty-six days after his father was killed he was captured.
-
-The old chief was a great wooer of the fair sex, for his son said of him:
-
-"My father had two wives before he took my mother; the first one had one
-son, the second a son and daughter; the third wife was my mother. After
-taking my mother he put away the first two; he had seven children by my
-mother; six are dead; I am the only one living now; the fourth wife had
-four children born; do not know whether any died or not; two were boys,
-two were girls; the fifth wife had five children; three of them are dead,
-two are living; the sixth wife had three children; all of them are dead;
-the oldest was a boy, the other two were girls; the last four wives were
-sisters."
-
-This young savage was cared for and finally sent away to the reservation.
-Having found the whereabouts of Little Crow and disposed of him, we will
-return to the command.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXVII.
-
-CAMP ATCHISON--GEORGE A. BRACKETT'S ADVENTURE--LIEUTENANT FREEMAN'S DEATH.
-
-
-Camp Atchison was the most important of all the camps on the whole route.
-It was here the General was visited by some three hundred Chippewa
-half-breeds, led by a Catholic priest named Father Andre, who told him
-that the Indians, hearing that General Sully, who was marching up the
-west side of the Missouri with a large body of troops, was delayed on
-account of low water, were deflecting their course in the hope of being
-reinforced by the Sioux inhabiting the country west of the Missouri.
-
-The General, upon becoming satisfied of this, decided to push on as
-rapidly as possible after them, and to facilitate the movement he formed
-a permanent post at Camp Atchison, which is located about fifty miles
-southeast from Devil's Lake, where he left all the sick and broken-down
-men, and a large portion of his ponderous train, with a sufficient guard
-to protect them if attacked. With these arrangements completed, the
-column, with twenty-five days' rations for 1,500 infantry, 500 cavalry,
-100 pioneers and artillery, started by forced marches to overtake the
-Indians before they reached the Missouri River.
-
-On the morning of July 20th the General, with his selected men and
-reduced train, left Camp Atchison to pursue the Indians and engage them
-in battle. Attached to the expedition in the capacity of contractor
-was Mr. George A. Brackett, who met with an experience, the memory of
-which will remain with him during his life. It is most interesting and
-exciting, and his own version of it, as narrated at the "camp fire" when
-he found his old St. Anthony friends and Captain Chase's company, known
-as the "Pioneers," will be read with interest. Mr. Brackett says:
-
-On the fourth day out, in company with Lieutenant Ambrose Freeman, of the
-Mounted Rangers, we left the main column for the purpose of adventure
-and game. I had my train started and in good hands, and got permission
-for the Lieutenant to accompany me. Five miles away, having met nothing
-worthy of note, we surveyed the country from the summit of a range of
-hills, when we saw several scouts not very far away. We struck a parallel
-course, believing we were moving in the same direction as the main
-column. While watering our horses in the lake, we espied two other scouts
-on the opposite side doing the same thing. We then moved farther on, over
-the range of bluffs, covering about three-quarters of a mile. We followed
-along parallel, or perhaps a little to the left of the main body, a
-distance of three miles. Lieutenant Freeman saw three antelopes, an old
-one and two young ones, in the distance. We fired and wounded the old
-one, who made off around the bluff. I held the Lieutenant's horse and he
-chased her on foot, which took us off our course some distance round the
-bluffs. We traversed a section of country bordering a large lake, near
-which we succeeded in killing the antelope.
-
-As we were coming down to the lake and while the Lieutenant was creeping
-up toward the antelope, I again saw scouts on the opposite side of the
-lake, and the train was in sight on the hillside several miles distant.
-Instead of taking our course back, we had a curiosity to go around the
-lake to where we saw the scouts. On our way around we saw cherry bushes
-newly cut and piled up, and I set about to tear them down. Lieutenant
-Freeman persisted in saying that they were Indian signs and that Indians
-were in the vicinity. In preparation for them we cocked our rifles and
-made around the bushes, so as not to put ourselves in a too exposed
-position. We took our course, as we supposed, towards the train, or where
-the train had recently passed.
-
-Between one and two o'clock we discovered three objects a long distance
-off, but between us and the train's course, and making for the train.
-This action, as soon as we came near enough to judge, convinced us that
-they were Indians, yet we kept on toward them, and they were making
-preparations to meet us, one leading and the other two riding their
-horses. We got all ready to give them a trial, they creeping around on
-one side of the bluff and we creeping around to meet them. I saw one
-with a straw hat on rise up and recognized him as one of our scouts. He
-beckoned us to come towards him. From all the description I had of him I
-supposed him to be Chaska, and the other two were full blood Sioux. Both
-had government horses, and armed, one with a Springfield and the other a
-carbine. I asked him where General Sibley was. They pointed to a hill,
-I should judge, three miles away from where we stood, in the direction
-where the train passed.
-
-I saw a large number of men on a bluff, judged to be about two hundred
-in number, whom I supposed to be General Sibley's men looking for us. We
-all started directly for them, and as we did so, saw what we supposed
-to be a guard of cavalry starting towards us. After we had started the
-scouts turned to a little lake to water their horses, but the Lieutenant
-and myself having previously watered ours, did not go with them. We still
-saw the cavalry, as we supposed, about fifteen in number, coming towards
-us.
-
-I remarked to Lieutenant Freeman that they must have turned back, as
-they had disappeared and were out of sight. We were soon surprised,
-however, by seeing fifteen Indians charging upon us as with a flag of
-truce; but they were not coming evidently in a friendly spirit, as they
-fired a volley upon us. I yelled to the scouts that they were Indians,
-and remarked to Lieutenant Freeman that we had better at once join
-the scouts, which we endeavored to do. When we got within twenty or
-twenty-five rods of the scouts we were riding about three rods apart. One
-Indian rode up to Lieutenant Freeman and shot an arrow through his back,
-on the left side, and at the same time another Indian dismounted and
-discharged his gun at me, but I laid low on my horse's neck, as close as
-I possibly could, and he shot over me, and Chaska stepped up to the top
-of a knoll and shot this same Indian who had fired at me.
-
- ------------------------------------------
-
- [Illustration: George A. Brackett Telling the Thrilling Story of His
- Escape to the Members of Capt. Chase's Company of "Pioneers."]
-
- ------------------------------------------
-
- THE MINNESOTA MASSACRE OF 1862.
-
- Price, to any address, { 60 Cents in Paper.
- { $1.00 and $1.50 in Cloth.
-
- _A. P. CONNOLLY, Chicago._
-
- ------------------------------------------
-
-As Lieutenant Freeman dropped from his horse I asked him if he was hurt.
-He replied, "I am gone." He wished me to cut a piece of string which
-was around his neck, and supported a part of the antelope which he was
-carrying. As I cut the string he changed his position more on his side
-and more up hill. He asked faintly for water, which I gave him from my
-canteen, and by this time the scouts had mounted their horses and left
-us. The Indians were then all around us, and one at the side of the lake;
-but as the scouts ran toward them they fell back. Lieutenant Freeman,
-by this time being dead, I took his rifle and revolver and followed the
-scouts as fast as I could. The Indians mentioned as near the lake, seeing
-the Lieutenant's horse, which followed me, left us and started for the
-horse, thus enabling me to overtake the scouts. The Indians succeeded in
-catching the horse, and the whole crowd again started after us. We rode
-for about four miles, when we were overtaken and surrounded by them by
-the side of a little marsh. We all jumped from our horses. The scouts
-made motions and ran up to meet them, but Chaska motioned for me to jump
-into the tall rushes on the marsh. I saw nothing more of the scouts, and
-the Indians all rushed down to where the horses were. I cocked my rifle,
-and lay in the rushes within ten feet of where they were, and heard them
-quarrel about the possession of the horses. They presently settled their
-dispute and started off, for fear, as I supposed, of being overtaken by
-some of our forces. They took their course around the marsh in which
-I lay for an hour; this was about three p. m. A shower came up, and
-immediately after it cleared I started on my course, with the sun to my
-back, and traveled for two hours. I followed this direction for two days,
-stopping in marshes during the night. On the evening of the second day I
-struck a river of clear water, about a quarter of a mile wide, running
-in a southerly direction. Next morning I started due south, and traveled
-until almost night, when I took a westerly course, concluding that the
-trail was not in that direction; traveled a little to north of west, and
-struck Gen. Sibley's trail the afternoon of the third day, about twelve
-miles from where we camped the night before. I left the main column,
-and made the deserted camp that night. I started next morning on the
-back track for Camp Atchison, and made the painful journey in two days,
-arriving there the second night, between eight and nine o'clock, making
-the distance of the four camps in two days, bare-headed, barefooted and
-coatless. I was obliged to leave my rifle on the last day of my travel,
-but I could not carry it any farther, and made up my mind that this would
-probably be my last day. It was probably about nine o'clock, and I was
-about to give up when I came to a few tents and found them to be those of
-the Pioneers (Captain Chase's company of the Ninth Minnesota Infantry),
-and fell to the ground faint and unable to rise again. But, thank God!
-around that fire were sitting some of my old St. Anthony friends, who
-kindly picked me up and carried me to my tent.
-
-I lost my coat, hat and knife in the fight the first day, so I took
-Lieutenant Freeman's knife, and with it made moccasins of my boot legs,
-as my boots so chafed my feet in walking that I could not possibly wear
-them. These improvised moccasins were constantly getting out of repair,
-and my knife was much needed to keep them in order for use, as well as
-to make them in the first place. But just before reaching the trail of
-the expedition on the fifth day I lost the knife, and the loss, I felt
-at the time, would have decided my fate if I had much farther to go.
-But a kind Providence was in my favor, for almost the first object that
-greeted my eyes upon reaching the trail was a knife, old and worn to be
-sure, but priceless to me. This incident some may deem a mere accident,
-but let such a one be placed in my situation at that time and he would
-feel with me that it was given in answer to a prayer made to the great
-Giver of Good. On the third day, about ten miles from the river spoken
-of, I left Lieutenant Freeman's rifle on the prairie because I became too
-weak to carry it longer; besides, it had already been so damaged by rain
-that I could not use it. I wrote upon it that Lieutenant Freeman had been
-killed, and named the course I was then pursuing. The pistol I retained
-and brought with me to Camp Atchison.
-
-While wandering I lived on cherries, roots, birds' eggs, young birds and
-frogs, caught by my hands, all my ammunition but one cartridge having
-been spoiled by the rain of the first day. That cartridge had a gutta
-percha case and was preserved. It was my only hope for fire when I should
-need it, or when I dared venture to make one. I had also some water-proof
-percussion caps in my portmanteau, which were also put to good use. I
-took one-half the powder in the cartridge, with a percussion cap, and
-with the use of my pistol and some dried grass, started a fire at which
-I cooked a young bird. How did I catch the bird? Well, Providence again
-favored me, and as I was lying low and making no noise, the bird wandered
-so near that by firing a stick I had with me in such a manner as to make
-it whirl horizontally, it struck the bird on the side of the head and
-broke its neck. This was on the second night. On the fourth I used the
-remainder of the cartridge in the same way and for a like purpose. The
-rest of the time I ate my food uncooked. Except some hard bread (found at
-the fourth camp mentioned above), which had been fried and then thrown
-in the ashes. I have forgotten one sweet morsel (and all were sweet
-and very palatable to me), viz., some sinews spared by wolves from a
-buffalo carcass. As near as I am able to judge I traveled in the seven
-days at least two hundred miles. I had ample means for a like journey
-in civilized localities, but for the first time in my life found gold
-and silver coin not legal tender. My boot-leg moccasins saved me, for
-a walk of ten miles upon such a prairie, barefooted, would stop all
-farther progress of any person accustomed to wearing covering upon the
-feet. The exposure at night, caused more particularly by lying in low
-and wet places, in order to hide myself, was more prostrating to me than
-scarcity of food. The loneliness of the prairies would have been terrible
-in itself, but for the drove of wolves that after the first day hovered,
-in the day time, at a respectful distance, and at night howled closely
-around me, seemingly sure that my failing strength would soon render me
-an easy prey. But a merciful Providence has spared my life by what seems
-now, even to myself, almost a miracle.
-
-The body of Lieutenant Freeman was afterwards found and buried by members
-of General Sibley's main force. An arrow had pierced his breast, and the
-tomahawk and scalping knife had left bloody traces about his head. He was
-buried on the desolate plain, five hundred miles away from his beloved,
-bereaved wife and children. After the war closed his body was exhumed,
-carried to his late home, and re-interred by loving hands, with all the
-honors due a brave soldier. The peculiar circumstances of his death, my
-last moments with him, my subsequent days of weary, dangerous wandering,
-my suffering, anxiety and happy deliverance have made an impression upon
-my memory so indelible that time has not, nor cannot efface them.
-
-My friend Brackett and myself came to St. Anthony, Minn., on the same
-day, May 1st, 1857, and we "put up" at the same hotel, and it is most
-interesting to hear him relate this wonderful adventure and marvelous
-escape. He yet lives to tell the story, and poor Freeman! It seemed sad
-to leave him in his lonely grave on the prairie wild, but such is the
-fate of war.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXVIII.
-
-BATTLE OF BIG MOUND.
-
-
-A few days after leaving Camp Atchison scouts began to report to General
-Sibley that Indians in large numbers were between us and the hills
-beyond. Everything indicated this, and the evidences were that we were
-soon to have a battle.
-
-We came in sight of the Indians every day, but nothing decisive until
-July 24th, when we overtook them. Scouts reported a large body of
-Indians, with Red Plume and Standing Buffalo among them, encamped by the
-very lake near which the General intended camping. Standing Buffalo was
-not there as a hostile, and it was a surprise all around. The General,
-satisfying himself that a determined resistance would be offered us,
-corralled his train and made such disposition of the troops as he deemed
-necessary. It was here where Dr. Weiser, of the First Minnesota Rangers,
-was killed while parleying with a delegation from the hostile camp, and
-it was treachery, pure and simple. The battle was opened by Whipple's
-battery, and while the cannon boomed and sent leaden hail and death
-among the fleeing Indians, the artillery of Heaven opened amid a furious
-thunder storm, and a private of Colonel McPhail's command was killed.
-
-[Illustration: Designed by A. P. Connolly.
-
-Battle of Big Mound, Dakota.
-
-Fought between General Sibley's forces and the Sioux, on July 24th, 1863.
-The Indians were defeated.]
-
-The Indians in this affair lost eighty-seven killed and wounded and a
-vast amount of property.
-
-A portion of our command made forty-six miles that day. My own regiment
-was ordered in pursuit, and we followed them for ten miles, after having
-already marched eighteen. An order had been sent by an aide for the
-pursuing troops to bivouac where they were, but being misunderstood,
-instead of camping, as it was intended, we returned, having been on the
-march all night. As we came into camp we found that an early reveille had
-been sounded, and the troops were about ready to march. The part of the
-command that had joined in the pursuit and returned during the night was
-so completely exhausted that the whole force was compelled to rest for
-a day. This battle was a decided victory, counting heavily in the scale
-of advantage, as it put the savages on the run to a place of safety and
-materially disabled them from prosecuting further hostilities.
-
-After the battle of the Big Mound, as narrated, the command was compelled
-to take one day's rest on account of the over-taxed condition of the
-troops. The next day we marched over the same ground, and it was a
-comical yet interesting sight to witness the wholesale abandonment of
-buffalo robes, camp equipage and "jerked" meat; robes by the thousands
-and meat by the tons had been thrown away by the Indians in their hurry
-to get out of harm's way. We found dogs that had been harnessed up and
-loaded down with cooking utensils, dead;--they had died from sheer
-exhaustion. The prairies as far as the eye could penetrate on either side
-presented this condition of abandonment by the Indians, of their property
-and winter's supply of food. As far as the eye could penetrate on either
-hand were evidences of their hasty flight, as if swept with the besom
-of God's wrath. The men would "right about" and fight the soldiers, and
-then turn, and running towards their fleeing families, urge them to still
-greater exertion to get away from the avenging army.
-
-In the sand on the bank of the lake, I found a tiny papoose moccasin, and
-could see the imprint and count each separate toe of the little foot in
-the sand, as it probably was dragged along by the anxious mother, who was
-too heavily laden to carry her little baby. I thought,--poor, helpless
-child, not in the least responsible for its unhappy condition, and yet
-made to suffer. So with all classes of God's humanity;--the innocent too
-often made to suffer, not only with the guilty, but for the guilty, and
-in our decisions we should be careful lest we injure innocent persons.
-The fresh made graves we found on this trail told their sorrowful
-story,--the little Indian spirit had taken its flight,--the body was
-buried and the heart-broken mother hurried on to keep up with her people,
-and get away from the army.
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration: Ready to Go Into Action.]
-
-CHAPTER XXXIX.
-
-BATTLE OF DEAD BUFFALO LAKE.
-
-
-After the decisive battle of the Big Mound the Indians made up their
-minds evidently that the army and destruction was in their rear, and
-their Rubicon must be reached and crossed or annihilation was their
-portion, hence activity was apparent among them. The great impediment to
-their active work in the field and hasty flight was their families, and
-it required good generalship to successfully manage this retreating host.
-
-The next decisive engagement with them was fought on July 26th; known as
-the battle of "Dead Buffalo Lake," so designated from the fact that the
-carcass of a big buffalo was found on its shores.
-
-This day strict orders had been given that there should be no shooting
-within the lines. This was made necessary from the fact of a soldier
-having been wounded the day before from the careless use of a rifle in
-the hands of a comrade. We were going along at an easy jog, when all at
-once a beautiful deer went bounding along. He seemed terribly frightened,
-and evidently had been surprised by the skirmishers ahead. All orders
-were forgotten, and a general stampede was made for this beautiful deer.
-Shots were fired after him, but he made his escape, and it did seem too
-bad, for we were hungry for deer meat. The general thought we had met
-the Indians again, and aides were sent to the front, with orders for the
-proper disposition of the troops. As the Indians were known to be in
-large numbers not far ahead, the General was pardoned for his surmises.
-
-We passed their abandoned camp early in the morning, but about noon the
-scouts reported a large body of Indians coming down upon us from various
-directions. The command was placed in line of battle, and soon the
-skirmishers, in command of Colonel William Crooks, opened fire, supported
-by Lieutenant Whipple's six-pounder.
-
-The savages came swooping down on us, and it seemed as though they sprang
-up out of the earth, so numerous were they.
-
-There were those among them who knew something of the tactics of war,
-and they attempted a vigorous flank movement on the left of the column,
-which was promptly checked by Captain Taylor and his mounted Rangers.
-Another determined attack was made which was handsomely repulsed by two
-companies of the Sixth Minnesota, under Colonel Averill.
-
-A running fire was kept up until about three o'clock, when a bold dash
-was made to stampede the animals which were herded on the bank of a lake.
-
-This attempt was promptly met and defeated by Wilson's and Davy's cavalry
-and six companies of the Sixth Minnesota, under Major McLaren. The
-Indians, foiled at all points, and having suffered serious losses in
-killed and wounded, retired from the field, and galloped away after their
-families, who, a few miles ahead, were hurrying on towards the Missouri
-river. Our animals were so jaded they could not stand a forced march. The
-reason was very apparent. We had our regular rations, while the horses
-and mules were on short rations on account of the hot weather burning up
-the grass, and, besides, the alkali water was as bad for beast as for man.
-
-We were obliged to dig wells every night for water before we could get
-our supper, for we could not use the water from the alkali lakes. As many
-as sixty wells were dug in a night. Think of it,--each company obliged
-to dig a well in order to get water for supper, but this was one of the
-daily duties of the soldier. It is astonishing how the "boys in blue"
-could adapt themselves to every condition and circumstance. I am on a
-tender spot now,--"the boys in blue." 'Tis true times are changed; a
-few of us are alive yet, and perhaps we are just a little bit "stuck on
-ourselves"; but, "the old soldier," as we are now dubbed, cannot forget
-"the boys in blue." In a few years more a new generation will have
-control of our government, but the wonderful years from 1861 to 1865 will
-not be forgotten. If we do not give our government, body and soul, into
-the hands of foreigners who cannot speak our language it is possible that
-the memory of the "boys in blue" will remain with us for a time yet. They
-were a mighty host then, and the tramp, tramp, tramp of their feet as
-they marched to defeat and victory will go down the centuries;--but, I
-must come back to my narrative.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XL.
-
-BATTLE OF STONY LAKE--CAPTURE OF A TETON--DEATH OF LIEUTENANT BEAVER.
-
-
-On the morning of July 28th, just as the command was breaking camp at
-Stony Lake, we were attacked by Indians, in full force.
-
-General Sibley had the expeditionary forces so well in hand that the
-enemy could not possibly do us any harm. We halted but a moment, as some
-of the scouts came riding furiously towards us, followed by Indians
-intent on their capture. The boys cheered as they came within our
-lines. The battery was ordered to the front, and soon threw a shell
-among the Indians, who then galloped around on the flank, while another
-squad came immediately upon our rear; but, the whole column, in a solid
-square, moved on. The engagement took place on the prairie, and it was
-a beautiful sight to see the regularity with which the column moved.
-First, two companies of cavalry skirmishers, and at a proper interval
-two companies of infantry; the same order was preserved in the rear, and
-flankers on the right and left, so as to form a hollow square. In the
-center were the reserve troops, stores of all sorts, and the artillery.
-
-The teams were so fixed as to make it impossible to get up a stampede.
-The Indians resort to their peculiar tactics to stampede the teams,--they
-tried it to its fullest extent on this occasion, but without avail. They
-did not impede our progress in the least, and as the column moved right
-along, they soon gave up the attempt, and we pressed them so closely they
-allowed the killed and wounded to fall into our hands. The casualties
-were light, because the shells that were thrown among them did but little
-damage.
-
-The cavalry in this case was effective, and crowded the Indians, as they
-charged them with drawn sabre.
-
-This was the last stand the Indians made in a body, and they hastened
-on towards the Missouri river, which they finally crossed at a point
-near where Bismarck, North Dakota, now stands. They made a determined
-resistance, and had been repulsed in three successive engagements, and
-their situation was critical in the extreme,--the victorious army in the
-rear and the Missouri in front.
-
-After the Indians had given up the fight and had ridden ahead to urge
-their families on, and we had buried the dead and cared for the wounded,
-we pushed on after them.
-
-A young Teton chief, who was out on a tour of observation, was captured
-by some of the cavalry, and the circumstances and manner in which it was
-done are interesting.
-
-Thousands of us saw the strange object, but the men who captured him were
-the more interested observers, and the narrator says:
-
-"As the scouts approached it, a dark, motionless object was seen lying
-upon the ground. Coming nearer, some one cried out: 'It's an old buffalo
-robe'; but, as one stooped to pick it up, it sprang from the earth and
-bounded off like a deer, arms extended, and flying swiftly, in a zig-zag
-manner. It was a broad mark for the carbines, but where in it was the
-motive power? It was impossible to tell. Some thirty shots were fired,
-all hitting the robe, but still he kept on with the same zig-zag motion,
-so that it was impossible to hit him.
-
-[Illustration: Designed by A. P. Connolly.
-
-Battle of Stony Lake, Dakota, July 28th, 1863.
-
-Indians defeated and slaughtered in great numbers by General Sibley's
-troops.]
-
-"At last one of the guides reined up near him and, placing a revolver to
-his head, fired, but he dodged and escaped the ball.
-
-"He now stopped, dropped the robe, and threw up both hands, in token of
-surrender."
-
-The robe he wore was literally riddled with bullets, but not a scratch
-upon the body of the Indian. His gallantry and his lordly bearing won the
-admiration of his captors, and placing him behind one of the scouts they
-bore him away in triumph, and presented him to General Sibley, to whom
-he extended his hand in friendly salute, but which was declined until he
-had made his statement, and assured the General that his hands were not
-stained with innocent blood. Being thus convinced, General Sibley shook
-him by the hand, and they became friends. He belonged to the Teton band,
-which is one of the largest divisions of the Dakota Nation. They lived
-west of the Missouri, and his information was that they were interested
-observers, but had no sympathy with, nor taking no part in, the war.
-
-He and his father, who was one of the head chiefs, were out on a visit
-to the Yanktonians, and, learning that they were soon to have a fight
-with the soldiers, his curiosity prompted him to go as an observer. His
-curiosity was satisfied, and he retired with the balance, but had stopped
-in a clump of grass to allow his pony to graze. While here he had fallen
-asleep, and the pony was the object that first attracted the attention
-of the scouts, which resulted in the Indian's capture, as above narrated.
-
-He was a prisoner with us for five days, during which time he was treated
-with some consideration as the heir apparent to the chieftainship of his
-tribe. He was about twenty years old; a fine looking fellow, tall and
-athletic. He became strongly attached to the General and the staff.
-
-General Sibley afterwards learned of this Indian's death. He had given
-the boy, on his departure, a letter to his father, commending him for
-refusing to take up the tomahawk against the whites, and in appreciation
-of this, that he had kept the son for a few days in his camp and then
-gave him his liberty, so that he might return to his own people. It was
-good policy, because the letter, being found in his possession, indicated
-to the Indians that General Sibley was not responsible for his death.
-
-A few days after his departure, a party of miners, who had been up in
-Idaho, were coming down the Missouri river, and at the very place where
-our men had reached the river and filled their canteens the Indians were
-lying in wait for the descending miners.
-
-The young Teton desired peace, and rushed toward them waving General
-Sibley's letter over his head. They, not understanding his signal, shot
-him to death, when they were at once surrounded by the exasperated
-Indians, and a battle, short and decisive, was fought, and every man of
-the miners was killed, but not before twice their number of Indians had
-shared the same fate.
-
-This was another sad chapter of this unholy war.
-
-The Indians now approached the river, but, owing to the thick underbrush,
-were obliged to abandon all their carts,--their ponies they took with
-them, but their winter's supply of meat they abandoned.
-
-Our skirmish line was formed at three paces, but even then it was
-impossible to observe a line, so thick were the weeds and underbrush. The
-enemy was sighted, and an advance ordered, when the line moved forward,
-and after an hour of hard work, we, like De Soto, when he discovered the
-Mississippi, gazed in admiration on its prototype,--the Missouri.
-
-After having for weeks drank the brackish water of the prairie lakes, we
-drank from this sweet though turbid stream, and were refreshed, as were
-the children of Israel, who partook of the cool water from the stricken
-rock.
-
-While drinking and wading in the stream, we were fired upon from the
-opposite shore, although a flag of truce had been raised. The Indians'
-bullets fell short of their mark, but the retreat was sounded, and we
-marched back for the open prairie, and returned to our camp, which was
-situated on a beautiful plateau a few miles below. The brush was so thick
-that the Indians were obliged to abandon all of their carts and camp
-equipage, with thousands of buffalo robes, and tons of dried meat. The
-rout of the Indians and destruction of property was complete.
-
-Our casualties were very light; but, among the killed was Lieutenant
-Beaver, an English lord, who came to this country to engage in a buffalo
-hunt; but, upon his arrival, learning of the Indian outbreak, tendered
-his services to the Government, and was commissioned a lieutenant on
-General Sibley's staff, as aide-de-camp. He had been sent by General
-Sibley with an order to Colonel Crooks, who was in command of the
-advance, and, on his return, he and his beautiful black horse were
-killed.
-
-Colonel Crooks said to Lieutenant Beaver that the regiment would return
-as soon as the skirmishers could be rallied, and invited him to remain
-and ride with him back to camp, but the aide, true soldier that he was,
-felt it his duty to report to General Sibley at once, and paid the
-penalty.
-
-The Indians, some at least, not being able to cross the river, were in
-hiding, and others had re-crossed, and were skulking in the thick brush,
-waiting for a chance to shoot with arrows. Lieutenant Beaver had mistaken
-the path he came in on, and took one that led him on to some of these
-skulking Indians, and he thus met his death.
-
-Colonel Crooks returned, and though Lieutenant Beaver messed with him,
-his tent was at General Sibley's headquarters, and his absence from mess
-was not noticed until, upon inquiry at the General's tent, it was found
-he had not reported. The sudden disappearance of one who was such a
-general favorite cast a gloom over the camp.
-
-As soon as it became dark fire rockets were sent up, in hopes that if he
-was wandering away, through taking a wrong road, he might be guided back
-to camp. The early morning found us astir, for a detail of my regiment
-had been made to reconnoiter and to skirmish clear down to the bank of
-the river, in order to gain tidings of Lieutenant Beaver, and, also, of
-Private Miller, of the Sixth Regiment, who also was missing.
-
-The reconnoissance proved successful, and both bodies were found, as well
-as the body of the lieutenant's horse. Lieutenant Beaver had evidently
-made a desperate fight for his life, because his two revolvers were
-empty, and the indications were that he had made more than one of the
-enemy bite the dust.
-
-[Illustration: Sighting the Enemy on the Missouri.]
-
-The bodies were brought to camp and prepared for burial in the trenches
-on opposite sides of the camp, and the work was so done as to obliterate
-all signs and prevent the Indians from locating the spots and desecrating
-the graves. The service was touchingly solemn, and many tears were shed,
-as we thought of these lonely graves so far away from the homes of the
-living relatives.
-
-Lieutenant Beaver had friends in England who were abundantly able to have
-his remains disinterred and removed to a more suitable place of burial.
-Money was sent out from England for this purpose, and trusted agents sent
-up to the Missouri banks for the purpose of bringing back the remains.
-There is a grave at Graceland, in St. Paul, on the top of which rests a
-slab of granite, and engraven on this are the words:
-
-"Sacred to the memory of Lieutenant F. J. H. Beaver, who died July 28,
-1863. Peace to his ashes."
-
-On the banks of the Missouri is a lonely grave. The winter's storms and
-the summer's heat have come and gone. The night vigils of the strange
-birds have been kept, the requiem of gentle breezes has been sung over
-this lonely grave. Comrade Nicholas Miller, private of Company K, Sixth
-Minnesota Infantry Volunteers, sleeps in his lonely bed, and "after
-life's fitful fever he sleeps well."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLI.
-
-HOMEWARD BOUND.
-
-
-We remained but two days at this Missouri camp, when the reveille sounded
-early in the morning of August 1st, and the troops were astir. We were
-a long way from home, and on short rations; and, in addition to this,
-we felt some anxiety about the boys we left at Camp Atchison, having
-heard nothing from them. The sun was very hot the day we left; one of
-the kind the boys called "muggy,"--disagreeable in the extreme. At dress
-parade the night before, we received the compliments of the General in
-orders read, announcing that the purpose of the expedition had been
-accomplished. This was, of course, good news to us, and we speculated as
-to how early a date would find us taking leave of this far-away camp.
-
-The scouts reported to the General that Indians had been crossing the
-river below us all day long, and the indications were that they intended
-to make an attack about midnight, in order to steal our teams. With this
-information before him, General Sibley ordered one-half the command out
-on guard, and the balance to lay on their arms. In an hour or so another
-order came, for the balance of the command to reinforce the guard,
-because there surely would be an attack, and it did come about twelve
-o'clock; but the attempt to capture the teams miscarried; for, after a
-few shots, the Indians retired. Having lost nearly all of their wagons
-and cured meat, they were in a desperate condition, and a commissary
-train would have been a rich prize.
-
-On the morning we left it was astonishing how quickly we got ready, and
-how lonesome the canvas city looked after the bugle sounded "strike
-tents." We marched out this fine morning with our banners flying, and the
-band playing "The Girl I Left Behind Me."
-
-There were no regrets, for the "beautiful Indian maiden" had not made a
-favorable impression on us, and we had our own little families at home.
-
-The Sixth Minnesota was in the rear, and we were hardly beyond the limits
-of the camp before the Indians had taken possession and commenced firing
-on our rear guard. The Colonel gave the necessary commands to bring us
-to a "right about," with orders to "commence firing." The orders came in
-quick succession, and were such a surprise to the Indians that they took
-to their heels with great alacrity. They hovered about us during all the
-day, but did not in the least retard us in our homeward march. We were
-instructed to supply ourselves with water before starting, because we
-must march eighteen miles, to Apple river bend, before we could get a
-fresh supply.
-
-The day was excessively warm, and the men became thirsty; but, behold! we
-look away, and a beautiful lake appears before us. "Water! water!" cry
-the thirsty men, and our canteens were soon empty, in anticipation of
-refilling them from the bosom of this beautiful lake before us. We march
-and thirst again, and the beautiful lake seems just as far away.
-
-"It's two miles to that lake," says one thirsty soul. We march the
-two miles, and yet are two miles away, and the thirst and heat are
-intolerable.
-
-"Surely that's water," said another, "but we don't seem to get any nearer
-to it."
-
-We marched and marched; but we must be in a valley, for the lake is out
-of sight.
-
-"When we get over the ridge we'll see the beautiful lake," comes from
-some one in the ranks.
-
-We got over the ridge, but the beautiful lake, in all its refreshing
-loveliness, had vanished. Had it evaporated, or had it sunk into the
-ground? Neither. We had been deceived,--it was a mirage! The air was hot,
-the earth parched, the throats dry, the canteens empty, and we were yet
-eight miles from water.
-
-Eight long, weary miles to go before we reach the bend in Apple river,
-but there was no help for it, and we bear to it with our soldier load.
-"Five miles farther," says the scout, and our hearts almost stop beating,
-we are so parched; three miles, and on we march; only one mile more, and
-we would run if we could. We reach the bank, and the Colonel commands:
-"Battalion, halt!" but the refreshing water is too near, and the
-famishing men make a run for it, and do not stop until they are in waist
-deep, and then they drink to their fill and replenish their canteens.
-
-On our return march we passed nearly over the same ground as we did
-going out. We passed the battlefield of the Big Mound, and went into
-camp by the lake where Lieutenant Freeman was killed; this was on the
-4th of August. The next day our scouts reported "Indians ahead,"--a
-false alarm,--the Indians espied were half-breeds bringing us mail from
-Camp Atchison, and also the news that George A. Brackett, who was with
-Lieutenant Freeman when he was killed, had made his way, after weary
-days and nights of wandering, and in a half-starved condition, to Camp
-Atchison, where he fell among friends.
-
-When we arrived at Camp Atchison it took but a day to arrange for our
-final departure. Lieutenant Freeman's body had been recovered and buried,
-and the place so marked that it was easily found afterwards, when the
-body was removed and taken to his home for final interment.
-
-We drew five days' rations of hard tack and bacon, and the side dishes
-that go with it; just what they were I cannot now remember. I guess the
-dear old army bean was one and desiccated vegetable another; anyway,
-we were not troubled with the gout from too much eating of rich food.
-The surgeons made proper provision for the transportation of the sick
-by placing them in ambulances, and at an early hour the headquarters'
-bugler sounded "strike tents," and the canvas city was razed to the
-ground;--Camp Atchison was a back number.
-
-The command took up the line of march for Fort Snelling, where we
-expected to receive orders to proceed at once to join the Union Army in
-the South. We were a jolly crowd, and the march seemed but a pleasant
-pastime; we had driven the enemy out of the country, and, save the first
-two or three days of our return march, he was giving us no trouble. We
-made good time, and the nearer we got home the shorter the miles became.
-
-When we got down to civilization we were accorded an ovation; especially
-was this the case at Minneapolis, where the whole city turned out to bid
-us welcome.
-
-We arrived at Fort Snelling on the morning of September 12th, after
-having made a march of more than twelve hundred miles;--and thus ended
-the campaign of 1863.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLII.
-
-THE CAMPAIGN OF 1864.
-
-
-My active work in the Sioux Indian war ended in the autumn of 1863,
-and the regiment went South, but history has made me familiar with the
-campaign of 1864, and I thus devote space to it, so as to follow the
-troops and Indians to the culmination and final successful closing of the
-greatest Indian war of modern times.
-
-The return of General Sibley from the Missouri campaign of 1863 did not
-end the Sioux war, because, while the Indians had been defeated in five
-pitched battles in 1862 and '63, yet they were known to be in large
-numbers, ready to take the field again in 1864, as soon as the weather
-would permit. Such being the case, it became necessary to organize
-against them.
-
-To this end another expedition was fitted out from the Minnesota side,
-which was to co-operate with General Sully from the Missouri side.
-General Sully, on account of the low stage of water in the Missouri in
-1863, was unable to co-operate with General Sibley, as was intended, and
-on August 1st, 1863, and when General Sibley's order for the homeward
-march was promulgated, General Sully was one hundred and sixty miles
-farther down the river than it was intended he should be. This was the
-reason why the Indians were not more severely whipped than they were. It
-would have been suicidal for General Sibley to have crossed the Missouri
-river at this time, with rations and ammunition as scarce as they were.
-
-The Indians took advantage of the situation and evinced a determination
-to take the field again. A cavalry regiment had been authorized by the
-War Department for one year and for frontier service. This regiment was
-filled to the maximum, and placed in command of Colonel R. N. McLaren.
-
-A battalion had been raised previous to this, known as Hatch's battalion,
-and was on duty near Pembina, and by this wise provision confidence was
-restored in this part of the country.
-
-The Indians still had undisputed possession of the country west of the
-Missouri, and, although they may have been peaceable, it was necessary to
-settle the question permanently, and place them on their reservations.
-
-The plan of the campaign of 1864 was very similar to that of the year
-previous, excepting in the matter of command, the two columns,--the one
-from the Minnesota side and the other from the Missouri side,--were to
-combine and become two brigades, under the command of General Sully.
-
-The first brigade was composed of Iowa and Kansas infantry, and they
-embarked at Sioux City, Iowa, and proceeded up the Missouri. The second
-brigade embraced the Eighth Minnesota Infantry, mounted on ponies,
-Colonel M. T. Thomas in command; the Second Minnesota Cavalry, Colonel
-McLaren; and the Third Minnesota Battery, Captain John Jones. This
-brigade was in command of Colonel Thomas, and left Fort Snelling on June
-1st.
-
-General Sibley and staff accompanied this brigade of 2,100 men as far as
-Fort Ridgely, where he gave them their final orders.
-
-Colonel Thomas, who considered General Sibley a man of ability, thought
-him too cautious, and, in response to his final orders, said: "General, I
-am going to hunt for Indians; if they will hunt for and find me it will
-save a heap of trouble."
-
-It was a beautiful morning on June 5th, and as the first rays of the
-morning sun flashed the full light of day, "boots and saddles" sounded in
-the clear tones of the bugles, and the column, headed by a magnificent
-band, mounted on milk white horses, marched out to the tune of "The Girl
-I Left Behind Me."
-
-The General reviewed the column as it passed, and after complimenting the
-appearance of the soldiers and bidding good-bye to Colonel Thomas and his
-staff, who were starting on a five months' campaign beyond the bounds of
-civilization, rode back to the fort.
-
-The column was now under way, and day after day the march went on, in
-solid square, so organized that all the Indians in North America could
-not disturb it. At night the square closed up, so as to ensure greater
-safety and reduce guard duty.
-
-The column moved up the valley of the Minnesota river to its source, and
-then took a westerly course, making daily from sixteen to twenty miles,
-resting on Sunday.
-
-The scouts, failing to find even signs of Indians, the march became
-monotonous until the valley of the Missouri was reached. Here was found
-General Sully's trail of the year previous, and soon some of his scouts
-came into camp and reported General Sully only one day's march away,
-where he was waiting for the fleet of boats on which were supplies for
-the troops.
-
-The monotony of the daily march was enlivened by the report that Indians
-were hovering around,--they came to reconnoiter, but not to fight yet.
-This of itself was encouraging, because the boys began to think they
-would not even see an Indian; but there was fun ahead, as we shall see in
-the next chapter.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLIII.
-
-THE BATTLE OF THE BAD LANDS.
-
-
-General Sully, an unpretentious man, with clear perception, appeared to
-know where the Indians were, and what they would do. His service in the
-regular army peculiarly fitted him for this service, and this, with his
-genial temperament, made him an agreeable commander.
-
-The boats were unloaded, the command supplied with sixty days' rations
-and divested of all surplus clothing and equipments, made ready for a
-vigorous march after Indians.
-
-The troops were reviewed by the commanding officer, General Sully,
-who, by the way, was at one time Colonel of the First Minnesota,
-and afterwards promoted to Major-General of Volunteers and Brevet
-Brigadier-General of the regular army. The review of the troops
-constituted the celebrating the Fourth of July, 1864.
-
-When the column finally moved, which was on July 19, it marched out into
-an unknown and unexplored country, from the white man's standpoint.
-
-[Illustration: Resting Before an Attack.]
-
-What a transformation,--then unknown and unexplored,--no highways, no
-railroads, no civilization,--to-day the onward march of our race has left
-its imprint by railroads, beautiful farms, busy cities, busy factories,
-Christian civilization, education and the "little red school house." But
-I am anticipating; turn back the leaves and we are again on the Knife
-river, and we snuff a battle, for the Indians are ahead in great numbers.
-
-It was on July 28th, among the foothills of the mountains, that a large
-camp of Indians was found. In this camp were no less than one hundred
-and ten bands of hostile Sioux, and they meant business, for they had
-congregated here for the express purpose of cleaning out the white
-soldiers, and they felt confident they could do it.
-
-The Indians, on their horses, were stripped for the fray, and began
-leisurely to ride in line of battle toward the white enemy. When within
-rifle shot, the soldiers opened fire, and instantly the scene was
-changed. The bands concentrated, and, uttering their war cries, they
-dashed at full speed on our lines, firing, and, like the wind, whirled
-to the rear, loading as they went, when they would again face the enemy,
-and, coming within gunshot, fire again.
-
-They were so confident of success that they did not attempt to save their
-own camp, which was the objective point of the soldiers; and they did not
-realize their dangerous position until they found that their terrific
-onslaught on our lines did not in the least impede the progress of the
-troops.
-
-Soon the artillery was brought up, and the shells were sent thick and
-fast among them. By this time they began to realize that retreat were the
-tactics now.
-
-There were 1,600 tepees filled with women and children, with the usual
-supply of dogs,--not less than two dogs to a tepee, and such a stampede.
-
-It was a grand sight in one sense and sad in another. To see this great,
-moving mass of 10,000 or 12,000 souls, with their camp paraphernalia,
-including dogs and ponies, rushing over the prairie; the fleeing
-multitude spread out as far as the eye could reach on either side,
-rushing on in mad haste, as though fleeing from the city of destruction.
-It was the sight of a lifetime, but sad to contemplate that the sins
-of some were being showered upon the heads of the innocent women and
-children.
-
-The loss to the Indians in killed was estimated at 100 to 150; the
-wounded they carried off the field. The dead were buried in the night in
-large trenches, the earth leveled off, and the troops marched away.
-
-The Indians were not satisfied with the result of this engagement; they
-naturally would not be. They claimed that the best of their young men
-were off hunting for our troops in another direction, and they should at
-once call them in and give battle again.
-
-The last six days had been very exciting, and was a nervous strain on the
-soldiers. One hundred and seventy-five miles had been made, a battle of
-eight hours had been fought, and the camp of Indians destroyed.
-
-The march to the west was resumed over the prairie, with the Knife
-Mountains to the north and the Black Hills to the south, looming up in
-the distance like great sentinels, standing to contest the approach of
-civilization and defying the elements of ages.
-
-In the immediate front, off towards the horizon, was what seemed to be a
-level plain,--it was level, but for a little distance, and then broke to
-your view what might have inspired a Dante to write a more recent edition
-of Inferno; for, as far as the eye could reach, north and south and for
-forty miles to the west, the body of the earth had been rent and torn
-asunder, as though giant demons, in their infuriated defeat, had sought
-to disembowel the earth.
-
-General Sully said of it: "It is hell with the fires put out."
-
-We are now in the Bad Lands, and it is Sunday,--the Lord's day, and in
-such a region,--where devils had fought. White men's eyes had probably
-never before seen this region, and the Indians were afraid of it; they
-looked upon this region as the abode of evil spirits, and that the great
-gorges and buttes and yawning chasms were but the product of their wrath.
-
-The Sunday passed quietly until after noon, when a reconnoitering party
-returned and said they had been fired upon by Indians.
-
-About five o'clock on this Sunday General Sully changed the position of
-the camp and went four miles farther up the river, in order to be in
-better position to prevent a surprise or repel an attack.
-
-The Indians were interested observers, for while this move was being made
-1,000 of them were quietly sitting on their horses on the surrounding
-hills, observing.
-
-General Sully, being sick in his tent at this time, the command devolved
-upon Colonel Thomas, of the Eighth Minnesota, and to him he gave orders
-to "have everything ready to move at six o'clock in the morning, in
-perfect fighting order; put one of your most active field officers in
-charge of a strong advance guard, and you will meet them at the head of
-the ravine, and have the biggest Indian fight that ever will happen on
-this continent; and let me further say that under no circumstances must
-any man turn his back on a live Indian."
-
-On Monday morning, bright and early, on August 8th, 1864, the columns
-were formed. The General was in an ambulance at the front, and in
-admiration looking up and down the lines of the soldiers who were so soon
-to engage the Indians in battle, gave vent to his feelings in words more
-expressive than elegant: "Those fellows can whip the devil and all his
-angels."
-
-General Sully himself was unable to go farther, but when he grasped
-Colonel Thomas, who was in immediate command, by the hand he said: "You
-must make some history to-day."
-
-"Forward!" and the column is marching out, and not a sound is there to
-indicate that its progress will be impeded, as we enter the narrow gorge,
-only wide enough for a wagon trail. Almost an hour passes in steadily
-climbing up the narrow and secluded way, and when near the head of the
-gulch, from the beautiful stillness of the morning the pandemonium of war
-broke loose.
-
-The artillery advanced in a gallop, and, in position, soon commenced
-planting shells among the redskins. This was followed up by the steady
-advance of the dismounted men, who pressed their lines, and they
-commenced to fall back. The General, sick though he was, and in the
-ambulance, could not endure being there when the fight was going on, so
-he ordered up his horse and, mounting, rode to the front, but nature
-resisted, and he was obliged to dismount, which he did, and seating
-himself on a boulder, with his field glass took in the whole situation.
-Colonel Thomas, who was in command, hearing that the General was on the
-field, sought him out and said: "I am ready to advance, sir."
-
-The General, pointing his hand toward a range of hills, said: "Go ahead,
-you will find the camp beyond those buttes; hold your men well in hand,
-push the Indians; they will fight for their families; protect your
-flank, and I will protect the rear."
-
-The fight went on; the wounded were sent to the rear, and for twelve
-miles we drove the Indians from point to point, but darkness came on
-before their camp was reached.
-
-In the bivouac at night the scene was a varied one. At the roll-call
-there were names not answered, for the unerring arrow and Indian bullet
-had done its work. At the next muster it would be necessary to mark after
-some name: "Killed in battle in the Bad Lands August 8th, 1864," or,
-"died of wounds received from Indians in battle in the Bad Lands August
-8th, 1864," for there were 109 killed and wounded on this day.
-
-The wounded received proper attention at once, and the other soldiers,
-well tired out with the day's fighting and marching, were soundly
-sleeping and dreaming of home.
-
-There were 8,000 warriors engaged in this battle, and as nearly as could
-be estimated they lost 350 killed and from 600 to 800 wounded. It was a
-bloody battle, and the field was named by the Indians Waps-chon-choka.
-
-The Indians, after this decisive battle, broke up into small bands and
-went in every direction, so that the soldiers, as an army, could not well
-follow them.
-
-The war had ended so far as the Indians were concerned, but there was
-another fight on hand. Bad water and lack of rations are not a happy
-condition of affairs, and the soldiers had to look this square in the
-face. And hot! The tongues of some of the men were so swelled from thirst
-and heat that they could not talk. The animals suffered equally with the
-men, and in numerous instances it became necessary to put them out of
-their misery by blowing out their brains.
-
-And thus things went on from day to day until August 12th, when glad
-news came from one of the scouts, who came riding back and frantically
-waving something in his hands. It was simply a little chip of wood, and
-why should this create such unbounded joy among a lot of war-begrimed
-veterans? It was freshly cut and evidently came from the steamboat men,
-as it was borne down on the bosom of the cool waters of the longed-for
-Yellowstone.
-
-The weary soldiers, thirsting and starving, viewed this little harbinger
-of plenty with delight, and their strength began to return as they
-increased their step in the march toward the river.
-
-O, that beautiful river:--"The Nectar of the Gods." How life-inspiring
-its fluid, as discipline was forgotten and joy and happy shouts took the
-place of misery in the command.
-
-The thirst was slaked, and now for something to eat, for soldiers,
-poor mortals, get very hungry, and how often they longed for some good
-home-made bread and sugar and cream for coffee. And pies; well, our
-mouths used to fairly water for pies. But, on this especial occasion,
-almost anything would do, for the boys were awfully hungry, and the
-commissary was like "Old Mother Hubbard's" cupboard--empty.
-
-There were timber bottoms a little way down the river full of elk and
-black-tailed deer, so the Indians informed us.
-
-A detail was made, and the hunters went out in search of game, and before
-night they returned with the evidence of their day's hunt with them. They
-were like the spies sent out in Bible times, who came back laden with
-grapes, and reported that the country which they had explored was rich,
-and flowed with milk and honey.
-
-So, too, our soldier-hunters said the bottom lands were alive with elk
-and deer; and, by the next night, the luscious ribs and steaks were
-sizzling in the blaze, and hunger was being appeased as well as the
-thirst had been.
-
-The war being practically over, the several commands returned by various
-routes to the points from whence they came, and were at once ordered
-South to take their places in some of the other armies. The campaigns of
-1862, '63 and '64 were successfully carried out, and we will recapitulate
-our desires, our journeyings, our hopes and our fears and our rejoicings
-in another chapter, and bid you adieu.
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration: Examining the Colors After the Campaign.]
-
-CHAPTER XLIV.
-
-CONCLUSION.
-
-
-In writing this narrative my mind has been refreshed and incidents and
-the names of persons almost forgotten come to me--they press on my memory.
-
-I am able to recall many, but to specify them would unduly lengthen
-this book. There was one important character, however, whom I had quite
-forgotten at the proper time, and in this concluding chapter must make
-mention of him.
-
-Pierre Bottineau came originally from the Selkirk settlement, and in
-1837 made a claim near St. Anthony Falls.
-
-I was with him upon the plains of Dakota in 1857, and in his way he was a
-remarkable man. On one occasion the party got lost in a furious storm and
-we knew that war parties of Chippewas were roaming over the prairie and
-it was not any way too healthy to be in the region we supposed we were
-wandering in. We halted to hold a council and Pierre said: "As soon as
-the stars come out I can locate." So we waited and waited for the storm
-to pass over. The night was pitchy dark, but in time the stars came, when
-Pierre laid flat down on the ground, face up, and for perhaps half an
-hour surveyed the heavens and located our wandering feet. We were soon on
-the right trail for our camp, which was forty or fifty miles away.
-
-Pierre was one of General Sibley's principal scouts during the several
-campaigns against the Indians in 1862 and 1863. He died some years
-ago, and speaking of his death reminds me of others prominent in these
-military operations who have gone beyond the river.
-
-The two generals, Sibley and Sully, are gone, and of the field and staff,
-I can recall Colonel John T. Averill, of the Sixth Minnesota, who was,
-after the war, member of Congress. Adjutant Snow and Quartermasters
-Carver and Gilbert, Colonels Stephen Miller and Wm. R. Marshall, both
-honored by Minnesota by electing them to chief executive--they, with
-Lieut. Colonel Bradley and all of the Seventh; Colonel Robert N. McLaren,
-of the Second Cavalry, and Major Hatch, of the battalion bearing his
-name, and Captain John Jones, of the famous battery. These are among some
-of the chiefs who have been called.
-
-Among the line of officers and the rank and file, it would be a mighty
-host, and it saddens my heart when I think of them, so I will desist
-and conclude by reminding you of the invitation extended and briefly
-recapitulate our journeyings.
-
- * * * * *
-
-READER: The invitation extended to you to accompany us on a military
-expedition into the Indian country has been accepted. It was under
-exciting circumstances, when the whole country was surcharged with alarm,
-and for good cause.
-
-The Indians, cruel, relentless, revengeful, and with determination, were
-murdering innocent men, women and children, and but for the friendly
-offices of a faithful few, whose hearts were whiter than their skins, the
-death list and list of horrors would have been far greater; and it is for
-these few we speak when we say there are good Indians other than dead
-ones; and Minnesota could not do a more appropriate thing to-day than
-erect a monument to the memory of Old Betz, Other Day, Chaska and others,
-who risked their lives to save their white friends from the tomahawk
-of their more vengeful brethren, and who did so much to alleviate the
-sufferings and to relieve the anxiety of the captive prisoners.
-
-You went with us to besieged New Ulm and Fort Ridgely; helped bury
-the dead at Redwood; marched with us and went into camp and endured
-the thirty-six hours of anxiety and suffering at Birch Coolie; helped
-bury the dead and care for the wounded there; returned with us to Fort
-Ridgely; took part in the battle at Wood Lake, where the Indians were
-defeated; shared our joys when we liberated the women at Camp Release;
-helped arrest, shackle and guard the Indians; witnessed the execution of
-thirty-eight at Mankato; marched across with the "Moscow Expedition";
-rendezvoused with us at Camp Pope in 1863; marched and fought Indians
-with us at Big Mound, Dead Buffalo Lake, Stony Lake and the Missouri
-River. You mingled your tears with ours over Beaver's and Miller's
-graves, as we left them in their loneliness on the bank of the river;
-participated in and rejoiced with us all the way on our return, took part
-in the campaign of 1864, and now, before bidding you adieu, one question:
-Are you satisfied?
-
-
-THE END.
-
-
- * * * * *
-
-
-Transcriber Note
-
-
-Illustrations moved so as to not split paragraphs. Quotation usage in
-quoted letters was standardized.
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of A Thrilling Narrative of the Minnesota
-Massacre and the Sioux War of 1862-63, by A. P. (Alonzo Putnam) Connolly
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THRILLING NARRATIVE ***
-
-***** This file should be named 51990.txt or 51990.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/1/9/9/51990/
-
-Produced by WebRover, Tom Cosmas, Chris Curnow and the
-Online Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
-(This file was produced from images generously made
-available by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/51990.zip b/old/51990.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index c19f08c..0000000
--- a/old/51990.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ